1 2 Донченко Е. Н. Д67 Английский для психологов и социологов. Серия «Учебники, учебные пособия». Ростов н/Д: «Феникс», 2002. - 512 с. Учебник содержит тексты на английском языке, задания к ним, тесты, упражнения, ориентированные на изучение языка психологами и социологами. Тексты подобраны тематически, дифференцированы по сложности и степени освоения лексики. Книга предназначена студентам высших учебных заведений указанных специальностей. 3 Методическая записка Методические указания к текстам по специальности «психология» и «социология» состоят из 8 разделов. В основных разделах представлен текстовой материал для изучающего чтения и дополнительные тексты для ознакомительного чтения. Прилагаемые к текстам задания направлены на развитие навыков чтения, таких как извлечение базовой информации, ее обобщение и анализ содержания. Задания по чтению переходят в упражнения, нацеленные на развитие навыков говорения в виде сообщений, пересказов, подтверждения положений, оценки информации и т.д. Предлагаются также задания ситуативного характера для развития навыков диалогической речи. Следует отметить, что тексты для изучающего и ознакомительного чтения подобраны по тематическому признаку, что, безусловно, способствует активизации лексики. Прочное закрепление лексического материала обеспечивается серией упражнений, включенных в раздел «Word Study». Наряду с заданиями на словообразование, перифраз, выбор, нахождение эквивалентов, перевод, имеются задания на оценку и высказывание суждений, что также способствует увеличению потенциального словаря. Лексические упражнения обеспечивают эффективную повторяемость лексических единиц в пределах тематического комплекса. В конце пособия есть грамматические упражнения для активизации грамматических навыков устной речи, а также для выработки устойчивых навыков и умений, необходимых как для адекватного перевода текстов по специальности, так и для беспереводного чтения. Пособие может быть использовано в разнообразных условиях учебного процесса для развития коммуникативной компетенции - умения получать, перерабатывать и передавать информацию. Мы надеемся, что информационное содержание учебного материала заинтересует всех, кто желал бы познакомиться с актуальными проблемами на английском языке как в области психологических знаний, так и в сфере социологического исследования, тем более, что решение этих проблем переходит по логике вещей из одной науки в другую. 4 PSYCHOLOGY UNIT I Text I I. Read and translate the text: Scope of Psychology Psychology as a science studies mental activity and human behaviour. Psychologists study basic functions such as learning, memory, language, thinking, emotions, and motives. They investigate development throughout the life span from birth to death. They are involved in mental and physical health care. They treat people who are emotionally distressed. Psychology occupies a strategic position between natural and social sciences on the one hand, and between sciences and humanities, on the other. Diagram to illustrate the place of psychology among the sciences and humanities I. Natural Sciences Physics Chemistry Zoology III Humanities ! Philosophy Neuropsychology Literature Pharmacology and Anatomy Mathematics ! History of Art Religion Psychology II Social Sciences IV Applications Anthropology Education Sociology Law and Criminology Economics Management Political Science Medicine Linguistics Psychiatry 5 Each of the subjects listed in the four groups has its own relationship with psychology. For example, knowledge of physics and chemistry is necessary to provide a scientific basis for experimental psychology. Psychology is also closely linked to sociology. But whereas sociologists direct their attention to groups, group processes, and social forces, social psychologists focus on group and social influences on individuals. Psychology and biology are also closely connected. Physiological psychologists investigate the role of the brain and the nervous system in such functions as memory, language, sleep, attention, movement, perception, hunger, anger and joy. On the other hand, psychologists took much from the theory of knowledge, logic and philosophy of science. Besides, psychology separated from philosophy. The word «psychology» is derived from the Greek word meaning «study of the mind or soul». So in the definition of psychology there are three basic words: «science», «behaviour», «mental processes». «Science» means rational investigation of processes and phenomena. By «behavior» psychologists mean everything that people and animals do: actions, emotions, ways of communication, developmental processes. «Mental processes» characterize the work of the mind and the nervous system. Major Specialists in Psychology SPECIALIST PRIMARY ACTIVITIES Clinical psychologist Assesses and treats people with psychological problems; conducts research Counseling psychologist Counsels people with adjustment problems and promotes achievement in educational and work settings; combines research, consultation and treatment 6 Industrial (organizational) psychologist Combines research, consultation, and program development lo enhance morale and efficiency on the fob Develops, designs and evaluates Educational materials and procedures for psychologist educational programs Social psychologist Studies how people influence one another Studies change in behaviour with Developmental age psychologist Experimental Conducts research psychologist Establishes programs, consults, School treats youngsters' problems, and psychologist does research in the school setting Studies mental processes Cognitive psychologist Community psychologist Treats distressed people within the community; initiates community action and develops community programs to enhance mental health Engineering psychologist Designs and evaluates environments, machinery, training devices, programs, and systems to improve relationships between people and environment Personality psychologist Studies how and why people differ from one another and how those differences can be assessed Physiological psychologist Studies the physical bases of behaviour and cognition Psychometric (quantitative) psychologist Develops and evaluates tests; designs research to measure psychological functions 7 II. Answer the following questions: 1. What basic functions do psychologists study? 2. What position does psychology occupy among the sciences and humanities? 3. What basic words are there in the definition of psychology? What do they mean? 4. Why is there a great number of different specialists in the field of psychology? 5. Which group of psychology experts is the largest? III. Prove that... 1. Each of the subjects listed in four groups has its own relationship with psychology (use Diagram I). Use the words: a scientific basis, to be closely linked to, to focus on, to be closely connected, to investigate. 2. Psychologists tend to specialize in what might be called subfields. Use the words: to master, an expert, much information, small area, particular therapy knowledge, single disorder. IV. Explain: 1. The origin of the word «psychology». 2. The subject-matter of psychology. 3. The place of psychology in the system of sciences. 4. The primary activities of a community psychologist, an engineering psychologist and a personality psychologist. V. Make up disjunctive questions: 1. Psychology studies mental activity and human behaviour. 2. Psychology occupies a strategic position between natural and social sciences. 8 3. Psychology separated from philosophy. 4. Developmental psychologist studies changes in behaviour with age. 5. Experimental psychologist conducts research. VI. What psychology specialist would you like to be and why? VII. Speak on the text. Text 2 I. Read the text and give its general idea in Russian: The Historical Background of Psychology Psychology has both a traditional and scientific history, as any other science. Traditionally, psychology dates back to the earliest speculations about the relationships of man with his environment. Beginning from 600 B.C. the Greek intellectuals observed and discussed these relationships. Empedocles said that the cosmos consisted of four elements: earth, air, fire, and water. Hippocrates translated these elements into four bodily humors and characterized the temperament of individuals on the basis of these humors. Plato recognized two classes of phenomena: things and ideas. Ideas, he said, come from two sources: some are innate and come with a soul, others are product of observations through the sense organs. The giant of the thinkers was Aristotle. He was interested in anatomy and physiology of the body, he explained learning on the basis of association of ideas, he said knowledge should be achieved on the basis of observations. 9 After the birth of Christ, St. Augustine characterized the method of introspection and developed a field of knowledge, later called as faculty psychology. According to St. Thomas Aquinas, scientific truth must be based on observation and experimentation. During the 15th and 16th centuries the scientific knowledge developed greatly. Among the most important scientific investigations were those of Newton in psychology of vision and Harvey in physiology. The mind-body problem was a very important for the 17th and 18th centuries philosophers and entered recent psychology. Here appeared such theories as: 1) occasionalism, according to which God is between a mind and a body; 2) double aspect theory, in which a mind and a body are different aspects of the same substance; 3) psychophysical parallelism, according to which a mind and a body are parallel in their actions. The associanists, or empiricists, developed the doctrine of associations: simple ideas form complex sensations and ideas (Thomas Hobbes and John Locke were the founders of this theory). Opposed to the association theory was the doctrine of mental faculties. Nowadays psychology is a separate discipline, a real combination of true knowledge of human nature. II. Make up 10 questions to the text and ask your partner to answer them. III. Enumerate all the thinkers mentioned In the text and their investigations. IV. Discuss in the group: 1. The contribution to the development of psychology made by the ancient thinkers. 2. The development of psychology in the Middle Ages. 10 Text 3 I. Read and translate the text: Learning and Environment On August 15th, 1977, the world lost one of its greatest psychologists Alexander R. Luria. Honored and respected in many countries of the world, Luria's 300 scientific works have been translated into English and have influenced thinking in the fields of psychology, neurology and neuropsychology, education and speech pathology. Luria's first translated work, «Nature of Human Conflicts» (1932), supported the idea that human behaviour could not be reduced to a sum of neurological reflexes. He urged the study of the specific systems of behaviour produced in the process of the individual's social and historical development. Luria's psychology concentrates on the development of mental capacities through learning. The correct organization of a child's learning leads to mental development. One does not wait for a child to be «ready» to learn to read, for example, but teaches the child the pre-reading skills at the level at which he or she is functioning. In turn, the child's knowledge influences the structure of his intellectual processes. Learning is a socialhistoric process. Luria and his team investigated such mental processes as perception, ability to generalize, logical reasoning, imagination and self-awareness. Luria's team discovered that new structures of cognitive activity appeared. Human consciousness was developing to a higher level as the society was transformed. Luria was a true scientist and a true humanist who contributed to a social progress and to the development of human capacity. 11 II. Choose the right answer: 1. How many Luria's works have been translated into other languages? a) 250 works have been translated; b) 300 works have been translated; c) 350 works have been translated. 2. What idea did Luria's first work support? a) Human behaviour could be reduced to a sum of neurological reflexes. b) Human behaviour could be reduced to specific systems of behaviour. 3. What does Luria's psychology concentrate on? a) His psychology concentrates on environmental influences. b) His psychology concentrates on the development of mental capacities through learning. c) His psychology concentrates on introspection. 4. What mental processes did Luria investigate? a) He investigated accomodation and assimilation. b) He investigated social aspects of mental capacities. c) He investigated perception, imagination and selfawareness. I I I . Explain the headline o f the text. IV. Role-play. 1. You are going to enter the Psychology Faculty but your parents object. You are trying to persuade them that psychology is one of the basic fields of knowledge. 2. Ask your friends if they know the differences in the specialties of a psychologist, psychiatrist and psychoanalyst. If they don't, enlighten them. 3. You are interviewing a famous psychologist. What possible questions could you ask about the development of psychology as a separate discipline. 12 4. You have just made a report on Luria's research and are ready to answer your friends' questions. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: mental activity; human behaviour; throughout the life span; emotionally distressed; to provide a scientific basis; to be closely linked to; to be derived from; to conduct research; school setting; training devices. III. Give English equivalents for: научение; память; мышление; естественные науки; гуманитарные науки; с одной стороны; с другой стороны; внимание; восприятие; определение; общение; лечить; оценивать; окружающая среда. III. Translate and memorize the following words and their derivatives: psychology - psychological — psychologist; science - scientific — scientist; relate - relation - relationship; human - humanity - humanities - human beings; perceive - perception - perceptual; observe - observer - observation; connect - connection - connected - closely connected. IV. Arrange the following in pairs o f synonyms: basic to investigate throughout to provide to link people communication to assess setting to enhance уоungster to connect social intercourse to evaluate to increase teenager main during to give to study human beings environment 13 V. Arrange the following in pairs o f antonyms: birth on the one hand anger to separate primary achievement within to enhance to improve joy to worsen inside death regress to decrease on the other hand to unite final VI. Complete the sentences: 1. Psychologists study basic functions such as ... . 2. Psychology occupies a strategic position between … . 3. The word «psychology» is derived from ... . 4. Psychology dates back to ... . 5. Ancient thinkers were interested in ... . 6. In the Middle Ages there appeared such theories as … . 7. A. Luria is famous for ... . 8. He is famous throughout … . 9. I should like to specialize in ... . 14 UNIT II Text I I. Read and translate the text: Why Do People Work? A simple question which goes deeper than the obvious answer, «То earn enough is to live on». Psychologists have found that mental and physical activity - and work in particular - is a dominant human driving force. Some argue that it is the same set of motivators which led a primitive man to hunt and fight in a tribal setting. Are some motives more basic than others? Many psychologists refer to the theory of Abraham Maslow, a humanistic psychologist, which suggests that motives are ordered. Maslow felt that human beings are born with five systems of needs which are arranged in the hierarchy. People remain «wanting animals» all their lives. As one set of needs (motives) is taken care of, a new set replaces it. We work our way up through various systems in order. Maslow's theory begins with physiological needs, such as food, water, oxygen, sex, protection from temperature extremes, activity. These needs for survival are the strongest. They must be satisfied to some degree before other needs appear. If only one of them remains unsatisfied, it may dominate all the others. Once human physiological needs are satisfied, the other needs arise. Adults want stable jobs, saving accounts, and insurance. Thus adequate pay and working conditions are of fundamental importance. When safety needs are achieved, people seek to love and be loved. The family is the most important unit where they receive support. In larger organization it is the team, the department, the company, the trade union or the profession which may satisfy the need. 15 16 Once love needs are satisfied, needs to be esteemed by oneself and others dominate. People want to be valued in their communities, at work and at home. They want to respect themselves. Self-esteem is an important part of job satisfaction and is another step in the hierarchy. It means that the individual understands the contribution needed from him and is receiving recognition for making it. Words of congratulation and rewards are necessary things for self-esteem. The final step is the release of potential. This may be a simple ambition to succeed or the desire to make a contribution to a body of knowledge. People struggle to realize their potentials and to fulfil their ideals. Maslow theorized that these needs predominate in healthy personalities. In his view, only 1 per cent of Americans achieve self-actualization. Why is it so rare? Most of us, Maslow believed, are blind to our true potentials. We conform to cultural stereotype rather than for persona! needs. Concerns about safety make us fearful of risk taking and closed to new experiences. II. Answer the following questions: What is a dominant human driving force? What do you know of Abraham Maslow? What system of needs does he suggest? What are the strongest human needs, according to his hierarchy? 5. What do adults want to receive when their physiological needs are satisfied? 6. What do people seek when safety needs are achieved? 7. Where can people receive support? 8. What does self-esteem mean? 9. How do people try to realize their potentials? 10.Why do most people fail to realize their potentials? 1. 2. 3. 4. 17 III. Find the facts in the text to prove that: 1. 2. 3. 4. Human beings are born with five systems of needs. People remain «wanting animals» all their lives. The family is the most important unit. People do not realize their potentials completely. IV. Agree or disagree with the following statements. Give your arguments: 1. 2. 3. 4. Mental and physical activity is a dominant driving force. Safety needs are the strongest in human beings. In their work people do not think of their self-esteem at all. Most of us are blind to our true potentials. V. Make up a list of problems raised in the text. Which one is the most important? Why do you think so? VI. Make up a plan of the text. VII. Explain the theory of hierarchy suggested by A. Maslow. Text 2 I. Read the text and give its general idea in Russian: Management - Science or Art? The management is not an easy process. Every person at work has a unique character, set of skills, attitudes and weaknesses. Every group of people working together will behave differently from every other group because of its individuality. Every manager is different and so is his relationship with the people he manages. Each management process is under unique conditions. Using a simple analogy it is rather like playing on the same golf course every day. The course remains the same but the combination of conditions makes every round unique. 18 What the good manager needs to know is the following. A successful manager has the ability to «read» the characters and behaviour of his colleagues. This enables them to act in the right way at the right time and as a result to win loyalty, enthusiasm and effort from those around them. How do good managers do it? Good managers study human behaviour - including their own. People's characters are formed in different ways, the interplay between their intellect and their emotions varies widely. Their capacities for insecurity, aggression, anxiety and ambition also differ greatly. With this kaleidoscope of human types what is it that gives the manager the insight he needs? The answer lies in having an understanding of the general characteristics of behaviour and relating this knowledge to specific individuals and to the team. Plus the ability to learn from his own experience and that of others. Notes: Anxiety - тревожность ambition — тщеславие II. Make up questions to the text and ask your friend to answer them. III. Explain: a) why the management is not an easy process; b) what is understood by a good manager; c) what managers should study IV. Discuss in the group: a) characteristics of an ideal manager; b) optimal working conditions; c) what is better - to manage or to have a good manager. 19 Text 3 I. Read the text and be ready to answer the questions: 1. 2. 3. 4. What experiments does the laboratory carry out? How do people relax? What do the psychologists recommend? How do the psychologists try to help people? A Calm Person Works Calmly Any firm in this country is motivated by the consideration of Man's well-being. But Man is also a productive force that keeps a business going. A thoughtful approach is needed not to divide the two concepts of Man as a productive force and as the main concern. Special efforts are also needed to ensure that the principal goal - Man's well-being - is the focus of attention every day and every hour. A special social-psychological service has been set up in many firms to help make its principal goal a reality. The service is a laboratory and a group of psychology experts. The laboratory carries out experiments, using visual display units, to study the ability for team work, the characters of the working people and their manager. Other methods include questionnaires, polls, and specially-oriented studies. They produce either immediate results or give recommendations a bit later. Fatigue is studied from every angle - the nature of work, age, sex, and working conditions. And the recommendations vary. In one case it is an additional 15-minute break in work spent in relaxation room. Sitting in an atmosphere of quiet, coolness and semidarkness people hear a soft voice talking about self-training. This is followed by watching a beautiful scenery on the screen to the accompaniment of music. Fifteen 20 minutes of this relaxation can make a person feel as if he has been away from work for several hours. In another case physical exercise, some sitting-up exercises may be recommended, or a person may be advised to go to refreshment room and have a glass of specially-prepared cocktail of juices. There are certain monotonous, mechanical jobs in which only part of the brain is used. According to the psychologists, the other part can and should be used for the general development. So a psychologist would go to such people and talk about new films, plays or books. He does his best to help workers overcome stress situations. Notes: fatigue – усталость scenery – пейзаж to overcome – преодолеть II. III. Read the text again and explain why it is headlined in such way. Read the article and say what you think of its contents: If you Lose your Job – Ways to Survive Interview with Mr. May, Financial Planner Q. Mr. May, is it possible for a person to emerge unscathed from a long period of being out of job? A. I’d say unscathed would be too optimistic. But it’s certainly possible to plan ahead and to survive a period of unemployment without deep emotional and psychological scars. Especially in this recession, the whole concept of longterm job security – whether it be in government, the auto 21 industry or whatever – is changing. People seem more aware that if they’re laid off they may not get called back. Q. What’s the most painful part of unemployment? A. For most people, it’s psychological and emotional stress. There are four stages that people seem to go through when they lose a job. The first usually is panic: «What am I going to do financially, personally?» Second is guilt: «I’m not worth anything. My coworkers are still there and I’m not. Something must be wrong with me.» The third step, usually, is to turn it outward and say, «Aha! It wasn’t me, it was that guy.» You externalize the blame and really get angry at the world, your boss or whomever. It’s not until the last stage, which is renewed selfconfidence and determination, that you are in a frame of mind to convince someone to hire you. That, in the end, is what all the career books and counseling sessions really do: They build you back up, convince you that it wasn’t anything personal. Q. Just how can someone cope with psychological stress? A. The main thing is to realize that you’re not alone, that this is not unique situation. I liken it to divorce and death. It’s in that magnitude of psychological, emotional trauma. You should be willing to ask for help and to communicate with others. A lot of strong-willed people never do. They even hide it from family and friends to the extent that they fake going to work in the morning. Sometimes, it’s weeks before they are found out because they won’t admit it to themselves and their world. IV. Answer the following questions: 1. What effect may a long period of unemployment produce? 2. What stages of psychological state does a person out of work go through? 22 3. Why do some people conceal their unemployment from their close relatives? 4. Do you consider Mr. May's advice helpful? 5. How would you react in a similar situation? V. Role-play: 1. You are talking with a manager. You are interested in his methods of management, his successes and failures. 2. You would like to organize a social-psychological service at your work. You discuss this problem with the manager of your firm. 3. You are working in the firm where there is a special socialpsychological service. Tell the students about the relaxation practice in this service. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: a dominant driving force; a tribal setting; human beings; selfesteem; a set of needs; to be satisfied; to receive support; release of potential; management process; experience; well-being; main concern; to carry out experiments; self-training; to overcome stress situations. II. Give English equivalents for: в частности; за выживание; в некоторой степени; получить признание; скорее чем; управление; навыки; установки; поведение человека; озарение; способность. III. Combine the following words into t h e wordcombinations: human release of working to satisfy to receive to make conditions a contribution a social-psychological service beings needs greatly 23 to differ a productive to set up a principal to give goal potentials support force recommendations IV. Arrange the following in pairs o f synonyms: to answer basic human beings adults importance unique relationship different security to arise ability to include people safety to appear to involve to reply various significance interplay capacity rare grown-ups main V. Make up your own sentences with: to take care of; to satisfy one's needs; to achieve a principal goal; to receive support; to make a contribution; to succeed in; to differ greatly; to study the ability; to overcome stress situations. VI. Think o f the possible situations in which the above-mentioned word-combinations may be used. 24 UNIT III Text I I. Read and translate the text: Memory Many psychologists believe that there are three main kinds of memory: sensory, short-term and long-term. What makes up each of them? Imagine that a friend who collects facts informs you about brain weight: a human brain weighs about 3 pounds, an elephant brain — approximately 13 pounds, a whale brain roughly 20 pounds. How may this information make its way into memory? When you simply hear your friend cite the facts, some remembering that you are aware of is going on. Information that strikes our sense organs is stored on the basis of the so-called sensory memory (SM). Materials held by sensory memory resemble afterimages. Typically, they disappear in less than a second unless they are transferred immediately to a second memory system, short-term memory (STM). How do you transfer sensory data to the short-term store? All you have to do is to attend to the material for a moment. If you listen as your friend talks, you will pass into your short-term memory. The STM is pictured as the centre of consciousness. The STM holds everything we are aware of - thoughts, information, experiences, - at any point in time. The «store» part of STM houses a limited amount of data for some time (usually for about fifteen minutes). We can keep information in SM system longer by repeating it. In addition, the short-term memory «works» as a central executive. It inserts materials into, and removes it from, a third, more or less permanent system, the long-term memory (LTM). 25 To move the information into the long-term store, you probably have to process it. During this deep processing people pay close attention, think about meanings or operate with related objects in long-term memory. While deep processing is one way to remember something, the other one is to repeat the information. The short- and long-term systems continually pass information back and forth. The material in the LTM may be activated and transferred to the ST store. It is the ST system that retrieves both long- and short-term memories. Imagine that someone asks you, «Do people have the largest brain of any 26 animal?» Some time after your friend's lecture, the necessary information will be given quickly, it is in the ST store. If the question about the human brain comes up a year later, you will have to address to your long-term store. II. Answer the following questions: 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. What are the kinds of memory? Where is the information stored? What does the short-term memory hold? How can we keep information in SM system longer? Which system is less permanent: STM or LTM? What is it necessary to do to move the information into the long-term store? III. Complete the following sentences: 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. There are three kinds of memory ... . Information is stored on the basis of ... . Short-term memory is pictured as ... . It holds everything we are aware of ... . We keep information longer by ... During processing people pay ... . The STM and LTM systems pass information ... . IV. Find in the text the facts to prove that: 1. It is quite possible to keep information in SM system longer. 2. The STM works as a central executive. V. Explain: 1. The meaning of sensory memory. 2. The mechanism of short-term memory. 3. The mechanism of long-term memory. VI. Look at the diagram that follows the text and describe the system of information processing. 27 VII. Divide the text into logical parts and state the general idea of each part. Text 2 I. Read the following text and find the information about the experiment: Attention Some students try to learn while listening to the radio, talking to friends, and thinking about a coming to-an-end-week. They believe that studying requires only a little attention. But when people divide their attention between several different tasks, performance usually suffers. In one study that supports this idea, the psychologists compared what students could do under several conditions. Subjects in one group listened to a tape of an unfamiliar passage from a psychology text. At the same time, they pushed a button whenever a signal light brightened. Another group of students confronted a more challenging situation. In addition to monitoring the light and attending to the unfamiliar material, they had to ignore a familiar passage presented simultaneously in the other ear by the same voice. Subjects in the «easy» condition reacted more quickly to the signal light and comprehended the passage much more better than the students in the «difficult» condition. While attention can be divided (especially if one task is familiar and easy), concentration helps the processing of complex information. Even something as automatic as reading is not a simple task. You have to identify written words on a page. You must also combine words into phrases and sentences and comprehend the meaning. At the same time, you must think about the meaning of the material and associate new facts with old information and experiences. 28 In short, attention is very important in everyday life. The ability to attend and its opposite, distraction, have been widely studied by the psychologists. The number of outstanding people in psychology studying the phenomenon of attention is rather impressive, including such names as E.B. Titchener, W. James, R.S. Woodworth and G. Piaget. II. Read the text once more and answer: 1. When does performance suffer? 2. What helps the information processing? 3. What is the opposite of attention? III. Speak on: 1. The experiment described in the text. 2. The methods to promote attention. IV. Look through the text and say: 1. Which is the best way to remember things. 2. What our memory is compared with in the text. Learning By Heart Some people have good memories, and can learn easily long poems by heart. But they often forget them as quickly as they learn them. There are other people who can only remember things when they repeat them many times, and then they don't forget them. Charles Dickens, the famous English author, said he could walk down any long street in London and then tell you the name of every shop he had passed. Many of the great men of the world have had wonderful memories. A good memory is a good help in learning a language. Everybody learns his own language by remembering what he hears when he is a small child, and some children — like boys and girls who live abroad with their parents — seem to learn 29 two languages almost as easily as one. In school it is not so easy to learn a second language because the pupils have so little time for it, and they are busy with other subjects as well. The best way for most of us to remember things is to join them in our mind with something which we know already, or which we easily remember because we have a picture of it in our mind. That is why it is better to learn words in sentences, not by themselves; or to see, or do, or feel what a word means when we first use it. The human mind is rather like a camera, but it takes photographs not only of what we see but of what we feel, hear, smell and taste. And there is much work to be done before we can make a picture remain forever in the mind. Memory is the diary that we all carry about with us. V. Give the general idea of the text in English. VI. Make up a list of your own recommendations to remember things properly. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: sensory memory; short-term memory; long-term memory; to cite facts; remembering; to be aware of; to transfer data; to hold in memory; to store (keep) information; to learn by heart. II. Give English equivalents for: собирать факты; органы чувств; человеческий мозг; напоминать; кодировать звуки; сознание; постоянная система; пристальное внимание; обработка информации. 30 III. Combine combinations: the to collect to remember to select to process to store to transfer to resemble to encode to attend to keep in memory to divide to support following words into word- information numbers facts data thoughts ideas material afterimages words sounds pictures attention IV. Give derivatives of: to remember; to attend; to process; to inform; to appear; to be conscious of; to be aware of. V. Make up your own sentences with: to be aware of; to disappear; in addition; to give information; to address to; to attend to. VI. Translate the following proverbs: 1. Creditors have better memories than debtors. 2. Liars have need of good memories. 3. That which was bitter to endure may be sweet to remember. VII. Develop the following situations: 1. It's a great problem for you sometimes to hold in your memory even the slightest things or data. And you envy your friend who can remember quite a number of them. You ask him how he manages to do it. Ask your partner: —what he memorizes more quickly: names or data; —if he practises his memory in any way; 31 - if it is possible for him to remember things by repeating them; - if he has got a special diary to put down some important facts; - how he remembers telephone numbers; - in what way he makes notes of the lectures. 2. Your friend knows English very well. You would like to know it as well as he does. You ask him about his way of learning a language. Ask your partner: - when he started learning English; - how he learned new words; - what is the best way to remember things; - if it is better to learn words or phrases; - if different odors help memorize something; - if attention plays any role in the process of memorizing. 3. Your friend has written an essay on the problem of memory. You have been greatly interested in the phenomenon of memorizing things for a long time. You would like to understand this complicated mechanism. Ask your friend: - what kinds of memory exist; - if short-term memory keeps information long; - what we should do to move information into the longterm store; - what system is less permanent: STM or LTM; - if deep processing of information is the only way to remember something; - what the human mind reminds of. 4. You are an absent-minded person by your nature. You constantly forget your mother's request to buy something. And your mother says you are always in the clouds. You 32 come to a psychoanalyst for advice. Ask him: - if your situation is hopeless; - if your bad memory is associated with mental disorders; - what it is necessary to do to correct the situation; - if you must make some special notes lest you should forget what they mean; if there are many people with the same syndrome of absentmindedness; - what training exercises he can suggest. VIII. Read the article and answer the questions: 1. What is «relative pitch» called? 2. What experiment was made by the US researchers? 3. What was the really interesting finding? 4. What have psychiatrists found out? Music and Memory Some people are able to listen to isolated musical notes and identify them correctly. This rare musical gift is known as «perfect pitch» or «absolute pitch». It is not something that can be learned. Either you have the ability or you haven't. But most people, given the necessary musical training, can acquire what is known as «relative pitch». This is the ability to compare two notes accurately, to name a note by reference to one which has already been played and named. The interesting thing about the difference between these two abilities is that they make use of different brain functions. According to existing evidence, relative pitch is a feature of a highly-trained memory. But people with perfect pitch don't seem to be using memory at all. Instead they seem to have some set of internal «standards» that allows 33 them to name a note without comparing it to anything previously heard. Researchers at the University of Illinois in the USA used this difference to try and identify the parts of the brain used in updating short-term memory. They compared the brain waves of two groups of musicians as they tried to identify a series of computer-generated musical notes. One group had perfect pitch, the other used relative pitch. Each person's brain waves were measured by electrodes placed near the front of the head. The really interesting finding was that what are known as «P300» waves were produced in abundance by the group of musicians without perfect pitch, but scarcely at all by those with perfect pitch. The «P300» wave, then, seems to be an indicator of how much use the brain is making of short-term memory. Scientists had suspected this, but if the only difference between the mental activities of the two groups was whether they were using short-term memory or not, the research appears to confirm it. Psychiatrists now know more about which parts of the brain are associated with short-term memory, but the musical gift of perfect pitch is as much of a mystery as ever. (by John Wilson, from «BBC English») IX. Give sentences. X. the general idea of the article in seven Translate the text in writing: Memory's Mind Games (by Sharon Begley) When it comes to memory problems, forgetting is only the 34 tip of the iceberg, The failings of memory run much deeper than an ability to recall your neighbor's name or the location of your keys. Much recent memory research has focused on why we forget, shedding light on tragedies like Alzheimer's as well as puzzles like why we often know the first letter of a word we're trying to remember but not the rest of it. But unlike absent-mindedness and other «sins of omission», memory's «sins of commission» shape - and often distort - our view of reality and relationships. Some of the sins: Blocking. Somewhere between remembering and forgetting lies blocking. You know that the word for an oration at a funeral begins with a vowel, but it just won't spring into consciousness. Proper names are blocked more often than any other words, memory researchers find, and more in old people than young. The sound of a word is encoded in the brain in a different place from its meaning. If the links from concept to visual representation to the word itself are weak, then we can't get to the word even though we may remember everything about it. You may tickle neurons here, but the reverberations never reach those deeper in the circuit. Sometimes we get to the first sound in the word but no further: the phonemes of words are apparently encoded separately, too. Words we use infrequently are especially subject to this tip-of-the-tongue phenomenon. Misattribution. In misattribution, people unconsciously transfer a memory from one mental category to another — from imagination to reality, from this time and place to that one, from hearsay to personal experience. The brain has made what psychologists call a «binding error», incorrectly linking the content of a memory with its context. The fault may lie in the hippocampus, a seahorse-shaped structure deep in the brain's temporal lobe, whose job includes binding together all facets of a memory. When the hippocampus is damaged, patients are more prone to binding errors. Suggestibility. In this memory error, people confuse personal recollection with outside sources of information. 35 Suggestibility is therefore a form of misattribution, but an especially pernicious one. Leading questions or even encouraging feedback may result in 'memories' of events that never happened. Suggestibility can lead to false eyewitness identities, because even seemingly innocuous feedback can distort recall. In one study, psychologist Gary Wells of Iowa State University showed volunteers a security video of a man entering a Target store. Moments later, Wells told them, the man murdered a guard. He then showed them photos and asked them to identify the gunman (who actually appeared in none of the snapshots). Good, you identified the actual suspect, the scientists told some of the volunteers. Those who received this encouragement later told Wells they were more confident in their recall and had had a better view of the man on the video than those who were not praised for their 'correct' ID. Certainty and your assurance that you got a good look at the suspect are the kinds of details a jury uses when weighing eyewitness testimony. Positive feedback seems to cement memory and even erase any original uncertainty. Persistence. Memories that refuse to fade tend to involve regret, trauma and other potent negative emotions. All emotions strengthen a memory, but negative ones seem to write on the brain an indelible link. That's especially true if the memory reinforces your self-image: if you think of yourself as a screw-up, you'll have a hard time erasing the memory of the time you spilled wine on your boss. Bias. It is a cliché that couples in love recall their courtship as a time of bliss, while unhappy pairs recall that «I never really loved him (or her).» But the cliché is true. We rewrite our memories of the past to fit our present views and needs. That may be an outgrown of forgetting: we can't recall how we felt in the past, so we assume it must be how we feel today. But often bias arises when more powerful mental systems bully poor little memory. The left brain, driven to keep thoughts of yesterday and today from conflicting, reconciles past and present. 36 Stereotyping can also bias memory. When memory conflicts with what you're convinced is true, it often comes out of the losing end. And that can make forgetting where you put your keys seem trivial indeed. («NEWSWEEK» 2002) 37 UNIT IV I. Read and translate the text: Is There a Secret of Long Life? Mankind has been seeking to unravel the mystery of long life for more than millennium, with hundreds of hypotheses and theories being suggested. It has become evident that long life comes from a whole set of factors, such as purely genetic, but also biological factors and, of course, successful social adaptation. Whereas until quite recently long life in the scientific community was the subject of close attention for gerontologists alone, in recent years, biologists, ethnographers, ecologists, psychologists and sociologists have also joined in with the research. The distinctive feature of their approach is that rather than examining individual centenarians, the scientists today study entire populations, i.e., large groups, among whom many people have lived long lives, and what is most essential, long lives in these groups have become a regular occurrence in the course of history. Scientists compare «long-living» groups with control populations with shorter lives in the vicinity. Today’s centenarians are people who were as a rule born and lived in one place, without going anywhere, without changing either habits, occupations or diets. Moreover, it has been discovered that the studies played down the role of the psychological factor. We call it «a psychic health factor». It deserves special attention and can prove to be one of the main reasons for longevity as a regular occurrence. What is it? In the first place, this is what we describe as the gerontophile atmosphere, a socio-psychological milieu of marked respect for the old people. This undoubtedly has a 38 favourable effect on the tonus and optimistic mood among the elderly and maintains their interest in life and longevity as a whole. Secondly, and this is even more important, there are anti stress attitudes incorporated in society. These are mutual relations which are designed to relieve stress both among individuals and whole groups. The strong family and kinship have a strong positive effect, especially in dramatic situations following death or illness. In other words, we must live without stresses. So anti-stress behaviour is perhaps the most important thing. With time this will enable the geneticists to extend the natural life span. However, we should not really pin our hopes on this. A comprehensive study of longevity can help scientists not so much to increase the time that any human being spends here on Earth, as to prolong his active life which is worth living as much as possible. II. Answer the following questions: 1. What factors influence our life? 2. What scientists are interested in the problem of long life? 3. How do they organize their research? 4. What people comprise today's centenarians? 5. What factor plays a leading role in longevity? 6. What is this factor called? 7. What is meant by the gerontophile atmosphere? 8. What attitude should be incorporated in society? 9. What is the aim of geneticists III. Find the facts in the text to prove that: 1. A great number of scientists are engaged in the research of long life. 2. The gerontophile atmosphere is necessary for people to live longer. 3. Anti-stress behaviour is the most important thing. 39 IV. Agree or disagree with the following statements. Give your arguments. 1. It is quite possible to live a long life. 2. Only genetic factor plays a main part in the life span. 3. In stressful situations we become strong and healthy. 4. It is necessary to create a socio-psychological milieu of mutual respect. V. Make up a list of problems raised in the text. Which one do you think to be of primary importance? Why? VI. Make up a plan of the text. VII. Speak on the text. VII.Read the text and give its general idea in Russian: Possible Human Life Expectancy The biologists have arrived at the conclusion that maximum human life expectancy constitutes 170-200 years, provided a person doesn't die of illness. Men and women have equal chances. To determine a person's possible life-span it is necessary to possess practical data on their life history in the period between two and 30 years of age. The more comprehensive the data are, the more accurately a computer will estimate the possible life-span. The hypothesis is based on that when a person ages, the water content in cells, the kidneys’ filtrating ability and the vital capacity of the lungs - all become reduced. And on the whole the weight of both men and women reduces. 40 It has been proved that in the process of development, growth and ageing of everything living, the change in the mass serves, as it were, the sum total of all the changes. The gerontologists are unanimous that a person very rarely dies due to the total loss of life force. Usually death results from the increase in pathological changes due to different diseases. Taking this into account, the doctors will be able to determine more accurately the methods of treating their patients, and prescribe medicines which would be most effective for the given person. Notes: life expectancy — продолжительность жизни comprehensive - исчерпывающий cell - клетка kidneys – почки IX. Make up 6 questions to the text and ask your friend to answer them. X. Explain: a ) how it is possible to determine a person's life -span; b)what changes take place in the human organism throughout life; c) what gerontologists deal with. XI. Discuss in the group: a) maximum human life expectancy; b) the biologists' hypothesis; c) the doctors’ task to prolong patients’ life. XII. Read the text and be ready to answer the questions: 1. What problem does the text deal with? 2. What do the latest statistical data show? 3. What information about migration does the article contain? 4. What place does Russia occupy in population? 41 More Deaths Than Births In Russia According to 1989 census, Russia's population was as high as 147,4 mln. It looked as if we would soon celebrate the birth of the 150 millionth inhabitant of Russia. The latest statistical figures have dashed this hope. Russia's population has started decreasing. A year ago the first publications appeared in the press about a phenomenon that was unprecedented for Russia since the war: the mortality rate had surpassed the birth rate. In 1992, 11 percent fewer people were born than in the previous year, while the number of those who died increased by 5 percent. The number of second and third children born into families had declined by almost a quarter. The losses from the fall in the birth rate and the rise in the death rate are so high that they are not compensated by the increased influx of migrants into Russia from the countries of «the near abroad». According to the figures of Russia's Ministry of Internal Affairs, there were over 360,000 refugees and forced migrants in 1993. Russians' emigration to countries other than the former republics of the USSR remains high: over 80,000 people were granted permission to leave for a permanent place of reside nce abroad during 1993. Hundreds of thousands of migrants to Russia are in bad need of jobs, housing, medical services and social security. Today Russia is the world's sixth largest country in population (after China, India, USA, Indonesia and Brazil). To stop the birth rate fall it is necessary to at least stabilize the economic situation in the country. It is more important to keep its political integrity intact. Then the deepening of the demographic crisis may come to a halt. 42 Notes: census — перепись mortality rate (death rate) - уровень смертности birth rate - уровень рождаемости influx — приток refugee — беженец XIII. Discuss in the group: a) reasons of birth rate decrease; b) psychological factors that influence birth rate. XIV. Read the text and explain why it is headlined in such a way: Mysteries of Sex? Or Why Women Live Longer? We rarely stop and think why Nature has created living beings of two different sexes, such as men and women. Nevertheless, if we understand this, we can explain why women live longer than men. A higher mortality rate is peculiar not only to people, but also to animals and plants. Any living system does not exist in isolation, but in a certain environment which constantly changes. In order to survive, therefore, it should grasp these changes and quickly adapt to them. There is a contradiction between the environment and a living organism in the mutual relations. To achieve a better state of preservation, a living system must be as «remote» from the environment as possible. On the other hand, to be aware of the changes, it should be «closer» to the environment. How can we eliminate this conflict? Solution One. The living system must stay at the most favourable distance from the environment. Solution Two. The system must be divided into two subsystems connected with each other. One of the subsystems must be moved closer to the environment in 43 order to obtain the necessary information, and the other must stay at a distance so as to be able to preserve the information. It is the male's job to be aware of these changes or of the information obtained from the environment, and the female has to preserve and pass on the genetic information. Men are more sensitive than women and less tolerant to distress, heat, cold, hunger and unpleasant situation at work. As a rule, men are the first to die in extreme situations. The female organism is more flexible, and can adapt to the changing environment better. It is known for certain, for example, that a woman's body can adjust itself to a cold climate better than a man's. More women than men survive extreme or stress-type situations. Because of their greater vulnerability, men develop more often such diseases as heart attacks, cancer, and mental diseases. The pioneering spirit and the need for risk have been built into the male subsystem by Nature. It has been proved by the experiment with rats. They were placed in a separate room and had enough food and water. In one of the walls a narrow slit was left leading to another room where there was a cat. The she-rats did not venture into the slit which led to an unfamiliar place. Some males, however, were curious and went through, only to be caught by the cat. Having lost their lives, they warned the rest about the cat and saved their lives. Being in the «vanguard» of the population, men are exposed more to the environment. If its fatal influence is removed and the best possible conditions are provided, men will live longer. Yet, there are more centenarian men than women. 44 XV. Translate the text into Russian. XVI. What interesting information did you get from the text? XVII. Role-play: 1. You are interviewing a centenarian. What possible questions can you ask him? 2. You are a gerontologist. Tell the students about the problems you are dealing with. 3. You are leaving the country. Explain why you are going abroad forever. XVIII. Would you like to live longer? Read the article and follow its recommendations. Do Something Now Did you realize that once you've passed the age of twenty, you start to die? Of course, it takes fifty years or so in most cases, but it's not something you want to hurry, is it? Once past twenty, your body begins to wear out, very slowly. Or not so slowly, depending on the way you treat it. But you can slow the march of time to stay young longer and enjoy an active and healthy life for as many of those years as possible. And you cannot begin too soon. Teenagers find it difficult — if not impossible — to imagine becoming middle-aged, let alone old. Young people are naturally fit, but unless you get into the habit of taking regular exercise and conditioning yourself to do so, you will find it more and more difficult as you get older. So what are you going to do about it? First, I must emphasize that anything I write from now on applies only to people in normal health and with no medical problems. 45 For a start, check your weight. Jump up and down in front of a mirror. If everything wobbles, you're overweight; if some of it wobbles, you're still overweight. So watch your diet and burn off the excess with a fitness programme which will prolong youth and life. The easiest way to reach and maintain fitness is through sport. It's fun and it has social and psychological advantages. But if sport holds no appeal, you'll have to do it the hard way - and it will require will-power. Not at the start, but in order to keep going when the novelty wears off. It is vital to progress slowly. First, jog as far as you can. Then do some simple form of exercise - sit ups or press ups will do — for as long as you can. Set no targets. Simply discover your starting point. If you repeat your exercise daily, you will automatically make progress. What is unbearable the first few sessions will gradually become within your scope. How can you tell when you are fit? When you can run three miles (slightly less for girls) without getting exhausted. ( b y Dick Norman, from «Current») WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: to unravel the mystery; social adaptation; close attention; a distinctive feature; to deserve special attention; in the first place; secondly; as a whole; in other words; to pin one's hopes on; to be worth of. II. Give English equivalents for: долгожитель; менять привычки; долголетие; среда; генетик; этнограф; продлить жизнь; несомненно; человек; человечество; геронтолог; определять. 46 III. Make up sentences with the following wordcombinations: to deserve special attention; to pay attention to; to draw attention to; to attend to; to be in the centre of attention. IV. Arrange in pairs of antonyms: to seek recently important to relieve positive death to extend to increase prolong different to fall to stop insignificant birth to shorten to begin to lose to enhance to narrow similar long ago negative to decrease to rise V. Substitute the italicized words with the similar ones. Choose them from the brackets: (community; elderly; to unravel; adaptation; milieu; death rate; disease) 1. For many years people have been trying to discover the mystery of long life. 2. Social setting plays a great part in prolonging human life. 3. Social adjustment is one of the main factors to be taken into account. 4. Death is connected with organic changes in the human body as a result of different illnesses. 5. Mortality rate increased in Russia by 5 per cent. 6. Undoubtedly the old people should be respected by youngsters. 7. The scientific society of psychologists, gerontologists, biologists pays due attention to the lifespan problems. 47 VI. Make up situations with the following wordcombinations: to to to to to to to to create socio-psychological environment respect the old people have positive effect prolong life-span relieve stresses experience pleasant emotions take care of go in for public activities 48 UNIT V Exercises For Pleasure I. Missing words - people's characteristics. Fill in the blanks with missing words: ambitious, rude, strict, obstinate, sympathetic, intelligent, moody, immature, conceited (big-headed) 1. John is always telling people how well he plays the guitar. He is so ... . 2. Many girls of 16 and 17 are too ... to get married and have children. 3. I see Clive's passed all his exams again. It must be wonderful to be so ... . 4. The trouble with Jane is that she is so ... . One minute she is laughing, the next she is sulking. You just don't know where you are with her. 5. One of the things I like about Pamela is that she is so ... . If you have a problem you know you can go to her and that she'll listen to you and try to help all she can. 6. Mrs. Green's children are so.... They never say «please» or «thank you» and only last week I heard them swearing at the postman. 7. My son is very ... . He doesn't want to work in an office all his life. In fact he keeps telling me that one day he is going to be Prime Minister. 8. My husband never sees my point of view. He has opinions and nothing I say will ever change them. He is so ... . 9. When I was a teenager, my father was very ... . He would never allow me to wear make-up or have a boyfriend, and if I went out with friends I always had to be home by 10 o'clock. 49 II. Write down a synonym for each of the words on the left, choose from the ones on the right. Number I has been done for you: 1. sad unhappy 2. amusing 3. wicked 4. hard-working 5. stubborn 6. curious 7. polite 8. angry 9. exciting 10. terrible 11. shy evil thrilling funny furious dreadful industrious reserved well-mannered inquisitive obstinate III. Words to describe temporary moods, states and feelings. Fill in the blanks with missing words. Use each word once only. sympathetic amazed terrified unconscious depressed pregnant embarrassed offended drowsy relieved sober desponded homesick faint nostalgic preoccupied tense upset disgusted disappointed furious weary giddy listless thrilled dejected 1. My father was ... when I told him that I had crashed his car. I don't think I have ever seen him so angry. 2. The boxer hit his opponent so hard that he was knocked … 50 3. Alison was very ... when she heard that her mother had been taken to hospital. 4- When I first moved to Sweden I felt very ... — I missed Russia so much. 5. She was really ... when she heard that she had got the job. 6. I spoke to her, but she was too ... to notice me. 7. My sister was ... when her friend's dog started barking at her. 8. She was very ... when I told her that I had lost my job. 9. I felt really ... when my mother started telling my girlfriend about the strange habits I used to have when I was a child. 10. My husband was really thrilled when I told him that I was ... . 11. You look ... , Alan. Cheer up! Things can't be that bad. 12. The sight of blood always makes me feel ... . 13. Listening to «She loves you» by the Beatles made me feel very ... . 14. She felt very ... when the doctor told her that it wasn't a cancer. 15. Lying in the sun made me feel very ... . 16. Amanda was so ... when she failed her driving-test, she had really set her heart on passing it first time. 17. The hotel room was so dirty that I felt thoroughly ... and complained to the manager. 18. My cousin was deeply ... when 1 didn't invite him to my wedding. 19. When we heard that he had passed the exam we were all ... . 20. I hate the heat — it makes me so ... . I just don't want to move or do anything. 21. He told me that his wife left him he felt really ... . Life didn't seem worth living, and he even contemplated committing suicide. 22. I felt very ... before the interview. But once I actually started talking I began to relax. 23. Although he was perfectly ... when he arrived at the party, by 11.30 he was as drunk as everyone else. 24. When Mary refused to go out with him, John felt really ... . 51 25. After walking for 6 hours we were so … that we couldn't go on. 26. I always feel ... when I look down from the top of a high building. IV. Choose the answer. Choose the correct answer for each of the following: 1. If a person is conceited, he or she is ... . a) careful d) suspicious b) shy e) crazy c) big-headed 2. What is the opposite of «rude»? a) certain d) courteous b) impolite e) successful c) clean 3. To be «broken» is ... . a) to be ill d) to be without friends b) to be sad e) to be in love c) to be without money 4. Which of these words means «hard-working»? a) flighty d) conscious b) industrial e) industrious c) job V. Choose the word. Choose the word which best completes each sentence. 1. He is always telling me what to do. He is so ... . a) cruel b) bossy c) helpful d) charming 2. He wants to get to the top before he is thirty. He is very ... . a) tall b) ambitious c) intelligent d) industrial 3. John always arrives on time. He is so ... . a) careful b) boring c) punctual d) timeless 4. I was very ... for all the advice she gave me. a) glad b) grateful c) in debt d) pleased 52 VI. Opposites — adjectives. Find the opposites of the words on the left. Choose from the ones on the right. Number 1 has been done for you: Adjectives 1. harmless 2. generous 3. permanent 4. industrious 5. friendly 6. dull 7. daring 8. narrow-minded 9. real 10. horrible 11. gradual 12. keen (on) 13. fortunate Opposites harmful lazy broad-minded timid sudden unfortunate mean wonderful hostile temporary uninterested exiting imaginary VII. Synonyms - adjectives. Give a synonym for each of the words in brackets in the following sentences. Choose them from the ones below: odd attractive cheeky unbelievable enormous big-headed bashful keen enjoyable obstinate vital appalling 1. He was one of the most (good-looking) men she had ever seen. 2. We had a really (pleasant) time in Brighton last week. 3. David is always telling people how good he is at everything. He is so (conceited). 4. The play last night was (terrible). At least half the audience walked out in the middle of it. 5. There is something very (peculiar) about Mr. Brown's behaviour today. Didn't you notice? 53 6. Have you seen James and Sally's new house? It's really (huge). 7. He won't take my advice. He is so (stubborn). 8. I was always very (shy) as a child and hated going to parties or meeting new people. 9. My son loves school. In fact, in some ways he is too (enthusiastic), I mean, it's the only thing he ever talks about. 10. I think Martha is going to have a lot of problems with her children. They are so (rude) to everyone. 11. You must read this story - it's quite (incredible)! 12. Hard work and ambition are (essential) if you want to get on life. VIII. Definitions — types of people. Fill in the missing words in the definitions below. Choose from the following: chauvinistic illiterate bilingual erudite gullible vivacious versatile magnanimous indefatigable scintillating convivial greedy A/an ... person is someone who has a variety of skills and abilities and who is able to change easily from one sort of activity to another. A/an ... person is someone who is very friendly and fond of eating, drinking and good company. A/an ... person is who is very generous towards other people. '1. A/an ... person is someone who always wants more than his or her fair share of something - especially food, money or power. 5. A/an ... person is someone who is easily taken in or tricked by others. 54 6. A/an ... person is someone who believes that the sex he or she belongs to (male or female) is better than the opposite sex in all ways. 7. A/an ... person is someone who is unable to read or write. 8. A/an ... person is someone who is fluent in two languages. 9. A/an ... person is someone who seems to have so much energy that he or she never tires. 10. A/an ... person is someone who has studied a lot and is very knowledgeable. 11. A/an person is someone who is able to make clever, witty and entertaining remarks in conversation. 12. A/an ... person is someone (usually a woman) who is full of life. IX. Test yourself. 1. You hear an indistinct miaow. Without looking around, how well can you place the cat? a) If you think about it, you can point to it. b) You can point straight to it. c) You don't know if you can point to it. 2. How good are you at remembering a song you have just heard? a) You find it easy, and you can sing the part of it in tune. b) You can do it only if it's simple and rhythmical. c) You find it difficult. 3. A person you have met a few times telephones you. How easy is it for you to recognize that voice in a few seconds before the person identifies himself? a) You find it quite easy. c) You recognize the voice at least half the time. b) You recognize the voice less than half the time. 4. You are with a group of married friends. Two of them are having an affair. Would you detect this? a) Nearly always. b) Half the time. c) Seldom. 55 5. You are introduced to five strangers at a large social gathering. If the names are mentioned the following day, how easy is it for you to picture their faces? a) You remember most of them. b) You remember a few of them. c) You seldom remember any of them. 6. In your early school days, how easy was spelling and writing the essays? a) Both were quite easy. b) One was easy. c) Neither was easy. 7. You spot a parking place, but you need to reverse into it - and it's going to be a fairly tight squeeze. a) You look for another place. b) You back into it — carefully. c) You reverse into it without much thought. 8. You've spent three days in an unfamiliar village and someone asks you which way is north. a) You're unlucky to know. b) You're not sure but given a moment you can work it out. c) You point north. 9. You're in a dentist's waiting room. How close can you sit to people of the same sex as yourself without feeling uncomfortable? a) Less than six inches. b) Six inches to two feet. c) More than two feet. 10. You're visiting your new neighbour, and the two of you are talking. There is a tap dripping in the background. Otherwise the room is quiet. a) You notice the dripping sound immediately and try to ignore it. b) If you notice it, you probably mention it. c) It doesn't bother you at all. Scoring the test: Males: For each (a) answer, score 10 points. For each (b) answer, score 5 points. 56 For each (c) answer, score minus 5 points. Females: For each (a) answer, score 15 points. For each (b) answer, score 5 points. For each (c) answer, score minus 5 points. Unanswered questions for both sexes count as 5 points. Most males will score between 0 and 60, female between 50 and 100. The overlap-scores between 50 and 60 indicate a slight compatibility between the sexes. Male scores above 60 may show a bias to female mental attributes. Females who score below 50 may show a brain bias to the male thought processes. X. Describing people. Character and personality. Match the following adjectives 1-20 with the correct meanings a-t to form complete sentences. People who are: 1 absent-minded something 2 adventurous moved by things a) like to say how good they are at b) have strong feelings and are easily 3 amusing c) are rude and disrespectful, especially towards people like parents and teachers 4 bashful d) are always trying to control others without worrying or caring about how they feel 57 5.boastful e) deliberately try to hurt or harm others 6. bright f) are very forgetful because they are too busy thinking about other things 7. calm g)are sure of themselves and their abilities 8. cheeky h)are easily tricked and tend to believe everything they are told 9. conceited i) are very clever and learn things quickly 10. confidentj) hate having to wait for things and are not very tolerant of other people weaknesses 11. creative k) are very interested and excited about something and this shows in the way we talk or behave 12. domineering l) are daring and always ready to have riscs 13. down-to-earth m) are always friendly and welcoming towards guests 14. emotional n) don’t get excited or nervous about things 15. enthusiastic o) find it hard to accept or understand new or different ideas 16. gullible p) are very funny and make you laugh 17. hospitable q) are very practical and honest 18. impatient r) have a very high opinion of themselves 19. malicious s) find it easy to produce new and original ideas and things 20. narrow-minded t) are shy and feel uncomfortable in social situations XI. Develop the following situations: 1. You are writing a paper on the theme: «Major Personality Characteristics». You experience some hardships in your research. You come to your scientific advisor to receive some explanations. Ask him: 58 - if it is a correct trend to divide all people into extroverts and introverts; - what is meant by personality traits; - what he thinks whether a personality formation is genetically predisposed; - what role the family plays in shaping a personality; - how a social setting influences the personality development; - at what age the personality character is formed. 2. Your friend is sure that our mood and emotional state depend on the weather and horoscope forecasts. You are not inclined to believe in astrology but still you ask some questions on the subject. Ask him: - what his sign of zodiac is; - what positive characteristics his star sign supposes; - whom he is like in character: his mother or father; - if he has got any negative traits; - if he believes in horoscope forecasts partly or completely; - what he does to match his star sign. 3. You are making up a questionnaire in order to find out basic personality characteristics and categorize them. Ask your respondent: - how he feels in an unfamiliar situation; - what helps him feel at ease; - in what situation he feels shy and worried; - what he considers to be the necessary qualities to feel comfortable everywhere; - if he can describe the most pleasant situation in his life; - what he experiences seeing beggars in the streets. 59 4. Your friend has just come from England. He had a chance to study there for three weeks. He spoke with a number of the British people noted for their peculiar features. You are eager to receive information first-hand. Ask him: - how he would characterize the English as a separate nation; - if they are as reserved as they seem to be; - what relationships exist between different generations; - what are the most distinctive features of their character; - in what dwellings the British people live; - why they prefer to live in cottages. Text I I. Read the text and answer the following questions: 1. What should we do to balance our emotions, to keep quiet? 2. What is the most important thing we can do according to the text? 3. What phrases are often used in the people's intercourse in the USA? Don't Worry! Cheer Up! We say all these things to balance our emotions and gain strength. But it is not as easy as it seems. So, what's the answer? We cannot go and live on a desert island. There are lots of things we can do of course. We can take more exercise. We can eat less, smoke less, we can have a well-organized rest. But perhaps the most important thing we can do is to learn to relax. Stress grows very slowly. It is made up of all the little things that make us tense, day after day, year after year. Every time we relax, every time we put our feet up, every time we have 60 a cup of tea and a chat with an old friend we take away some of the tension that causes stress. Americans worry about relaxing. They take classes to learn how to relax. They read books that tell them how to «take it easy». Relaxing is a multidollar industry in the USA. So, why not master this skill and do it on your own (without paying much money)? But before your start, think of what doctors say nowadays, «Too much relaxation is bad for you too». Answer: In «Relaxation»? what way do you understand the term II. Read the recommendations given by psychologist and take them into consideration: «What Are The Ways To Prevent Tiredness?» the 1. Rest before you get tired (not after). 2. Learn to relax. If you're having a tough time, find a quiet half an hour all to yourself to gain strength and balance. 3. Don't forget about four good working habits: a) Clear your desk of all papers except those you need closely at hand. b) Do things in order of their importance. c) When you face a problem, first analyze the facts to make a decision. 4. Put enthusiasm into your work, it is the only way to enjoy what you are doing. 5. Remember, no one was ever killed by doing well-organized work (The busiest man finds the most leisure). 6. Don't be a mental loafer. Don't be afraid to concentrate on some ideas, to think hard and to exercise your will and memory. 7. Don't forget about good manners, avoid getting hot-tempered. 8. Take time to get the facts before you act. 61 9. Live and learn, analyze your mistakes. 10. Think and act cheerfully and you will feel cheerful; keep smiling. III. When we give advice we often use the words «should» and «shouldn't». Now read the story and give some advice: Mr. Miller is a businessman. He has just had a heart attack and is now in hospital. Mr. Miller is a heavy smoker and drinks heavily too. He works very, very hard, both at the office and at home. He also worries about his work. He drives a big, comfortable car, cats large business lunches and never takes any exercise. He is married, has two lovely children, though he doesn't see them very often. The last time he had a real holiday was three years ago. Fortunately, Mr. Miller has survived his heart attack. Now, what's your advice to be? (Use: I think you should; I don't think you should; you shouldn't ...). IV. Read the story and tell its contents in Russian: Pets Are Good For Us Perhaps the British are too good to their pets? But more interesting is a recent theory amongst psychologists that pets are very good for us. Dr. R. writes: The basic meaning of «pet» is an animal we keep for emotional rather than economic reasons. A pet animal is kept as a companion, and we all need companions to keep us feeling happy. But pets offer us more than mere companionship; they 62 invite us to love and be loved. Many owners feel their pets understand them, for animals are quick to sense anger and sorrow. Often a cat or dog can comfort us at times when human words don't help. We feel loved, too, by the way pets depend on us for a home, for food and drink. Dogs especially look up to their owners, which makes them feel important and needed. A pet can be something different to each member of the family, another baby to the mother, a sister or brother to an only child, a grandchild to the elderly, but for all of us pets provide pleasure and companionship. It has even been suggested that tiny pets should be sent as companions to astronauts on spaceships, to help reduce the stress and loneliness of space flights. In this Plastic Age, when most of us live in large cities, pets are particularly important for children. A pet in the family keeps people in touch with the more natural, animal world. Seeing an animal give birth brings understanding of the naturalness of childbirth. Learning to care for a pet helps a child to grow up into a loving adult who feels responsible towards those dependent on him. Rightly we teach children to be good to their pets. They should learn, too, that pets are good for us human beings. (From «New Avenues in Reading») V. Read the story and be ready to tell its contents in English: . The Englishmen's Garden The English like growing flowers. It's a useful occupation because it doesn't harm anyone. In winter the most romantic thing for some people is to pick up a seed catalogue and look at the brightly coloured pictures of summer flowers. Even people with a tiny patch of ground in towns like growing plants and people who have never seriously tried to speak any foreign 63 language carefully learn the Latin names of the flowers they plant, so that they can tell their friends. If you want to please an English person, be very polite about his garden. He will probably tell you about his garden. So you listen and say: «How interesting! How clever of you!» The English gardens are internationally famous. Some of them are very beautiful, especially the big ones that are open to the public. Notes: a seed catalogue - каталог семян a tiny patch - крошечный участок Text 2 I. Read and translate the text: Handwriting Secrets Revealed The principles of graphology are very simple. Everything on a page of handwriting - or missing from it -says something about the writer. It is like a jigsaw where all the pieces fit together but have a hidden message as well as a revealed image. Many of the deductions made in handwriting analysis are really commonsense. Think about how people behave at a party: some people love the noise and beat of the music and spend most of their time dancing, enjoying the attention their actions attract. Others prefer to find somewhere quiet and talk with friends. We make judgments of character from this behaviour. We could make similar judgments by looking at people's handwriting. 64 The showy, affectionate, active person will have large, flamboyant writing which demands the reader's attention, together with other signs of an extrovert character. The quieter, more reflective soul will have smaller, probably neater and more controlled writing, with pointers to a slightly less exhibitionist personality. Two of the most common things people say about handwriting are: «I have two styles of writing»; and «I can't read anything my doctor writes!» Taking the first statement, it is true that some people have styles of writing that appear, on first sight, to be different. However, closer examination usually reveals that the key character indicators are the same in both examples: the changes are merely cosmetic. Being more relaxed and not feeling that what you are writing is of great significance does affect the look of the writing — rather as if you have changed from a business outfit to jeans and a T-shirt. On the question of doctors' writing, it seems to be true that many members of the medical profession have a particularly illegible script. There are two reasons for this. The first is doctors are usually under a lot of pressure and are carrying out the task as quickly as possible. They write in a hurry, and although this does not invariably lead to neglected letter forms, it can have an effect. The second, and more revealing point, is that illegible writing is subconsciously deliberate: the writer does not want everyone to be able to read it. Why? Well, doctors like lawyers and some other professionals are in the secret business. Part of their job involves knowing things but not letting on. This requirement has crept into their writing style. The first thing to do with any piece of writing you wish to analyze is to take a long careful look at the page and the general impression the writing creates. 65 Is it neat and tidy, or messy? Is it easy to read? Does it flow smoothly and fluently across the page? Is it full of eccentricities and odd shapes? You can be sure that the writer deliberately produced it in this form, even if the reasons are subconscious. Many people protest: «I do all I can to make my writing neat, but it always turns out a mess.» They cannot contradict their true nature: they may wish they were perfectionists, superorganized and superb communicators, but if they are not, their handwriting will show their real self. Messy writing does not necessarily indicate a messy person: they may be highly adaptable and versatile, or hyperactive, for example. The bigger the writing, the more emotional (which can mean sentimental or impulsive - or other traits which stem from emotions) is its author. Equally, the smaller the size of the overall text, the more perfectionist and inhibited is its writer, and the more they keep a tight hold on their emotions. Small writing indicates a slightly withdrawn, often quite intelligent person. If it is very legible, the writer is pedantic, intelligent, perhaps academic, with excellent powers of concentration, and has low self-esteem. If it is difficult to read, the writer is more independent, perhaps lacking in social skills - a 'difficult' person. In either case, the writer prefers life backstage to out in the glare of the lights. Medium writing indicates someone who is fairly conventional, and has a healthy balance between heart and head. Large writing suggests ambition, generosity, a tendency towards exaggeration and a need for self-expression. Very large writing means watch out! This person is bordering on the obsessional, and will stop at nothing to get his own way, although he will probably switch on something new before the challenge is over. They will encounter many adventures as they barge through life. 66 II. Answer the following questions: 1. What kind of science is graphology? 2. Does graphology help make judgments of people by their handwriting? 3. How does an extrovert write? 4. Can people have two styles of writing? 5. Members of the medical profession have an illegible script, don't they? 6. What are the reasons for that? 7. Messy writing indicates a messy person, doesn't it? 8. What does big writing signify? 9. What can you say about a person with small writing? 10. What does medium writing indicate? 11. What does large writing suggest? III. Copy out all personality characteristics in accordance with: a) messy writing; b) big writing; c) medium writing; d) small writing; e) large writing Do you agree with these characteristics? What is your personal experience? V. Speak on the article. Text3 I. Read the text and answer the questions that follow: Your signature is unique. It is also your public face, it represents you on important documents, on messages to 67 friends: it is your mark of promise, your bond. And it says more about you than any other set of letters. The first thing to consider with the signature is how it compares with the rest of the individual's handwriting. Although signatures tend to be slightly stylized, they echo traits in the script. Any differences between the two show a discrepancy between the writer's view of her own character and how she expects to be regarded - there is something false here. The larger the signature, the greater the writer's self-esteem, and expectation that should be recognized. Large signature: This shows a sense of high status — which may in real life be the case, but in terms of the signature that is not the point. If the signature is larger than the handwriting, the writer carries a pretence of higher self-esteem - and confidence - than is the case. It is a 'front'. Medium size signature (same as handwriting): shows a balance of sense of value and modesty. It is the same size as the script, it shows someone with knowledge of, and acceptance of, how she is perceived. Small signature: The writer expects little esteem from other people. This may imply a high degree of self-motivation and disregard for what people think, but is more likely to be a sign of low self-confidence. If the signature is smaller than the script, the writer does not expect recognition of her worth. It may be this is a deliberate holding-back, a defensive posture. Most people use their full first name and surname. Those who write their initials instead of their Christian names will do so for one of two reasons: a) They prefer the formality and reserve of the more 'businesslike' initials, in which case they are likely to have conventional, perhaps even old-fashioned, values: or b) They deeply dislike their first name. Writing your full name in your signature reveals a more informal, relaxed approach to life. Legibility bears little relation to speed: the fast writer can still be perfectly readable, and the slow writer can have an impossibly messy 68 script. In handwriting and signatures, legibility is, subconsciously, a matter of choice. The same applies in the signature. If the illegible signature closes a business letter, it shows that the writer does not consider their name to be of great importance to the matter in hand: they are a mere functionary. The personal signature may be very different. A consistently illegible signature implies that «you really ought to know who I am, and if you don't, it is your loss!» Arrogance is apparent. If the surname is more legible than the first name, the writer shows reserve on first contact with people — a holding back of familiarity until they get to know a person better. A first name more legible that the surname reveals a more approachable, direct person who will make a great effort to friendly. Complete legibility shows open and straightforward attitudes. The writer is happy to be accepted as she is. The questions to be answered are: 1. What role does your signature play in your personal life? 2. Do signatures echo traits in the script? 3. What do the differences between one's handwriting and signature show? A. What connection is there between the writer's signature and his self-esteem? 5. What does large signature show? 6. Medium size signature shows a balance of sense of value and modesty, doesn't it? 7. What may small signature imply? 8. Why do some people use their full first names and surnames? 9. What does legibility depend on? 10. What do you think of a person who writes his first name more legible than his surname? 11. What does complete legibility show? 69 II. Complete the following sentences: 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. Your signature is unique as ... . Signature tends to ... . The larger the signature, ... . Large signature shows ... . Medium size signature is the same as ... . Small signature implies ... . Most people use their full surname because ... . Legibility bears little relation to ... . III. Characterize the interrelationships between signature and handwriting. VI. Read this item and give its general idea in three sentences: About a fifth of all people are left-handed. Some of them experience difficulty in writing because the act of pushing a pen across the page — as opposed to the pulling notion used by the right-handed writer — causes some problems. Left-handed people have to adapt and hold the pen in a different way to write across the page, and some end up with a very contorted pose in their efforts to achieve this. Provided this does not cause physical pain or affect the handwriting, it does not matter how the left-hander solves the problem. Some sensible suggestions include placing the writing paper slightly to the left, to give the arm more room to move in to; and ensuring that the pen is gripped at least 3 cm from the tip, so that words already written are not smudged or concealed by the moving hand. Using this advice, the left-handed writer should suffer no disadvantage in how she writes - you cannot spot her from her handwriting style. 70 The worst thing you can do is to force her to hold the pen in her right hand, because this repression inflicts deep psychological suffering. V. Reproduce the idea of this Russian article in the English language: Что м о ж н о узнать no почерку Индивидуальный почерк начинает формироваться у ребенка примерно в третьем классе, окончательно складывается годам к 20 и потом меняется каждые десять лет. Полностью подделать чужой почерк действительно невозможно, во всяком случае специалист все равно обнаружит подделку. Возраст по почерку можно определить лишь приблизительно - плюс-минус 5 лет. Особый почерк - старческий (геронтологический), его сразу видно даже неспециалисту. Определить по почерку родственные связи (например, писала мать или дочь) невозможно. Хотя родственные почерки, конечно, похожи, как и некоторые черты характера близких людей. Сейчас все сложнее различать мужской и женский почерк - все чаще женщины приобретают мужские черты характера, и наоборот. А ведь почерк на 90 процентов дает именно психологический портрет. Например, когда буквы в словах соединены непрерывно — это говорит о хороших аналитических способностях, логике, последовательности, способности принимать самостоятельные решения. Крупный почерк считается признаком открытости, доброты. Но имеет значение еще и 71 наклон букв, соединения, нажим и другие детали почерка. Поэтому открытость может сочетаться со стремлением делать все на показ, а также с несдержанностью и глупостью. Обладатели мелкого почерка - как правило, не являются людьми приятного характера. Мелкий почерк часто говорит о скрытности, злобе. Но и здесь важны нюансы. Как человек пишет — с начала листа или отступает от края, - говорит например, о практицизме, душевной широте или скупости. Человек ведь пишет так, как ему удобно. Как правило, размашисто и широко пишут очень яркие талантливые личности. Витиеватый, рисованный почерк может говорить о творческом начале, а также о том, что человек ненадежный, что ему нельзя доверять, что он больше придумывает, чем говорит правду. То есть он может быть большим фантазером, прекрасным писателем, а может быть мошенником или аферистом — это ведь тоже весьма творческие личности. Если человек подавлен, огорчен, влюблен — это все отразится на почерке. Если человек раздражен — почерк заостряется. В хорошем настроении он будет писать более твердо, буквы и строчки будут заканчиваться кверху. Вообще, если строчки задираются вверх -человек, как правило, оптимист. Если человек подавлен, он будет мельчить, строчки не ровные, либо буквы в разные стороны. У капризных людей окончания букв «з», «р», «д» очень длинные. В почерке человека прямолинейного «хвостики» этих букв будут короткие, прямые. Люди скрытные, не уверенные в себе пишут с легким нажимом, очень уверенные - с сильным. Те, кто пишет со значительным левым наклоном, обычно большие оригиналы, достаточно упорные в, как правило, весьма неравнодушны к противоположному полу. Профессия накладывает свой отпечаток: всем известен почерк врачей, которые порой сами не могут понять, что написали. Ничего не поделаешь — это издержки профессии. Но среди врачебных почерков можно выделить почерк хирурга - более тяжелый, более твердый и четкий, чем, например, у терапевта. 72 Пожалуй, единственный почерк который не поддается анализу и может быть любым, — это почерк психиатров. (психографолог Ольга Сердобова) Text IV I. Read the text and say: a)what information is new for you; b) what facts surprised you in any way. How Did i t A l l Begin? Do you ever wonder why people do, or wear, or say certain things? Why they shake hands when they meet or why they wear wigs or trousers? Did you ever say that someone was «mad as a hatter» and then wonder how this saying comes to mean what it does? Many things you say and do could have reasons that date back thousands of years. How did some of those customs begin? Shaking hands. It's very strange to think that shaking hands — a friendly custom today — was originally a means of keeping a stranger's weapon hand where it could do no harm. In primitive times, when man was constantly threatened by beasts and other men, he never went about without some weapon of defense - usually a club. Any stranger was suspect, and upon meeting one, a man could either stand and fight, turn away before discovering if the stranger was a friend or foe, or greet the stranger and possibly become friends. 73 But how could he be sure the stranger would be friendly and how could the stranger trust him in return? There was only one way to show friendly intentions, and that was for both men to lay down their weapons and hold out their empty palms. For added insurance, each would reach for the other's right hand. As long as both men's weapon hands were safely clasped, neither could harm the other. Therefore, a handshake originally was a means of self-defense. Wigs. For thousands of years both men and women considered long hair to be a source of strength, the very source, in fact, of the spirit of life. They believed that long hair frightened enemies and, of course, that it made people more attractive. Warriors especially let their hair grow long; they thought that losing their hair meant losing their strength - and thereby inviting defeat. An abundance of hair was so desirable that people bought wigs to add to whatever hair they already had. Wigs have been used for many purposes through the centuries. Actors, spies, and fugitives have all used them to disguise themselves. Statues of Greek actors from as far back as the fifth century B.C. show elaborate wigs and headpieces, and it is thought that comic servants in Greek plays were easily identified by their bright red or orange wigs. In Europe wigs were not popular until the seventeenth century, when Louis XIII of France became bald. He started using false hair, and his courtiers followed suit. Soon the common people copied the nobility. By the middle of the eighteenth century, there were almost forty different types of wigs with names like the «staircase», the «artichoke», the «pigeon's wig», etc. Just before the French revolution of 1789 wigs up to three feet in height were worn, with blond being the most stylish color. The craze for wigs and the demand for natural hair to make their wigs created some interesting problems. Corpses were shorn of their hair, women and children had to be protected from hair robbers, and poor people made money by selling their hair to the highest bidders. In the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries most educated men had their own hair cut 74 off and made into wigs. They considered this more sanitary than using hair bought from another person or a corpse. (from «Cricket») Notes: Hatter — шляпный мастер Club — дубинка Wig — парик Fugitive — беглец II. Read the article and find answers to the following questions: 1. Why is the field of plastic surgery important? 2. What wonders can plastic surgery work today? 3. What is the leading Russian plastic surgery clinic? 4. What is its new direction? Surgeon. Sculptor or Artist? A plastic surgeon cannot take a break when he works. While making the human body look more harmonious, he is restricted in choosing the time, the place and the means at his disposal. Moreover, he should be able to deal properly with any surprises which can emerge while he is operating on a human body. Those who know about plastic surgery only by hearsay may think it serves only to satisfy some whims or caprices of clients not happy with their own looks - the snub nose, the shape of the ears or too many wrinkles on the neck. But in fact this field 75 of surgery is as important as others, since as a rule, it deals not only with changing a person's appearance, but also with restoring the proper functioning of organs. The plastic surgeon is much more than the average doctor — he must have an exquisite aesthetic taste and should know history and art as well, in order not to mix Venus' Hellenic nose with Caesar's profile. Incidentally, plastic surgery began originally as the plastics of the nose, or «rhinoplasty.» The first cases of rhinoplasty were performed five thousand years ago in India, Tibet and Egypt. It might have begun with the then usual practice of cutting off a criminal's nose for violating the contemporary moral norms. In some Indian tribes prisoners of war were punished by cutting their lips off. In India these deformities were corrected by the lower caste of priests. In ancient Indian books there can be found descriptions on nose surgery using skin taken from the cheeks and forehead. Some potters and even executioners who were ordered to cut the noses could do the operation. This kind of surgery came to Europe many centuries later, with the beginning of the Renaissance period in the 15th century giving an impetus to plastic surgery. Unlike Indian doctors, Italian physicians took the transplantation skin not only from the forehead and cheeks but from the arm as well. The operation itself became more complicated. In Bologna appeared professor Tagliacozzi's illustrated manuscript scientifically describing the details of the transplanting operations. He was the first to operate on lips, taking pieces of skin from the shoulder, and he tried to operate on ears. During this period, however, rhinoplasty was not used widely and remained the privilege of narrow circle of those who knew of its existence. The new phase for plastic surgery began only in the 19th century and continues to this day. India, and later Russia, became the leaders in this field. In Russia, Pirogov, Filatov and Shimanovsky made their contribution by performing new types of plastic surgeries. The applications for plastic surgery became much wider when it became possible to correct not only the shape of the 76 nose or lips, but also of the eyelids, cheeks, ears and breasts. At the beginning of the century the theory of «floating piece of skin» appeared, when some pieces of skin were first transplanted from the breast to the arm and only later to the face. At this time there were also the first attempts at bone transplantations. While in ancient times people undergoing plastic surgery were usually criminals or prisoners of war, from the Middle Ages till today they come from aristocratic and business circles. After world wars plastic surgery found uses primarily with head, face and body wounds. Today plastic surgery is capable of working wonders — it can bring back youthful looks and beauty, giving a new mindset and outlook on life to the patient. In this case the aesthetic and medical aspects are closely interwined. The Republican Reproduction Center is one of the leading Russian clinics where plastic surgery is performed on the face and body. Physicians working there perform more than a thousand operations a year. By means of plastic surgery they strive to make their patients more attractive and therefore prepare them psychologically for new acquaintances which can in the end result in marriages and childbirths. Such clinics accomodate to the changing needs of their clients. The market laws are already influencing the plastic surgery business — among the patients, along with young girls not satisfied with the shape of their snub nose, are transsexuals who believe that when they change their sex they will be able to begin a new life. To what extent can the surgeon influence the patient's decision to change his or her appearance? In trying to solve the problems of reproduction, plastic surgery is truly moving in a new direction. 77 III. Read the article again and say what psychological aspects plastic surgery is connected with. IV. Divide the article into logical parts. V. Speak on the article in accordance with the following major points: 1. 2. 3. 4. The importance of plastic surgery. Rhinoplasty. History of plastic surgery. Applications for plastic surgery. VI. Make up a dialogue. Your friend has been made an operation on the snub nose. You feel her attitude to life has changed. Ask her questions on new experiences. 78 UNIT VI ADDITIONAL READING Text I I. Read and translate the article: Are we Getting Smarter? (by Sharon Begley) IQ scores rose steadily in the 20th century. As scientists search for the reasons, they are shedding new light on the dance between genes and life experience that determines intelligence. While generations of schoolchildren, military recruits, job applicants have wrestled with IQ questions like these, some smart scientists who study intelligence have been stumped by an even more exasperating puzzle: why have IQ scores been rising? The rise is so sharp that the average child today is as bright as the near genius of yesterday. This shatters the psychologists' belief about the rigidity of IQ. It's powerful evidence that you can change it. Psychologists who study intelligence mostly agree that hereditary factors explain the lion's share of IQ differences. The high heritability of IQ suggests that environment is feeble, but IQ gains over time suggest that environment is overwhelmingly powerful. The researchers conclude that people's IQs are affected by both environment and genes, but their environments are matched to their IQs. In other words, genes do indeed have an important effect: they cause people to seek out certain environments, certain life experiences. 79 If you have a biological edge in intelligence, for instance, you will likely enjoy school, books, puzzles, asking questions and thinking abstractly. All of which will tend to amplify your innate brainpower. Higher IQ leads one into better environments, causing still higher IQ. Thanks to that multiplier effect, you will likely study even more, haunt the Library, pester adults with questions and choose bright peers as friends, boosting your intelligence yet again. The dance between genes and environment starts young. A naturally verbal toddler will likely elicit hour after hour of reading from her parents, for instance. That will amplify her cognitive gifts even if her «verbal IQ genes» are only the slightest bit smarter than other kids. A modest genetic advantage turns into a huge performance advantage. But if you start out with a slight deficit in IQ, you may get frustrated by reading and cogitating, stumble in school and grow to hate learning, reinforcing your genetic bent. As far as scientists can tell, experiences that boost the intelligence of someone born with an IQ edge have just about the same positive effect on people of average intelligence. In other words, whether you seek out an IQ-boosting environment or whether it finds you makes no difference. In either case, experiences and the social and technological surrounding should work their magic. This effect may account for the IQ rise over the decades. Crowded computer screens, videogames, hidden-word games might be training young brains in the pattern analysis that IQ tests assess. Smaller families, which offer children more individual attention and indulge their passion for «why's», might boost a generation's IQ. Jobs that demand more brainpower, more free time and technological gadgets that challenge our gray matter could also lift all IQ boats. Leisure and even ordinary conversation are more cognitively demanding today. All these expressions of social and technological change have one key characteristic: they are enduring. All parents can do is hope that the love of learning they imbue in their child takes hold, causing him to seek out the experiences and people that will keep stimulating his intelligence. 80 Those who believe in the power of genes and those who believe in the power of environment are both right. Genes working through environment account for the lion's share of individual differences in IQ, but only because genes lead you to certain life experiences, which collectively form your environment. It is that environment which directly fosters IQ differences. People often have a fatalistic sense that IQ is fixed. However, IQ can be enhanced by good environment. It doesn' have to be some fixed capacity you're born with. («NEWSWEEK» 2001) II. Find in the article sentences with the following word-combinations: To shatter one's belief; the lion's share; to have an important effect; to amplify one's innate brainpower; to reinforce a genetic bent; to indulge passion; to foster IQ differences. III. Make up your own sentences with these word-combinations. IV. Answer the following questions: 1. Are we really getting smarter? 2. Is IQ rise sharp or gradual? 3. What may explain the lion's share of IQ differences? 4. What interrelationship is there between IQ and environment? 5. What does higher IQ lead to? 6. What stimulates intellectual development? 7. What is the role of parents in cultivating love for learning? 8. IQ is not fixed, or is it? What do you think? 81 V. Agree or disagree with, the following: 1. IQ scores are rigid and remain with you all your life. 2. Genes account for 75 percent of the difference between individuals' IQs. 3. People's IQs are affected only by genes. 4. Genes cause people to seek out certain environments. 5. The dance between genes and environment starts young. 6. Large families offer children more individual attention. VI. Choose the facts from the article that may help you characterize: a) new light on IQ scores shed by psychologists; b) parental role in developing cognitive abilities; c) environmental influence on thirst for knowledge. VII. Review the article. VIII. Develop the following situations: 1. It is a well-known fact that computers play an important part in the educational process nowadays. You are going to buy a computer and ask your friend whether it is a useful means in self-education. Ask him: - if he often uses a computer in his studies: - what perspectives are open for the computer users; - how it is possible to become a user of the INTERNET; - if he has got any ties with computer users from foreign countries; - how often he communicates with them; - what problems they discuss; - if he is looking forward for such contacts. 2. Your friend has been a constant Internet user for two years. He can't imagine his life without INTERNET. He has got a lot of foreign friends by INTERNET and now he is going to marry a girl from Germany. Ask him: 82 —what the first talk was about; —what interested him in their communication; —why he decided to continue E-mail correspondence; — if he experiences any problems in conversing through the INTERNET; —what problems he discussed with the girlfriend; —where they would like to live; —why they chose this country for their residence. 3. Your younger brother is fond of playing computer games. It is like non-stop music for him. You are worried as you are sure that too much computing is of certain harm for a developing mind. Ask him: —what games he prefers playing; —if violent episodes arise a desire of fighting or bullying; —if his academic performance worsened or improved; —how much time on the average he spends in front of the monitor; —if he gets tired physically; —if his eyes hurt or he doesn't notice any change in his eyesight. 4. You are having a talk with a leading specialist in informatics. You would like to ask a number of questions concerning the system of education based exclusively on computer programmes. Ask him: —what academic disciplines he recommends to teach by means of computing; —if it is possible to teach a foreign language in this way; —how basic knowledge is tested by computing; —if any special programs already exist; —what he knows of such practice abroad: —what is his opinion of the so-called computerized mind. 83 Text 2 I. Read and translate the text; It Doesn't Hurt to Be Alone «Being an only child is a disease in itself», the noted psychologist G.Stanley Hall asserted more than a century ago. Old myths apparently die hard. For years, a growing body of research has suggested that only children are more likely to be helped than to be hurt by their solitary status. Yet the portrait of only children as spoiled and maladjusted and their parents as selfish or eccentric retains a firm hold on the popular imagination. Even as the number of one-child families in America continues to grow, surveys show that most people still believe the ideal family contains two children. A major new study of only children has now provided the strongest evidence yet that the myth is just that. This sweeping study of 150,000 adults and children found that onlys are better educated, score higher on IQ tests and develop better social skills than children from larger families. It has been found that, on average, children from one-child families get 20 percent more years of education than do children from families with several siblings. Onlys scored higher, than any other group on verbal IQ tests. There is no scientific basis for the idea that life without brothers and sisters makes a child overly self-absorbed, either. Onlys are at no disadvantage whatsoever when it comes to personality attributes. In the two personality categories where onlys differ significantly from other children, self-esteem and achievement, they fare better. 84 The simplest explanation for the benefits of onlyhood, researchers say, is that only children receive more parental attention and a larger slice of the family resources than children from large families. Onlys are more likely to have been read aloud to as children and to have been given music, dance and art lessons. Because only children are forced to become «more socially sophisticated» at seeking companionship outside the family, they are also more likely to get involved in extracurricular activities than are other children. The enforced solitude that goes with being an only child may even have benefits. Only children don't easily assimilate into large groups, and when they do they tend to dominate. For others, having to rely on imagination rather than the constant company of playmates may set off a creative spark. Onlys have more of a sense of creating their own worlds than other kids. The experts concede, however, that conventional wisdom is not all wet. Children with siblings develop thicker skins from frequent teasing. Other onlys have trouble expressing anger because they never had to stand up for themselves. Some experts even suggest that onlys run a higher risk of becoming adult hypochondriacs, the result of parents who treated every sniffle as a life-threatening illness. Parents have a heightened fear of losing their only child. With 52 percent of women with children under age 1 working, strained family budgets and the frenzied schedules of two-career couples contribute to the preference for smaller families. Despite the growing ranks of one-child families, however, many parents feel guilty for denying their child a sibling or two. The world's biggest research experiment on only children is a victim of misperceptions. China imposed a one-child-perfamily rule in 1979 to control population growth. Worldwide press reports soon followed, detailing «spoiled little emperors» who tyrannize their parents and grandparents with outrageous behaviour. But the media exaggerated the problem. On average, Chinese onlys fared no worse than children with siblings in terms of personality and achievement. The biggest problem Chinese youngsters face, especially in a culture that reveres its 85 elders is not whether the kid will grow up to be a little snot but how they will cope as the sole caretakers for aging parents and grandparents. Only children are forced to confront a particular family crisis all alone. And when a parent dies, only children have no siblings with whom they can share mutual grief and happy memories. The negative myths will persist, no doubt, as long as only children continue to be outnumbered by people with siblings. But onlys can take great solace in America's changing demographics. The number of one-child families had increased sharply in recent years; only 1 in 5 American mothers who has completed childbearing now has one child, double the percentage 10 years ago. In the coming years, only children will be able to find plenty of company. II. Give Russian equivalents for: Solitary status; maladjusted; one-child family; onlys; social skills; on average; siblings; self-absorbed; personality attributes; onlyhood; self-esteem; socially sophisticated; extracurricular activities; solitude; a creative spark; to develop thicker skins; a life-threatening disease; a victim of misperception; outrageous behaviour; to exaggerate a problem; sole caretakers; to share mutual grief. III. Explain what the following means: Onlys; siblings; a creative spark; IQ; a playmate; a hypochondriac; childbearing; maladjusted; extracurricular activities. 86 IV. Complete the following sentences: 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. The portrait of lonely children is like ... . The onlys develop better .... They receive more ... . They are involved in ... . But children with siblings develop ... . Parents of onlys have a heightened fear of ... . Only children are forced to confront ... . V. Answer the following questions: 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. Being an only child is a disease in itself, isn't it? What did the study of only children show? How did the onlys score in IQ? What benefits do only children enjoy? What statistical data are given in the article? Why is China mentioned in the paper? Does the article draw optimistic or pessimistic perspectives? VI. Speak on benefits enjoyed by onlys. VII. Describe negative moments in being an only child in the family. 87 FAMILY Text I I. Read and translate the text: The Functions of the Family The family performs several important social functions. Taken together, they suggest why the family is sometimes described as the backbone of society. The family is the first and most important agent in socialization process. The personalities of each new generation are shaped within the family, so that, ideally, children grow to be well-integrated and contributing members of the larger societies. In industrial societies, of course, peer groups, schools, churches, and the mass media are also important in the socialization of children. But this remains the primary function of the family. The family also contributes to the continuing socialization of people throughout their life cycle. Adults learn and change within marriage, and as anyone with children knows, parents are influenced by their children just as their children learn from them. From a biological point of view, of course, the family is not necessary to have children. Within families, however, children are born not only as biological beings, but also as members of society. Many important social statuses - including race, ethnicity, religion, and social class - are ascribed at birth through the family. This explains society's long-standing concern that children be born of socially sanctioned marriages. Legitimate birth, especially when parents are of similar position, 88 allows for the most orderly transmission of social standing from parents to children and clarifies inheritance rights. In ideal terms, the family protects and supports its members physically, emotionally, and often financially from birth until death. The family is usually a person's most important primary group, and the family members generally have intense and enduring relationships with one another. This concern for one another's welfare engenders an important sense of self-worth and security in each individual, as suggested by the fact that individuals living in families tend to be healthier than those who live alone. However, the intense character of family ties also means that families have the ability to undermine the individual's selfconfidence, health, and well-being. This fact has become clear as researchers have studied patterns of family violence and, especially, child abuse. It is a well-known fact that marriage and family life are often perceived differently by various family members. Females and males are usually socialized quite differently in most cultures, so they have different expectations and perceptions of family life. Similarly, parents and children typically have different perceptions of the family because of their different positions in it. For example, children usually perceive their parents only as their mother and father, with little understanding of them as sexual partners. In addition, the experiences and perceptions of all family members change over time. Two people's expectations when they exchange their wedding vows usually change considerably when they confront the daily realities of married life. A change in the role of one spouse such as a wife entering law school is likely to alter the roles of other family members. Thus, one should point to the inadequacy of describing marriage and the family in terms of any rigid characteristics. So family interaction is a process of negotiation in which people exchange socially valued resources and advantages. In other words, people enter into relationships prepared to offer something of themselves while expecting something in return. 89 II. Answer the following questions: 1. In what way is the family very often defined? Give your own definition of the family. 2. What social organizations contribute to the socialization of children? 3. What is the primary function of the family? 4. Why is it so necessary for a child to be born within the family? 5. How does the family support its members? 6. What kind of relationships exist among the family members? 7. Why do parents and children differently perceive the family? 8. What problems arise in this respect? 9. How would you characterize family interaction? III. Find in the text definitions o f : 1) a family; 2) family interaction. IV. Complete the following sentences: 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. The The The The The The family contributes to ... . family performs several functions such as ... . primary function of the family is ... . family protects ... . family supports its members ... . family plays a leading role in ... . V. Explain the following statements; give your own arguments: 1. Parents are influenced by their children just as their children learn from them. 2. Children should be born of socially sanctioned marriages. 90 3. Families have the ability to undermine the individual's selfconfidence. 4. Parents and children have different perceptions of the family. VI. Make up an outline o f the text. VII. Speak on the text. VIII. Write an essay on the theme «AN IDEAL FAMILY». IX. Read the article and say what do you think o f its contents. Your Family Tree of Life (by Karen Springen) Genetic predisposition doesn't have to mean predestination. If your family history suggests you carry a dangerous gene, you can be placed on high-alert surveillance. Men whose mothers had family-linked breast cancer, for example, may be at risk of colon and pancreatic cancer. Here are some guidelines to understand your own genetic background. First, trace your roots. To fill in the major branches of your medical tree, draw on your family's best oral historians. Then check their memories against medical records, autopsy reports and death certificates. Even old family pictures can help. Be skeptical, though. The more distant the history in general, the less relevant it is to the current generation. And the less reliable. Once you've done the digging, share the information. The updated family tree is an important document that should be kept by multiple family members. The tree can help relatives with planning children, for example. Knowing that family members carry the gene for Huntington's disease (an adultonset, incurable neurodegenerative disease) may make a couple decide to adopt children rather than bear them or to use a 91 donor. Even if there isn't a cure, there still might be lifestyle decisions. Some risks are ethnic. Six percent of some Jews carry a gene mutation that can lead to colon cancer. One in 12 AfricanAmericans carries a mutation for sickle-cell anemia. And as many as 5 percent of Caucasians carry a defect in the factor V gene that predisposes them to develop blood clots in the leg. Finally, lifestyle choices influence vulnerability. While you can't change your genes, you can change your habits. If many family members have died of arterial aging, you should consider exercise habits, a healthier diet and taking an aspirin a day - to keep your arteries free of clots and decrease your risk of the small-scale strokes associated with memory loss. If you escape one of the childhood diseases, then by the time you're 50, 80 percent of how well and how long you live is under your control. Genetic detective work can increase that control. You don't have to be Sherlock Holmes to figure that out. («NEWSWEEK», 2002) WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: The backbone of society; peer groups; mass media; to be ascribed at birth; long-standing concern; inheritance rights; in ideal terms; self-confidence; well-being; family violence; child abuse; to change over time; wedding vows; in terms of; in return. II. Give English equivalents for: Личность; основная функция; брак; узаконенное рождение; модель; воспринимать; переживание; ожидание; супруг; взаимодействие; обсуждение; взаимоотношение. 92 III. Make u p your own sentences with: To be shaped within; to contribute; to engender a sense of; to undermine; to exchange vows; to expect something in return. IV. Translate the following sentences into Russian. Pay particular attention to the verb «contribute» and its derivatives: 1.He has contributed an article on the subject to a weekly periodical. 2. We hoped that the President's visit would contribute to the establishment of friendly relations between two countries. 3. Borodin's contributions to chamber music, as to symphony, were few in number but they are among the most distinguished works of the later nineteenth century. 4. Psychology has contributed greatly to our knowledge of personality. 5. Their contributions to the public fund were rather modest. 6. His greatest contribution was surely to the development of social science. V. Translate the following pairs o f opposites: a new generation — an old generation a well-integrated member — a poorly-integrated member long-standing concern — short-standing concern similar position — different position intense relationships — weak relationships self-confidence — uncertainty to confront the realities - to avoid the realities advantages - disadvantages to enter relationships - to break relationships 93 VI. Comment on the following quotations: 1. «Family love is the most widespread and the most enduring feeling, and therefore, in the sense of influencing people's lives, it is also the most important and the most benign.» (N.Chernyshevsky) 2. «Нарру is he who is happy at home.» (L.Tolstoy) 3. «Family life is never an endless celebration. Learn to share not only joy, but also sorrow, grief, and misfortune.» (V.Sukhomlinsky) 4. «Parents must be punished for bad children.» (M.Gorky) 5. «First we teach our children, then we learn from them. Those who are reluctant, fall behind the times.» (J.Rainis) Text 2 I. Read t h e text and give its main idea: Family: Parents and Children (after Karen Hewitt) The number of single children in Russia astonishes many British visitors, especially the older ones. 'Where are the brothers and sisters?' they ask. 'Isn't that child in danger of being spoiled?' 'Being spoiled' is a very British concept. Not every mother is suspicious of 'too much indulgence’ but it is certainly often mentioned as a worry. Once the children are at school, most debates are essentially about rules and freedom. Both are necessary, but parents and children are in constant conflict about how much freedom, how many rules. British parents take money seriously. Children from the age of 5 or 6 are normally given weekly «pocket money» - a few pence at first, increasing as they get older. Pocket money is often related to responsibilities about the house. 94 Teenage children are often given a clothing allowance (they must buy their own clothes) and budget accordingly. If they spend too much on a smart jacket or a fashionable dress, they will have no money for shoes. They are being taught «the value of money». Children from the age of 13 often take part-time jobs to pay for records, electronic gadgets and so forth. They are not of course your problem. But this is a difference between Britain and Russia which is most often misunderstood by young Russian citizens. Imitating the rich West does not mean owning videos and fashionable clothes. In a market economy basically there is no «blat». There is money. Or no money. What about moral attitudes? How do parents in Britain teach their children the difference between «right and wrong»? If you talk to parents of all social groups you will find there is general agreement that children should be taught to be kind, to be honest and to be fair; and that it is wrong to be cruel, to steal or to destroy the happiness of other people. The other moral appeal to the British child is to «be fair». Basic justice should be done. If there are three apples and three children, then the apples should be divided. Simple enough, and world-wide perhaps. But many advantages are divided on this basis. In other western countries, different values are stressed. The Americans like to teach their children that everyone has the right to health, wealth, happiness, education, goods, etc. So it is your duty to insist on your rights and not to let other people take them away. These values are not really ours. Because most of us get worried it seems that people aren't somehow trying to make things more fair. It is easy to find Americans, for example, who are absolutely certain that they know what is right because it is the word of God or an inalienable part of the American constitution. But the English are hesitant, muddled, but content to live with the muddle, trying to do the right thing but persuaded that a different approach might be all right if it sounded fair. 95 II. Agree or disagree with t h e following. Give your arguments: 1. Children should be given «pocket money» weekly. 2. They should be taught «the value of money». 3. Children ought to be taught the difference between «right and wrong». III. Enumerate what traits the British children are taught. IV. Say: What values are stressed by the Americans, the British, the Russians. V. Read the following three interviews and answer the questions: 1. What kind of relationship do the children have with their parents? 2. Are the parents strict? 3. According to the mother, what is it like being a parent and what is a good parent? Interview with 16-year-old daughter Helen Interviewer: How do you get on with your parents? Helen: I think I get on with them very well, really. We don't always see eye to eye on some things, like boyfriends - they don't always approve of them - but on the whole they're very understanding. If I had a personal problem, I think I could confide in them, and if I was ever in trouble I know I could rely on them to help me. Interviewer: How strict are your parents? 96 Helen: Well, my Dad's quite strict about staying out late at night, but I can usually get round him. If I'm nice to him, he lets me come home a bit later. My Mum's always telling me to tidy up my bedroom and put things away after I use them, and I have to do some of the housework. But if I compare them with other parents I know, they aren't very strict. Interviewer: And who are you most like in your family? Helen: Oh, I think I take after my mother. Everybody says we're both very independent and strong-willed. I like to have my own way a lot of the time, but I'm not spoilt. I don't always get my own way. And my parents always tell me off if I do anything wrong. Interview with 17-year-old son David Interviewer: How do you get on with your parents? David: I look up to them because I know they've worked hard to bring us up properly. Interviewer: How strict are your parents? David: They can be very strict at times. I told my Dad I wanted a motorbike, but he said it was out of question - it was too dangerous. My mother is strict about keeping things tidy. I can't get out of doing the washing up and things like that, unless I'm very busy. Interviewer: How do you get on with your sister? David: I never agree with what she says, so we are always arguing. We've never been very close, but I get on all right with her. I think I'm much closer to my mother. Interview with mother Interviewer: What's it like being a parent? Mother: Bringing up children is very difficult. You always worry about them. You have to be very patient and put up with a lot - like noise and even criticism. And you can't always get through to them — sometimes they just won't listen. But the advantages of being a parent outweigh the disadvantages. The 97 main thing is to enjoy your children while they are young because they grow up so quickly nowadays. Interviewer: How strict are you with your children? Mother: I suppose I'm reasonably strict. They can't do what they like and get away with it, and 1 tell them off when they do something wrong. Interviewer: And what is the secret of being a good parent? Mother: I think you have to give them confidence and let them know you love them. And you have to set a good example through your own behaviour, otherwise they won't look up to you. Interviewer: And what do you want for your children in the future? Mother: I want them to be happy, and I want them to look back on their childhood as a very happy time in their lives. WORD STUDY I. Match the verbs in A with the definitions i n B: A 1. to get round someone 2. to take after someone 3. to tell someone off 4. to look up to someone 5. to bring someone up B a. to respect and admire someone, to have a very good opinion of someone b. to escape being punished for something c. to think about something that happened in the past d. to reprimand, to speak severely to someone because they have done something wrong e. to persuade someone to let you do or have something, usually by flattering them 98 6. to get out of doing something 7. to get through to someone 8. to grow up 9. to get something away 10. to look back (on something) f. to raise a child, to look after a child until it is adult and try to give it particular beliefs and attitudes g. to resemble a member of your family in appearance or character h. to avoid having to do something i. to succeed in making with someone understand the the meaning of what one is saying j. to become adult and mature II. What d o you. think the following expressions mean? 1. to see eye to eye (with someone) (on something) 2. to have / to get one's own way 3. to be close to someone 4. to be the black sheep of the family 5. to take someone's side Now decide which expressions you could use in the sentences below. a. The problem is that her parents never stop her doing anything that she wants to do. She's become a very spoilt child as a result. b. My family is very ashamed of my brother and family members never talk about him. He was expelled from school and has been in prison twice. c. Whenever I had an argument with my mother or father, I could always rely on my grandparents to support me. 99 d. My father and I usually agree about most things, but when it comes to politics we have completely different views. e. I can talk to my sister about my problems because I know she will understand me and share my feelings. III. Work with your partner. Take turns asking and answering the questions opposite. Try to use expressions below in your answers. bring up get on with get away with have one's own way look back on look up to grow up see eye to eye tell off take after get round be close to 1. What kind of relationship do you have with the people in your family? 2. Are you similar to anyone in your family? 3. Do you have the same opinions as other members of your family? 4. Where did you spend your childhood? 5. Who took care of you when you were young? 6. Did you have a strict upbringing? 7. When were you reprimanded as a child / teenager? 8. Were you able to do what you wanted all the time? 9. Who did you admire and respect when you were a child / teenager? 10.When you think about the past, what do you remember? IV. Describe your relationship with one o f t h e following people: grandparent teacher neighbour boss uncle/ aunt parent brother/ cousin sister 100 UNIT II I. Read and translate the text: Whats Happening to the Family? «If you are going to marry one day think of the possible divorce», — those were exactly the words that the mother of a family quite happy in our understanding told her daughter. Alas, nobody can be sure to avoid the divorce at any stage of the married life. Conditions that destroy the family exist too long. With almost total poverty a child can't be afforded by many. Every family having children knows well how much you should pay for clothes, food, creche, kindergarten and now even school. But the financial problem is not the only one. There may be hardly a person who has never faced the problem of living conditions. And the heaven in a nut can't last forever, even if you are with someone you love. A woman is so busy that she simply has no time to communicate at any level except domestic and she is bringing her children up over telephone; these reasons can't but make the atmosphere at home formal. And not all can overcome the pressure which is growing up every year, but no matter who says desperately: «I can't stand it any longer, I want a divorce», blaming her husband (or the wife) for all troubles, yet all further problems will fall upon the woman's head. Sometimes women are naive to believe that a man can't leave the children. «Не is fond of them». And this may be true. Yet a man is different from a woman, he has no biological need in seeing his child constantly. And when 101 the former wife threatens: «You will never see your child again», wishing to cause repentance and fear she may achieve quite an opposite effect. A man can be boasting with his wonderful grown-up son not seeing him for years without any feeling of loss, but the former wife will call for his paternal feelings in vain when she needs any form of help. Not every man, even very strong and kind is capable for the daily-round deed. Therefore it is not wise to make the man marry just to legalize relations that caused «incidental» pregnancy. The sense of duty will scarcely transform into the feeling of love. And the man will subconsciously feel that he is deceived. Such marriage can hardly be safe. A child will add to the family happiness only if he is loved and expected by both parents and not a burden for the young family. So a woman should be very prescient when choosing the husband and account the situation when she may be left alone. Where shall I live? Unfortunately many couples for years stay under the same roof after the divorce. There are strong doubts that a man will be generous enough to leave everything including his flat to his wife: he often has no place to go. How to make living? There are women - and many - who do not think of their career after marriage supposing it their husband's duty to support the family. In case of a divorce these women risk to be left without means of subsistence, and sometimes it may be too late to get a new profession. So a woman has no right to be thoughtless about marriage, because finally in the family she has to fulfil most part of work over the house, to take care of children, to earn the same money as men and in case of divorce even worse troubles fall to her lot. They often say that there are catastrophically many lonely women. That's right, there are a lot of lonely women. But is it actually a catastrophe? Perhaps women who have considered all variants decided that of two evils to be alone is less than together with a child without father or with her former husband in one room? 102 Has the family died then? Perhaps it will be more proper to say that it has changed in quality though has suffered losses in quantity. And the main reason for this is that a woman has changed. She is not satisfied with the role of a housekeeper. She wants to have a speciality, she does not want to be dependent on another person. She has her own opinion, own hobby, she is interesting. And you may meet a lot of happy families based exclusively on mutual interests and respect. Among these couples there are childless as well but it does not form vacuum in the family because each of them is self-valuable and interesting to the other. As for the question of children - to have or not to have - each family should decide it for itself, jointly. Then even the thought of divorce won't arise. So whom to marry? Only the one whose way of thinking is close to yours, a man who is your friend, who respects a woman and personality in you. But for this you have to be such. II. A n s w e r t h e f o l l o w i n g q u e s t i o n s ; 1. What are the chief problems facing the families? 2. How does a woman often bring up her children? 3. What is the difference between a man and a woman concerning the children? 4. Do a sense of duty and a feeling of love mean too much for a man? What do you think? 5. What expects a woman in case of a divorce? 6. Must a woman work after the marriage or not? Express your personal opinion. 7. What must a future wife be prepared for? 8. Why do many women remain lonely throughout their life-span? 9. How has a woman changed nowadays? 10. What is it necessary for a family to be happy? Give your own ideas. 11. Whom does the author recommend to marry? 103 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. III. Discuss in the group the following problems; How to make a family happy. Parental love for children. Divorce consequences. How to overcome loneliness. Solitude means loneliness. IV. Explain what it means: 1. The heaven in a nut can't last forever. 2. The family has changed in quality though has suffered losses in quantity. V. Divide the text into logical parts and give a heading to each part. VI. Speak on the text. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: total poverty; to afford a child; to face a problem; at any level; to bring up; to overcome pressure; to cause repentance and fear; to achieve an opposite effect; paternal feeling; to account the situation; in case of a divorce; to be dependent on; as for. II. Give English equivalents for: На любой стадии; условия жизни; бывшая жена; хвастаться; чувство потери; подсознательно; напрасно; чувство долга; бремя; большие сомнения; средства существования; заботиться; из двух зол; нести потери; заполнить вакуум. III. Find in the text synonyms for: to ruin; to rear; to love; to tell a lie; to look after; to regard; to be pleased; to appear. 104 IV. Combine the following phrases: to afford for troubles to face for paternal feelings to blame relations to overcome children to achieve pressure to call an effect to be capable money to legalize a problem to earn for daily-round deeds Use them in the sentences of your own. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. V. Translate the following sentences into Russian: There is nothing to boast of. He desperately tried to earn some money but in vain. She can't afford children at a given moment being left without means of subsistence. He is capable of overcoming external pressure and consolidates himself quite easily. As for him, this year he has achieved great progress in his investigation. Don't treat your children too hard, try to bring them up with care and love. He is so stubborn, it's useless to call for his paternal feelings. He suffered great losses in his life time. 105 UNIT III Text I I. Read and translate the text; Stepfamilies Disappoinment Dealing with Anger and It's a myth that love and harmony will come instantly when a new stepfamily is formed. It can take years to overcome the major challenges to creating a stable and successful household. The number of the people living in stepfamilies is growing in the US. Divorce is the biggest reason. It used to be that stepfamilies formed mostly after the death of a parent. In fact, that's the origin of the word. 'Stepchild' is from an Anglo-Saxon word 'steopcild' that means orphaned or bereaved child. Now most stepfamilies are formed from divorce. In such families it is tougher to create an atmosphere of love and harmony. Often there are unresolved feelings between one of the mates and a former spouse that can have an incredible effect on the stepfamily. Also, children typically are very angry at their parents for having divorced and often have not had an opportunity to work that out emotionally. They project this anger onto the new stepmother or stepfather. Disappointment is common because people expect instant love, particularly stepmothers. Many women assume that «I love my new husband, so I will love his children, and they will all love me, and it's all going to happen overnight.» But it can't, 106 because relationships take time to build. Instant love is one of several myths that surround stepfamilies. New stepfamilies must work out all sorts of differences in values and habits. They form this new family from two different ones that have done things their own way for many years. One family may rise at 6 o'clock and have a big breakfast, while the other likes to sleep later and get by on coffee and orange juice. In one family, it may be O.K. to come to dinner in sneakers and a T-shirt; another may require that you dress up more. A major problem for children is loyalty conflicts created by their parents. They wonder: «If I love Mom, how about Dad?» or, «If I like my new stepmother, will mother get upset?» Children also sometimes feel guilty or disloyal talking about their former family and things that they did. For adults, the most serious challenge surrounds the children. Research shows that in first families, money and sex are the biggest troublemakers. Problems with children rank third. In stepfamilies, the No.l trouble area is children — because of discipline, because of the kids moving between two houses, because both kids and adults have to deal with a biological parent living outside the home, because of feelings and fears. When stepfamilies form, people in a sense are asked to change their identity and to question who they are and why they do things the way they do. That causes a lot of problems. The problems of stepfamilies with teenagers become compounded. The most difficult situation is with adolescents. They are going through their own life crisis - establishing their own identity and breaking away from their biological families - 107 and at the same time somebody's saying: «Соте in. We have to get this family going.» They have a very hard time. Sometimes people get a legal divorce on paper, but the emotional divorce doesn't come until much later. Sometimes this leads to a lot of unnecessary contact — like calling late at night ostensibly about the children but in reality to have a chat with the former spouse. For remarried people, this often causes problems of competition with the new spouse. How much should an adult have over Ms or her stepchild? A lot depends on where the child is and who is providing support. If a stepfather has financial responsibility for the child, he should have more authority. What is important is that stepparents don't attempt to take over as the parent or assume the role of disciplinarian at first. In traditional families parental roles are usually pretty clear. In stepfamilies, rules and roles are ambiguous. A stepparent is often at a disadvantage in disciplining a child. Stepfathers often tend to jump in as the disciplinarians, or they are encouraged to assume that role by the biological mother who, as a former single parent, may have grown tired of being the enforcer. But children often resent the stepparent who hands down discipline. Instead, stepparents should initially approach their stepchildren as a friend and gradually get into discipline, letting the biological parent with custody take care of most of the disciplining. What is very important is for adults as they form, to present a united front on matters of discipline - as in all families. But it's a major challenge in the stepfamily. The children should be told about a parent's decision to marry again long in advance, but they shouldn't be counted on to sanction the marriage. That relationship is between the 108 adults. But a family courtship is nice and productive. It gives the couple and the children an opportunity to get to know each other and see potential problems. Children may also get the chance during the courtship to begin to get over fantasies that their parents will get back together. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. II. Answer the following questions: What is a major problem for children in stepfamilies? What do they feel sometimes? What are the biggest troublemakers in the first families? What is No 1 problem in stepfamilies? Does legal divorce really mean separation of the spouses? Where does it lead to sometimes? How is the problem of discipline solved in stepfamilies? Must children take part in solving the problem of a new marriage? What do you think? III. Characterize relationships within: 1. traditional two-parent families; 2. single-parent families; 3. stepfamilies. IV. A role-play: Your close friend has a stepfather who is constantly trying to discipline her by giving orders and commands. She doesn't like it and reacts by talking back. She is even contemplating an idea of running away from home. V. Read the title of the article below. What do you think it could be about? VI. Skim read the article and see if your prediction was correct. What view of the travelling way of life is expressed? Do you agree with it? These Children are Taught to Survive The criticism usually levelled at «New Age travelers» who do not send their children to school every day is that somehow we are 109 unfit to teach our own children. That we are depriving them of a 'proper' education and a 'normal' life. In fact, while some of us have been made homeless or unemployed and taken to the road as a survival tactic, many have made a conscious and positive decision to live in this way, not because 'the system' has failed us personally (many of us are well-qualified) but because it is clearly misguided and is failing so many. It would be foolish to disregard everything taught in schools. Our children need to know how to read and write, handle numbers, and experience music, sports, art and craft work. But I cannot agree that all children should know certain prescribed skills at certain ages. Our way of education is a kind of insurance. If we accept that adult life may involve having at least some periods with very little money, with a lot of time on our hands, perhaps without a secure place to live, that skills have to be adapted and developed to compete in the job market, then our children are equipped better than most. They may not all know what happened in 1066 by the age of eight and three-quarters, but most understand how to light a fire, build a tarpaulin shelter, find cheap food and clothing, saw and chop wood, handle and care for animals and deal with other children and adults in a variety of real situations. Visitors unused to life on site are often struck by the «adultness» of our young children. Three- and four-year-olds mix freely with adults, pay social calls without their parents, might get involved in feeding chickens, milking goats, mending engines, making pastry, jewellery and wood burners. As well as learning «skills» and «information», they learn to accept a lot of people and their different behaviour. The feeling of common shared humanity, that we are all part of one «family», is important in the travelling community, and instead of striving to conform to a norm or compete for position, children are encouraged to accept that we are all different but all due respect in our own way. 110 VII. Explain in English what the following phrases mean: 1. unfit to teach 2. taken to the road 3. «the system» has failed us 4. compete in the job market 5. equipped better than most 6. mix freely 7. common shared community 8. striving to conform 9. compete for position VIII. Answer the questions: 1. What are these children called? 2. Do they go to school very often? 3. What knowledge are they deprived of? 4. What skills do they acquire? 5. What do they learn to accept? 6. What is the shared common feeling within this community? 7. Is it a good thing to isolate the children in this way? 8. How does the narrator justify the existence o f this community? IX. Develop the following situation: You meet such a child. What possible questions would you ask him? Text 2 I. Read the text and state the main problems raised. Don't Push your Kids Too Hard ( D r . Benjamin Spock on bringing up today's children) Today's children are under stress. It is stressful for children to have to cope with groups, with strangers, with people outside the family. That has emotional effects, and, if the deprivation of security is at all marked, it will have intellectual effects, too. 111 We know now that if there's good day care it can substitute pretty well for parental care. But we have nowhere near the amount of subsidized day care we need. We're harming our children emotionally and intellectually to the degree that they're in substandard day care. Children raised in single-parent homes are more stressed than other kids. It's harder to raise a child in most cases with one parent than it is with two parents. The parents can comfort and consult and back up each other. Our emphasis on fierce competition and getting ahead minimizes the importance of cooperation, helpfulness, kindness, lovingness. These latter qualities are the things that we need much more than competitiveness. Competition imposes strains on children. It teaches them that winning is the important thing. We've gone much too far in stressing winning. I was in Japan lecturing, and they told me that the rate of suicide among elementary schoolchildren is shockingly high and that Japanese elementary schoolchildren commit suicide because they are afraid that they aren't getting grades high enough to satisfy their parents. We can at least bring up children with a strong feeling that they're in the world not just for their own fulfillment — although I think fulfillment is fine - but also to be useful and help others. Children should be brought up with a strong feeling that there are lots of problems in the neighbourhood, the nation and the world, and that they're growing up to help solve those problems. That emphasis on helpfulness should begin at a very early age with things as simple as letting them help set the table. Never say, «It’s easier for me to do it myself.» You should encourage children to be helpful, and not by scolding them or forcing them but by supporting them or complimenting when they're helpful. In bringing up children there are specific things to avoid. Absolutely no violence on television. Don't give war toys. These are poisonous to children. This whole Rambo spirit is a distressing thing. Watching television is harmful to kids. A lot of what they see brutalizes sexuality. Every time a child or an adult watches brutality, it desensitizes and brutalizes them to a slight degree. We have by far the highest crime rates in the world in such 112 areas as murders within the family, rape, wife abuse, child abuse. If children are brought up with tension and harshness, then they'll do the same with their children. Everybody acquires his attitude and behaviour toward his children by how he was treated in his own childhood. What was done to you in childhood, you are given permission to do. To put it more positively, parental standards are what makes for a better society, and poor parental standards are what makes for a deteriorating society. II. Answer the following questions: 1. What does the article deal with? 2. Is this problem of any importance nowadays? 3. What effects may stresses produce in children? 4. Why are the children more stressful in single-parent homes? 5. What feelings must we educate in children? 6. What is the most necessary feeling to be brought up in them? 7. What role does TV play? 8. What is spoken about parental standards? 9. What are the parents worried about nowadays? III. Enumerate the factors that promote: a) children's stresses; b) correct upbringing. IV. Do you agree with the following statements? Give your arguments. 1. It's harder to raise a child with one parent than it is with two parents. 113 2 . The emphasis on fierce competition minimizes the importance of cooperation. 3. The emphasis on helpfulness should begin at a very early age. 4. War toys are poisonous for children. 5. Parental control on viewing TV is necessary. V. Express the main idea of the text in ten sentences. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: Stepfamily; household; divorce; unresolved feelings; stepfather; stepmother; adolescent; married couples; former spouse; authority; disciplinarian; homeless; unemployed; survival tactic; to acquire prescribed skills; deprivation of security; competitiveness; commit suicide; fulfillment; helpfulness; violence on television. II. Give English equivalents for: Разочарование; ценности и привычки; обеспечить поддержку; финансовая ответственность; двусмысленный; безопасность; чувство общности; поощрять; родительская забота; удовлетворять родителей. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. III. Substantiate the following statements: Stepfamilies deal with anger and disappointment. It takes years to create a stable and successful household. Stepfamilies must work out all sorts of differences in values and habits. Sometimes people get a legal divorce on paper. The feeling of common shared humanity is of importance. Parents sometimes harm their children emotionally and intellectually. Human beings should make some adjustment to stresses. 114 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. IV. Translate the following sentences: Дети испытывают гнев по отношению к своим разведённым родителям и переносят своё недовольство на отчима или мачеху. Отчим часто оказывается в невыгодном положении, пытаясь воспитывать детей своей жены. Дети должны приобрести предписанные навыки, чтобы выжить в условиях сильной конкуренции. Гораздо труднее воспитывать детей в семьях с одним родителем. Детей следует воспитывать с установкой на выработку таких качеств, как доброта и взаимопомощь. Телевизионные программы со сценами насилия оказывают отрицательное влияние на поведение. Пристрастие к наркотикам - одна из самых тревожных проблем сегодняшней социальной жизни. V. Complete the following sentences: 1. In raising children parents should take into consideration the following factors .... 2. Parents should teach their children how to cope with …. 3. The phrase «Don't push your kids too hard» means .... 4. It is stressful for children to ... . 5. Violent episodes are dangerous for teenagers because … . 6. Some kids commit suicide because of ... . 7. Parents are worried much about ... . 8. Children should be brought up with a strong feeling of ... . VI. A role-play: You come to a family psychotherapist for advice. Your son is addicted to TV. It doesn't matter for him what to watch. You are in despair because you can't change the things. 115 UNIT IV I. Read and translate the text: Family Development Families are complex systems and need to deal with many different progressions at once. That is, there are biological, psychological, social, and cultural progressions. Affectional bonds and subjective states of a strong emotion tend to go together. Thus many of the most intensive of all emotions arise during the formation, the maintenance, the disruption and renewal of affectional bonds which for that reason are sometimes called emotional bonds. In terms of subjective experience the formation of a bond is described as falling in love, maintaining a bond as loving someone, and losing a partner as grieving over someone. Similarly the threat of a loss arouses anxiety and actual loss causes sorrow, while both situations are likely to arouse anger. Finally the unchallenged maintenance of a bond is experienced as a source of security and a renewal of a bond as a source of joy. Stage one: marriage. Many couples believe when they marry that it is just the two individuals who are joining together. Both spouses, however, have grown up in families that become interconnected through the marriage. Both mates, although hopefully differentiated from their «family ego mass» in an emotional, financial, and functional way, carry their whole family into the relationship. Marriage is a two-generational relationship. The new pair must establish themselves as an identifiable unit. This requires a negotiation of many issues, which previously were defined on an individual level. These issues include such routine matters as eating 116 and sleeping patterns, sexual contact, and use of space and time. The couple must decide about which traditions and rules to retain from each family and which ones they will develop for themselves. A renegotiation of relationships with the family of origin has to take place in order to accomodate to the new spouse. Some couples deal with their parents by cutting off the relationship in a bid for independence. The other common pattern involves a balance between some contact and some distance, and some closeness and some tension. For many couples, especially wives, happiness is highest at the beginning of the family life cycle. An adaptive attachment for a couple in Stage 1 is the development of close emotional ties between the spouses. They do not have to break ties with their families of origin but rather maintain and adjust them. A maladaptive attachment can occur when a couple does not align themselves together. The wife is more heavily bonded to her family of origin than she is to her husband. The husband is more tied to outside interests (e.g. work, friends) than his wife. Stage two: families with infants. This stage begins with the birth of the first child and continues until that child is approximately three. For some couples, the birth of the first child is a crisis and a critical family adjustment period. The environment into which children are born can be one in which there is no space for them, there is space for them, or there is a vacuum they are brought in to fill. Both mothers and fathers are becoming increasingly aware of the need for emotional integration of the infant into the family. The couple must design and develop the new role of father and mother. The parental role is in addition to the marital role: it does not replace it. The couple must 117 continue to meet each other's personal adult needs as well as meet their parental responsibilities. Sexual disinterest and the husband's feelings of being «left out» are common during this period. If the baby has a defect, there will be more stress on the couple as they adjust their expectations and deal with their emotional reactions. An adaptive attachment for a family in Stage 2 is the continued development of close marital ties and the beginning of close parent-child bonds. Stage three: families with preschoolers. This stage begins approximately at the time when the eldest child reaches age three and continues until the child starts school. Often, the demands of dependent children are high, financial resources are low, and parents are heavily involved in early career development. The combination of these factors can be stressful. Both mothers and fathers contribute to the preschooler's development but in different ways. The preschooler's task during this stage is to develop initiative. Parents can foster this as they expose the child with an opportunity to interact with peers and variety of adults. Children require the security and warm attachments of both parents and the opportunity to develop a positive sibling relationship. Stage four: families with schoolchildren. This stage begins when the first child is six or starts elementary school and ends at the beginning of adolescence. Both parents and children report this stage as quite a busy period in their lives. It lasts for approximately six years and is heavily influenced by outside activities. Parents can either support or hinder their children's success at school and with their friends. Stage five: families with teenagers. This stage begins when the eldest child turns 13. This period has often been characterized as one of intense upheaval and transition. 118 These are biological, emotional, and sociocultural changes occurring with great and ever increasing rapidity. The family must move from the dependency relationship previously established with a young child to an increasingly independent relationship with the adolescent. Growing psychological independence is frequently not recognized due to continuing physical dependence. Conflict often surfaces when the teenager's independence threatens the family who count on the teenager's dependency for their well-being. Families frequently respond to an adolescent's request for increasing autonomy in two ways: 1) they abruptly define rigid rules and recreate an earlier stage of dependency or 2) they establish premature independence. This results in premature separation when the teenager is not really ready to be fully autonomous. The teenager may thus return home defeated. The teenager's frequent questioning and conflict about values, life-styles, career plans, and so forth can thrust into an examination of their own marital and career issues. Parents sometimes feel they are besieged on both sides: teenagers are asking for more freedom and grandparents are asking for more support. All family members continue to have their relationships within the family, but increasingly the teenagers are more involved with their friends than with family members. Stage six: families as launching centres. This stage begins with the actual departure of the first child from the home and continues until the youngest child has left home. Parents must adapt to the new roles of a parent and separated adult. This involves renegotiation of emotional and financial commitments. Each family member continues to have outside interests and establishes new roles appropriate to this stage. 119 Stage seven: middle-aged families. This stage begins with the departure of the last child from the home and ends with the retirement of one of the mates. It is a long stage of approximately 15 years. Many studies have indicated an increase in marital satisfaction during the postparental stage. Some authors, however, have viewed this phase as a lonely, sad time, especially for the woman. The family cycle tends to repeat itself and the couple find themselves in new roles of mother-in-law, father-in-law, and grandparent. Many families regard the disability or death of an elderly parent as a natural occurrence. The parents adjust family ties and expectations to include their child's spouse. Stage eight: aging families. This stage begins with retirement and lasts until the death of both spouses. Marital relationships continue to be important. Marital satisfaction contributes to both the morale and ongoing activity of both older mates. This is a time for a life review and taking care of unfinished businesses with family as well with business and social contacts. Most elderly people do not mind talking about death. In recent years, there have been several changes impacting on the traditions in family developmental life cycles. Separation, divorce, the rise of single-parent families and the frequency of remarriage by divorced persons have all had an impact. Approximately 40 percent of current marriages end in divorce. Young adults are entering first marriages later and getting divorced sooner. Those who divorce, remarry, and/or re-divorce, are moving through these transitions in shorter span of years than before. For those who divorce, one-half of those who remarry do so within three years. Two-thirds of all women who divorce do so before age thirty. Because divorce may occur at any stage of the family life cycle, it has different impact upon family functioning 120 depending upon its timing. The marital breakdown may be sudden or it may be long and drawn out. In either case emotional work is required to restabilize the family and proceed on a developmental course. II. Answer the following questions: 1. What emotional bonds tie two specific persons? 2. Marriage is a two-generational relationship, isn't it? 3. What issues are negotiated by the couple? 4. How many stages are distinguished in marriage? 5. What is the first one like? 6. How long does the second stage last? 7. What new roles must the couple design with the birth of an infant? 8. When does the third stage begin? 9. How do relationships change during this stage? 10. How would you characterize the fourth stage of marriage? 11. Is there a great difference between the fifth and sixth stages? 12. How does the seventh stage end? 13. What is characteristic for the eighth stage? 14. What statistical data are given in the text? III. Characterize all major stages of family development. What stage do you consider to be of primary importance in marital relationships? Give your arguments. IV. Enumerate possible problems that may arise in marriage between: a) a husband and a wife; b) a father and a son; c) parents and children: d) grandparents and grandchildren. V. Suppose you are a family psychotherapist. Ask your client the following questions: - how his/her parents feel about the marriage; - which family was most in favour of the marriage; 121 - what differences he/she has noticed in the life since the birth of the baby; - how he/she has tried to handle these differences; - what percent of time he/she spends taking care of the marriage; - what percent he/she spends taking care of children; - to whom he/she goes for sympathy; - how parents help him/her when he/she left home; - when looking back over the life, what aspects he/ she has enjoyed most; - what has given him/her the most happiness; - about what aspects he/she feels the most regret; - what thing he/she wanted but did not get from the children. VI. Your client is a teenager. He experiences some misunderstanding with his parents. Ask him: - what he is troubled with; - why he wants to be completely independent; - if it is possible to find a compromise; - if he has ever attempted to analyze the problem himself; - what is his personal attitude towards his parents; - if the situation is so dramatic as it seems to him; and so on. VII. Translate the text in writing: Why Family Rows are Good for you (by Laura Marcus) New research in America is finally backing up what many people have suspected for years: that getting it all off your chest is good for your heart. A lot of us might think feeling good is good for our health. But scientists need more to go on than feelings. They demand evidence. And evidence appears to be emerging. Scientists are keeping a close eye on the current developments. 122 According to a recent report in NEW SCIENTIST, neurobiologists and immunologists have amassed a great deal of research that links the brain with the function of the immune system. They even have a new name for it: psychoneuroimmunology. This is the study of how the brain and immune system talk to each other. Now the scientists believe that expressing your feelings could actually be good for the immune system. What happens is that different moods turn up or turn down the activity of our immune cells. Stress at work, insomnia, depression: they have all been found to be detrimental to the immune system. Conversely, selfexpression seems to promote a healthy immune system. While scientists hedge their bets, therapists and counsellors have no doubt that expressing your feelings in a family row can promote healthier family life. It does not depend on how you do it and how you end it, but rows are not necessarily destructive or harmful. A slanging match, hurling abuse at each other, is detrimental. But a row that clears the air and where there is closure is very beneficial because it releases tension. Rows must have an ending. That's very important. Otherwise, all rows end up as history lessons: «And there was the time you did this, the time you did that.» Deal with it, sort it and end it. That old maxim about not letting the sun go down on an argument has very good therapeutic value. There really is nothing like saying the most awful things to your partner, and then being told you are still loved. They've seen you at your worst but still care. That's the best feeling going. And, contrary to many parents' fears, rowing in front of the children is not necessarily harmful. How else can children learn that conflict exists but can be expressed and resolved? What is potentially harmful is that they 123 might not see you making up. So if you have the row, let them sec you being friends again. We're often attracted to people who are different from us because we sense they have something we're missing. But then we try and change them into what we're already used to because that's familiar, so it feels comfortable. Rowing goes beyond humans. Species that bond with one partner for a mating season, mainly birds but also some breeds of wild dogs and monkeys, do indeed have family rows. Disputes between partners have definitely been witnessed, usually early on in the breeding season as the male and female get used to one another. Some of the aggression they show to each other could be their innate desire to fend off intruders into the nest, so they have to learn to curb their emotion when their partner turns up with food for the young. Even in the animal world, the course of true love rarely runs smoothly. So if you find yourself in the middle of a family dispute, bear in mind that rows are a necessary result of inevitable conflict. Though scientists can't yet agree about this, effective rather than destructive rows probably do make for a happier and healthier family life. VIII. Read the article and say what it is about: Child Rearing Tips to Reduce Yobbishness (by David Fletcher, Health Services Correspondent) Notes: Rearing - воспитание Yobbishness - непослушание A toddler - ребенок до двух лет A practical checklist for parents on how to bring up their children to minimise the chance that they will grow up into violent adults is included in the commission's report. 124 It lays down four principles which it says should be taught to, and observed by, anyone who works with children of any age, especially parents. They are: ONE: Expectations of, and demands made on children, should reflect their maturity and development. It says: «Teaching children how to behave depends on suiting the action to the words. You cannot teach a toddler; not to bite by biting her (whatever you may) or teach a five-year-old not to hit children by hitting them.» TWO: All discipline should be positive and children should be taught pro-social values and behaviour including non-violent conflict resolution. It says: «The more a child is made to feel good about herself, the more she will want to be good. The more she is humiliated, made to feel tiresome, wicked or helpless, the less point she will see trying to please.» When children's behaviour is unacceptable, adults should criticise the behaviour not the child. They should say: *Your noise is giving me a headache,» not «You make me ill.» THREE: Non-violence should be consistently preferred and promoted. It says: «It is useless to tell children not to fight without giving them alternative ways of getting what they want or holding on to what they have.» «All children should be taught to use (and to respond to) verbal requests and protests. If children are to listen to each other, they must be confident that adults will listen to them.» FOUR: Adults should take responsibility for protecting children from violence done to them, but also for preventing violence done by them. It says: « Latchkey children are known to be at increased risk of being victims of many kinds of violence, including accidents and gang-assaults. They are also known to be at increased risk of gang-membership and delinquency.» Parents should make it their business to know what their children are watching on television or video, discuss any violent scenes and offer non-violent equivalents wherever possible. 125 «These are legitimate arguments against censorship, but there is none for leaving children to cope, unsupported, with whatever material comes their way.» IX. Explain what should be done if: 1) parents want 2) parents want 3) parents want 4) parents do unsupported. to teach pro-social values; to protect their children from violence; to prevent violence done by children; not want their children to be left X. Enumerate the basic principles on rearing children. Which one do you think to be the most important? XI. Review the article. ХП. Read the text and render its contents in Russian: TV Violence can Cause Aggression In Children (by Christine Russell) Violence on television can lead to aggressive behaviour by children and teenagers who watch the programs, according to a review of the last decade of research on this long-debated topic. «Television and Behaviour», a new report by the Department of Health and Human Services, concludes that the 'consensus’ among scientists is that there is a 'causal relationship' between televised violence and aggression. «After 10 years of research, the consensus among most of the research community is that violence does lead to 126 aggressive behaviour by children and teenagers who watch the programs,» according to the carefully worded update report. Calling television a 'violent form of entertainment', the new report found that the percentage of programs containing violence has remained essentially the same over the past decade, and during this period «there also has been more violence on children's weekend programs than on prime-time television.» The report cautions that «not all children become aggressive, of course, emphasizing that the various studies compare large groups rather than individual cases. But the latest research has expanded to suggest that preschool children as well as adolescents, and girls as well as boys might be influenced by the televised violence. As a window on a world with which children have little experience television strongly shapes the social attitudes of young viewers. There is fairly good evidence that children accept as authentic the portrayals that they see on television. XIII. Answer the following questions: 1. Is there direct or indirect connection between TV violence and children's aggression? 2. What kind of entertainment is television called according to a report? 3. What children are more influenced by violent episodes on TV? 4. What does television strongly shape in children? 5. How do they accept the portrayals on television? 127 XIV. Read and translate the text: TVs «Disastrous» impact on Children (by Nell Postman, Professor of Communication) Watching television over a long span seriously damages children's ability to think clearly. Exposure to TV sensationalism robs youngsters of childhood. Television is turning out to be a disastrous influence at least as far as we can determine at present. Television appears to be shortening the attention span of the young as well as eroding, to a considerable extent, their linguistic powers and their ability to handle mathematical symbolism. It also causes them to be increasingly impatient with deferred gratification. Even more serious is that television is opening up all society's secrets and taboos, thus erasing the dividing line between childhood and adulthood and leaving a very homogenized culture in the wake. I call television the «first curriculum» because of the amount of attention our children give to it. By now, the basic facts are known by almost everyone: between the ages of 6 and 18, the average child spends roughly 15,000 to 16,000 hours in front of a television set, whereas school probably consumes no more than 13,000 hours. Moreover, it is becoming obvious that there really is no such thing as «children's» programming. Between midnight and 2 in the morning, there are something like 750,000 children throughout America watching television every day. There is a fantasy people have that after 10 p.m. children are not watching television, that's nonsense. Many parents as well as educators, also have the mistaken belief that television is an «entertainment medium» in which little of enduring value is either taught by or learned from it. Television has a transforming power at least equal to that of the printing press and possibly as great as that of the alphabet itself. 128 Television is essentially a visual medium. It shows pictures moving rapidly and in a very dynamic order. The average length of a shot on a network-TV show is about 3 seconds, and on the commercial about 2,5 seconds. Although human speech is heard on television it is the picture that always contains the most important meanings-Television can never teach what a medium like a book can teach, and yet educators are always trying to pretend that they can use television to promote the cognitive habits and the intellectual discipline that print promotes. In this respect they will always be doomed to failure. Television is not a suitable medium for conveying ideas, because an idea is essentially language - words and sentences. The code through which television communicates — the visual image - is accessible to everyone. Understanding printed words must be learned, watching pictures does not require any learning. As a result, TV is a medium that becomes intelligible to children beginning at about the age of 36 months. From this very early age on, television continuously exerts influence. For this reason, I think it's fair to say that TV, as a curriculum, molds the intelligence and character of youth far more than formal schooling. Beyond that, evidence is accumulating that TV watching hurts academic performance. A recent survey indicated that the more children sit in front of the television, the worse they do on achievement-test scores. Television doesn't allow a person to accumulate knowledge based on past experiences. Language itself tends to be sequential and hierarchical and it allows complex ideas to be built up in writing through a logical progression. Most of all, language tends to be more abstract, it encourages the use of imagination. It is not true, as many insist, that watching TV is a passive experience. Anyone who has observed children watching television will know how foolish that statement is. In watching TV, children have their emotions fully engaged. It is their capacity for abstraction that is quiescent. 129 I'm not criticizing television for that. I'm saying that's what television does; that is the nature of the medium; that's why the word vision is in the word television. And there are some wonderful uses of that feature. Television, after all, does have a valuable capacity to involve people emotionally in its pictures. Certainly, there are instances when television presents drama in its fullest and richest and the most complex expression. XV. Answer the following questions: 1. Is television a good or bad influence on the way children learn? 2. Is television more pervasive in a child's world than school? 3. Why is it called the «first curriculum»? 4. How does TV hurt a child's linguistic ability? 5. Television molds intelligence and character of youth, doesn't it? 6. Is watching TV a passive or active experience? 7. What positive influence can TV exert on children? XVI. Find in the article the following wordcombinations: To damage ability; to shorten attention span; an entertainment medium; cognitive habits; to be doomed to failure; to convey ideas; to mold intelligence and character; a valuable capacity. Reproduce ideas where these word-combinations may be used. Make up your own sentences with the same word-combinations. XVII. Divide the article into logical parts. 130 XVIII. Review the article. XIX. Express your own point of view on positive and negative aspects of television in general. XX. Develop the following situations: 1. You are conducting an interview with an internationally known child psychologist who is sure that TV stereotypes are devastating to young minds. Ask him: - if it is possible to become addicted to TV like to drugs or alcohol; - what role parents must play in monitoring TV programs; - what influence TV exerts on developing mind; - what shows are the most dramatic for children; - what recommendations he gives for children; - why violent episodes are dangerous for children. 2. TV has become an integral part of our lives. It is a means of information, entertainment and education. You are conducting an interview in one family. Ask family members: - if they watch TV regularly or occasionally; - what programs they like particularly; - whose commentary they find most informative and interesting; - if TV stopped them from reading or stimulated to read more; - if they watch the same programs; - what is their attitude towards news programs. 3. You are talking with a sociologist who has conducted a survey in order to find out how harmful TV violence is for the children's psychic development. Ask him: - how many families have been polled; 131 - if there is a correlation between TV violence viewing and troublemaking behaviour; - what programs should be excluded from viewing; - how violent films influence academic background; - if cartoons with incidents of physical force are harmful; - what it is necessary to do within the television industry. 4. Your friend is much interested in seeing films about exotic animals. He is sure that TV programs about animals teach us to love animals and protect them. Ask him: - what is his favourite program on animals; - what mostly attracts him in such shows; - how long he has been watching such programs; - if these programs give our children a sense of love to animals; - what he feels when he watches shows on gradual extinction of some rare animals; - if these programs are a means of enlightenment and education. XXI. Read the article and entitle it: When children under detention at the San Bernardino County Probation Department in California become violent, they are put in a small cell with one distinctive feature — it is bubble-gum pink. The children tend to relax, stop yelling and often fall asleep within 10 minutes, said the director of clinical services for the department. This approach to calming maniac and psychotic juveniles contrasts sharply with the use of brute force. «We used to have to literally sit on them», said the clinical psychologist. «Now we put them in the pink room. It works.» 132 Not all psychologists are quite so sure; many remain skeptical. Nonetheless, officials at an estimated 1,500 hospitals and correctional institutions across the United States have become sufficiently convinced of the pacifying effect of bubble-gum pink to color at least one room that shade. Passive pink, as it is also called, is perhaps the most dramatic example, and certainly the most controversial, of many attempts to use light and color to affect health and behaviour. Already, there are enough color schemes to spark nightmares about mind control; red to increase appetite in restaurants, ultraviolet to reduce cavities and boost children's intelligence, and blue to swell the ratio of female chinchilla babies to males. In industrial societies whose members spend more and more time in enclosed areas under artificial lights, any effect of color and light becomes important. And with the day nearing when man will build artificial habitats under the seas or in outer space, totally isolated from sunlight or totally exposed to it, an understanding of the effects of light is becoming urgent. XXII. Prove by the facts from the article that: 1. Pink color influences positively children's behaviour. 2. Other colors may also affect health and intelligence. 3. Effect of color and light becomes important. XXIII. Answer the following questions: 1. What experiment was conducted at the Probation Department in California? 2. What color gives a pacifying effect on human behaviour? 3. How does red affect human health? 4. What do you know about other color effects? 5. Is the color theory of any practical importance for human life? What do you think? 133 XXIV. Review the article. XXV. Read the Russian article and render its contents in English: Цвета существуют не только для того, чтобы мы различали предметы и радовались многокрасочному миру природы. Они в той или иной степени влияют на наше физическое и духовное здоровье, взаимоотношения с людьми. Окружая себя вещами определённых цветов, мы облегчаем либо усложняем свою жизнь. Отдавая предпочтение тем или иным оттенкам в одежде, мы корректируем настроение и демонстрируем характер. Есть даже мнение, что пристрастие человека к конкретным расцветкам является врожденным. Например, любители белого мечтательны, у них хорошо развито воображение. Розовый по сердцу людям, витающим в мире грёз, ценящим комфорт и домашний уют. Почитатели красного самоуверенны, амбициозны. Тёмно-голубой — цвет жизнелюбивых, энергичных людей, стремящихся к успеху и богатству: путешественников, учёных, артистов. Те, кому нравится коричневый, уравновешены, строги, бережливы и любознательны. К серым тонам неравнодушны творческие личности. Упрямы и настойчивы поклонники тёмно-зелёного, который является цветом респектабельных, преуспевающих в бизнесе людей, например банкиров. Оттенки душевной гармонии. Если у вас сложности в личной жизни, спасут оранжевый и зелёный. Благодаря этим тонам вы найдёте правильный путь к решению проблем. Присутствие их в вашем окружении поможет избежать многих неприятностей, например семейной «бури». 134 Оранжевый располагает к любви и нормализует эмоциональные взаимоотношения. Зелёный навевает покой, приносит равновесие и дарит счастье. Поэтому, когда нужно принять решение, закройте глаза и зрительно представьте себе этот цвет. Если на работе вы очень быстро устаёте, зовите на помощь красный цвет. Например, в квартире поставьте в вазу алые розы, а в офисе положите на стол яркокрасную папку или ручку. Это сразу поднимет ваш жизненный тонус. Однако следует помнить, что злоупотребление этим цветом может вызвать раздражение или гнев. Цветовая гамма здоровья. Восточные врачи благодаря цветотерапии успешно лечат около 300 заболеваний. Оранжевый благотворно влияет на гормональный баланс, избавляет от нервных срывов и депрессивных состояний, помогает освободиться от навязчивых страхов. Зеленый хорошо тонизирует, снимает головную боль, стабилизирует давление. Жёлтый спасает от депрессии, укрепляет нервную систему. Он избавляет от навязчивых мыслей. (SHAPE, March 2002) XXVI. Do you support the ideas suggested in the article? Give your arguments. XXVII.Look through the article that follows, choose and read sentences on: 1. big changes in the pattern of family life; 2. parents' trust to their children. High Teenage Delinquency Blamed on Friends and Family Shortcomings Boys and girls are more likely to be delinquent if they have delinquent friends, do not regard stealing as particularly wrong, and are not close to their fathers. 135 The discovery, which throws light on one of the most crimeprone age groups, has been made in a survey for the research and planning unit of the Home Office. About a third of offenders dealt with by the criminal justice system are under 17 years of age. The peak age for officially recorded offending is 15 for males and 14 for females. About 160,000 juveniles a year are found guilty or cautioned for indictable offences. The contribution to, and cost of crime by young teenagers when they are still very much part of the family and still at school is enormous. There have been big changes in the pattern of family life in the past 10 or 15 years with more mothers working outside the home, more marriage breakdowns and an increase in the numbers of single-parent families. Young people's lives also seem to be more autonomous than those of earlier generations, and there is ample publicity about apparent increases in vandalism, shoplifting, drug misuse and hooliganism. These factors help fuel the fear that families are no longer effectively helping to protect their children from delinquency. They also help apportion blame for the problem of juvenile crime, perhaps unfairly to families. Parents seem to be trusting to their children. According to the report, four out of five felt they could rely on their teenage offspring to behave well when out in spare time, though that did not mean that parents did not worry about what the teenager might be up to. Almost half the parents admitted to worrying. Such worry may in fact be justified in that while most parents thought it very unlikely that their child could get into trouble with the police, half the boys and two-fifths of the girls admitted to delinquent activity. Parents, perhaps unjustifiably, also seemed reasonably content with their teenagers' choice of friends. Only 9 per cent disapproved of any of their current friends and about four-fifths thought they knew most of them at least by name. Again, parents appeared to underestimate the risks of delinquent involvement in that two-thirds of the teenagers 136 reported that they had friends who had committed illegal behaviour. In general, most parents appeared still to be exercising authority. Few teenagers escaped being scolded on a regular basis, but serious disputes seemed comparatively rare. Of parents 20 per cent had imposed a specific sanction, such as keeping teenagers in. XXVIII. Answer the following questions: 1. What is the greatest probability for boys and girls to be delinquent? 2. What statistical data were found by the survey for Home Office? 3. What is the average number of juveniles? 4. What are the basic reasons of teenage delinquency? 5. What is their parents* attitude to children's spare time spending? 6. What is their position towards their children's friends? 7. What do you consider to be the main cause of juvenile delinquency? XXIX. Review the article. Add what you know of the given problem from your own experience. XXX. Translate the following text in writing: The Functions of the Family The family is sometimes described as the backbone of society. The family is the first and most important agent in the socialization process. The personalities of each new generation are shaped within the family, so that, ideally, children grow to be well-integrated and contributing members of a larger society. In industrial societies, of 137 course, peer groups, schools, churches, and the mass media are also important in the socialization of children. But this remains the primary function of the family. The family also contributes to the continuing socialization of people throughout their life cycle. Adults learn and change within marriage, and as anyone with children knows, parents are influenced by their children just as their children learn from them. Regulation of Sexual Activity. Every culture places some restrictions on sexual behaviour. Sexual intercourse is a personal matter of those involved, but is the basis of human reproduction and inheritance, it is also a matter of considerable social importance. All societies enforce some type of incest taboo cultural norms that forbid sexual relations or marriage between certain kin. Exactly which kin are subject to the incest taboo is culturally variable. Most Americans consider sexual relations with a parent, grandparent, sibling, aunt, or uncle to be both immoral and unnatural. But such sexual relations have been condoned — or even encouraged - in some cultures. Brother-sister marriages, for example, were common among the ancient Egyptian, Inca, and Hawaiian nobility; and male nobles of the Azande in eastern Africa are reported to marry their daughters. Some societies forbid sexual relations with cousins, while others do not; in the American society. Catholic religious beliefs prohibit marriage between first cousins, while Jewish religious beliefs do not. Further, about as many states prohibit this practice as allow it. These examples suggest the extent to which the incest taboo is subject to cultural variation. The significance of the incest taboo is primarily social rather than biological. Contrary to common assumptions, children that result from sexual activity between close relatives rarely have mental or physical abnormalities. Socially speaking, incest taboos serve to minimize sexual competition within families. Incest taboos also encourage marriage outside the family; such alliances provide economic and political advantages to particular families, 138 as well as strengthening social ties among members of society as a whole. Social Placement. From a biological point of view, of course, the family is not necessary for people to have children. Within families, however, children are born not only as biological beings, but also as members of society. Many important social statuses - including race, ethnicity, religion, and social class — are ascribed at birth through the family. This explains society's long-standing concern that children should be born of socially sanctioned marriages. Legitimate birth, especially when parents are of similar position, allows for the most orderly transmission of social standing from parents to children and clarifies inheritance rights. Material and Emotional Security. In ideal terms, the family protects and supports its members physically, emotionally, and often financially from birth until death. The family is usually a person's most important primary group, and family members generally have intense and enduring relationships with one another. This concern for one another's welfare engenders an important sense of self-worth and security in each individual, as suggested by the fact that individuals living in families tend to be healthier than those who live alone. However, the intense character of family ties also means that families have the ability to undermine the individual's self-confidence, health, and well-being- This fact has become clear as researchers have studied patterns of family violence and, especially, child abuse. 139 WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: Affectional bonds; threat of a loss; a source of security; negotiation; accomodate to; adaptive attachment; close emotional ties; adjustment period; marital role; to interact with peers; sibling relationship; to support or hinder; financial commitment; violent adults; maturity and development; pro-social values; conflict resolution; macho behaviour; verbal requests; latchkey children; delinquency. II. Give English equivalents for: Агрессивное поведение; согласие; подростки; дошкольники; социальные установки; подлинные изображения; отличительная особенность; расслабиться; успокоительное воздействие; криминогенный возраст; мужчины; женщины; виновный; поколение; кража в магазинах; доверять; потомство; совершать преступление; налагать санкции. III. Explain the meanings of the following words: Teenager; delinquency; crimeprone age; offspring; generation; latchkey children; rearing; maturity; adolescent; adult. IV. Translate into Russian: Crime — criminal — crimeprone — criminal justice system - to commit a crime Delinquent - delinquency - juvenile delinquency Violence - violent - non-violent acts - violent episodes - violent behaviour - to protect from violence – televised violence Abuse - drug abuse — child abuse - alcohol abuse — drugabuser Addiction - drug addiction — drug-addict — addicted to violence 140 V. Make up sentences: 1. Family therapists 2. Family therapists 3. Parents 4. Adults 5. Social scientists 6. Researchers 7. Psychologists 8. Experimenters 9. The survey 10. Most parents are worried television shapes the social attitudes stress ultraviolent boosts children’s intelligence showed to protect their children from delinquency are seeking to lest their children understand grow up into violent adults report stressful transition points between stages point out that latchkey children are at the increased risk of being victims of violence are concerned light and colour with affect health and behaviour are aware relationships between parents and children are sure that TV violence causes aggression in children are not able young people’s lives are more autonomous 141 VI Choose the corresponding word-combinations out of the list below to characterize: a) Parental role b) TV violence c) Colour effect on behaviour d) Juvenile delinquency To protect emotionally; to lead to aggressive behaviour; to increase appetite; to commit illegal behaviour; to exercise positive discipline; to commit crimes; to boost intelligence; to comprise a crimeprone age group; drug use; to cope with problems; to accept portrayals as authentic; to tend to relax; to get into trouble with police; shoplifting; to respond to verbal requests; to take care of; a violent form of entertainment; to promote a pacifying effect; to exercise authority. VII. Translate into English: 1. Развод и увеличение числа семей с одним родителем приводят к драматическим последствиям для детей. 2. Правильное воспитание снижает возможность агрессии у детей. 3. Взрослые могут критиковать поведение ребёнка, но не его личность. 4 . Психологи приходят к выводу о причинной связи между насилием на телевидении и агрессией. 5. Влияние цвета на поведение детей может давать неожиданные результаты. 6. Подростки более склонны к преступлениям, если их друзья имели дело с полицией. 7. Семьи больше не могут защитить своих детей от вовлечённости в преступные акты. 142 UNIT V I. Read the text and translate it: Sociologists' Views on Marriage What is the criterion when choosing a mate? From many sociological surveys taken, it is unanimous that social, national, religious or other similar considerations have very little influence on the choice. As for the nationality of those marrying, 14 per cent (every seventh) of the marriages in this country are mixed marriages, and this trend is growing. An extensive sociological survey showed that 94 per cent of those about to get married say that love is the only ideal of marriage, which friendship and respect supplement. Only three per cent of those polled mentioned financial considerations as a possible motivation for marriage. The overwhelming majority said there can be no happiness where there is no emotional and intellectual attraction. The results of a sociological survey in Moscow show that young people are attracted most by kindness, then sociability, openness, modesty, and finally, ability for good house-keeping. The figures on the age of marriage are also interesting: young women in the under 20 group figure in 25 per cent of the marriages; 20-23 - 61 per cent; 23-26 - 12 per cent; and over 26 — only two per cent. Young men don't seem in such a hurry to marry: the 20 group figure is only 15 per cent of the marriages; those in the 21-23 age group — 16 per cent, 23-26 — 49 per cent, and over 26 - 20 per cent. Sociological results over the past 20 years indicate that most young people in this country do go into marriage with understanding and a sense of responsibility, and are eager to keep the marriage together. According to the statistics, there are 33 divorces per every 100 marriages in this country (compared to 60 per 143 100 in Sweden, and 44 in the United States). What is the cause for divorce? The prime reason for the comparatively high divorce rate in this country is the unequal sharing of domestic responsibilities, say many sociologists. Two factors are relevant here: the rising educational standards, and the greater intellectual and moral demands young women make of their men. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. II. Answer the following questions: What are the criteria for the marriage? Do national considerations influence the choice? And what about financial considerations? What are the young people attracted by? What do the figures on the age of marriage show? What do sociological results over the past 20 years indicate? What does the statistics show on the divorce? What is the prime reason for the high divorce rate? III. Make up disjunctive questions: Social and religious considerations have little influence on the marriage. The trend of mixed marriages is growing. Love is the only ideal of marriage. The young people are mostly attracted by kindness. Young men do not hurry to marry. The divorce rate in this country is rather high. IV. Choose the facts in the text to prove that: 1. National considerations are mostly neglected. 2 . Financial considerations are seldom mentioned as a possible motivation for marriage. 3. Young people are attracted by the best qualities people may have. 4. Young women are more enthusiastic and active as for the marriage is concerned. 144 5. Divorces are not a rare case in this country. V. Divide the text into four logical parts. VI. Speak on the main points of the text. VII. Discuss in a group the following problems: 1. Marriage considerations. 2. Your own ideal of a mate. 3. Sharing of domestic responsibilities. VII. Read the following article and render its contents in Russian: Even In the USA we May Be Socially Backward (by Russell Watson) The first of my ancestors who came to North America, in the 17th century, were Dutch. They settled in a colony called New Amsterdam. Then the English took over. New Amsterdam became New York and New Jersey, and my ancestors had to put aside their Dutchness. Today, even Americans who live in old New Amsterdam no longer consider the Netherlands a mother country. When we think of the Dutch, we picture a small, oddball nation that permits many of the things we still regard as unlawful: prostitution, marijuana, same-sex marriages. Yet, without knowing it, Americans are becoming a little more Dutch all the time - a society embroiled in rapid change, breaking down old structures and trying out best ways to live. The latest US Census shows that the presumed bedrock of our society, the nuclear family Mom, Dad and 2.4 kids - is breaking down fast. Fewer than 25 percent of all US households now consist of married couples raising children, according to Census figures. In part, that's a consequence of societal aging: a 145 growing portion of the US population is now beyond the child-rearing stage. But it also reflects a steep decline in the popularity of marriage, even for people who want to have children. About a third of all babies are now born to unmarried women, compared with only 3.8 percent in 1950. The number of families headed by single women has risen 25 percent since 1990, to more than 7.5 million households. (The number of fathers raising kids on their own has increased at an even faster rate, to just over 2 million families). Demographers predict that more than half of the American children born in the 1990s will spend at least part of their childhood in a single-parent home. Today's single mothers don't fit the old stereotype of dark-skinned teenagers on welfare. Though many are employed, they are still likely to be financially insecure, but they could be any age and any race. The median age for unmarried mothers is the late 20s, and white women make up the fastest-growing element of the group. Instead of getting married — or staying married — many people are just living together. Unmarried cohabitation, involving both same-sex and opposite-sex couples, rose from 72 percent between 1990 and 2000, to 5.5 million households. Thanks to artificial insemination and adoption, a man in residence is no longer needed to produce a baby. It's easy to understand why adult Americans are acting this way. With so many marriages ending in divorce, formal commitment strikes many people as a bad idea. And with so many women in the work force, fewer of them feel compelled to economic pressure to settle for Mr. Almost Right. It isn't clear whether all this unmarried parenthood is good for the children involved. Single parents generally have less time to spend with their children than two parents. Cohabiting relationships 146 are less stable than marriages, which means that children living in such families are more likely to grow up with a revolving set of adults in their lives. And the offspring of single parents are more likely to reject marriage for themselves, perpetuating the pattern of their childhoods. For better or worse, Americans are reinventing the family. If the children of single-parent or cohabiting households end up receiving less guidance and support from their elders, family life will become a new form of Dutch treat. You're on your own, kids. («NEWSWEEK» 2001) IX. Explain., please, the following word-combinations: a) same-sex marriages; b) single-parent households; c) cohabiting families. meanings of the X. Ennumerate all statistical data given in the article. What do these figures signify? XI. Answer the following questions: 1. What are demographers worried about? 2. Why do young people prefer live together instead of getting married? 3. Why is sometimes a man no longer needed to produce a baby? 4. Are cohabiting relations a good model for the offspring? 5. What expects Americans? XII. Review the article. 147 XIII. Read the following story and tell it in your own words. Propose the cause o f the quarrel. How would you behave in case o f a quarrel? When a Man Marries After a flaming row Mrs Meek slammed the door and walked out into the rain. Hearing that Mr Meek picked up his gun, aimed it at the ceiling and fired a shot. The lady who was still in the garden, heard it and rushed back but found the door locked. She had left the keys at home and realized she would not be able to get in unless she broke the door open. She set about the work at once but it was not so easy at all and, I daresay, she would no doubt have to give up the attempt if her neighbours had not heard her scream and wanted to give her a helping hand. As the lady Struggled bravely at the door, her husband tip-toed to the kitchen, picked up a tin of tomato juice, and split the liquid all over his face, his sports jacket, and the brand new tie. Having done that he looked at himself in the mirror and, no doubt, satisfied with what he had done, made his way to the bedroom. There he took a paper, the Daily Mirror I believe it was, and lay down on the bed with his shoes on. For a time he played with the gun but then it occurred to him he had intended to read the press. So he put the gun on the dressing table, took the paper and set about reading. And how happy he was. There was nothing else he could wish at that particular moment... but what's that? The door had been broken open and he could now hear footsteps in the hall. He put away the newspaper, and closed his eyes trying to look as dead as he possibly could. Presently the door was torn open and his wife followed by a police constable ran into the room. 148 - It's all over now! - cried out the lady bursting into tears. She had taken stock of the situation at once, and whispered almost fainting: — Poor me! He's split the last tin of tomato juice. What am I going to make soup with? Believe me, gentlemen, it's the last time I've ever left the larder open! Notes: A flaming row — пылкая ссора To tip-toe — идти на цыпочках A tin of tomato juice - банка томатного сока Almost fainting - почти теряя сознание A larder — кладовая WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for:. Sociological survey; sociological results; marriage; to get married; to marry; overwhelming majority; intellectual attraction; sociability; a sense of responsibility; moral demands. II. Reproduce the sentences from the text with the following word-combinations: Social and national considerations Mixed marriages The only ideal of marriage To be attracted by The prime reason III. Make up sentences according to the model: Young people are attracted by kindness. modesty sociability intellect openness house-keeping ability 149 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. IV. Translate the words in the brackets: (Что касается) the nationality, 14 per cent of the marriages are mixed marriages. Love is (единственный) ideal of marriage. Most young people go into marriages with а (чувство) of responsibility. (Согласно) the statistics, there are 33 divorces per every 100 marriages. The prime (причина) for the high divorce rate is unequal domestic responsibilities. Young men don't seem (спешить) to marry. V. Translate the text in writing: The Family Sociological writing on the family has long been dominated by two themes: universality and decline. The theme of universality asserts that the family exists in all human societies. For a number of compelling reasons, people cannot live as solitary creatures, nor can human females raise their young by themselves as mother cats do. Hence, humans always live in groups containing adults of both sexes as well as children. Moreover, within any society, people form small clusters, called families, containing males and females, adults and children. Membership in these clusters usually is determined by common ancestry and sexual unions. This definition of family is vague because sociologists and anthropologists have had much difficulty framing a more specific definition, given the amazing variety of social forms called families in different societies. Again and again, more specific definitions of the family have been found not to apply in one society or another, thus destroying the claim that the family is universal. Yet all societies do seem to have families. 150 The second theme in modern sociological writing on the family is that, despite the universality of the family, in modern societies the family is in decline. Some claim that, thanks to modernization, the family has eroded dangerously. Families are now shrunken and unstable, and the modern family is increasingly unable to provide for the well-being of its members. Indeed, recent textbooks typically end discussions of the family with the question «Will the family survive?» The answer rarely is anything more definite than maybe. Despite the problems of definition, a great deal of historical, anthropological, and cross-cultural evidence supports the universality theme. The family is a fundamental social institution occuring in all societies, although its particular forms differ substantially from place to place. Even the radical Utopian communes of the nineteenth century did not succeed in eliminating the family as the basic unit of social relations. The theme of decline has seemed equally well supported by evidence. Statistics show that in all of the most modernized nations, the divorce rate has risen rapidly. This would seem to reflect the weakness of fundamental family bonds today. However, to know whether the modern family is really less able to fulfil its functions, we need to know whether the family in traditional societies fulfilled them better. For a long time, social scientists thought it self-evident that the traditional family did function better, and so they didn't bother to seek pertinent evidence. Recently, however, much has been learned about families in the «good old days». This evidence seriously challenges the theme of decline. Be prepared to discover that family life in premodern times often was cruel and spiteful to an extent that will absolutely shock you. People often expressed happiness when their spouse died, and were unmoved by the death of a child. Thus, it can be argued that the family has become more important than ever during the past century and much better able to provide strong emotional attachments among its members than did families in traditional societies. 151 DREAMS UNIT VI I. Read and translate the text: Dreams, a Safeguard against Life's L i t t l e Trials and Tribulations A person sleeps away one-third his life. Dreaming alone accounts for more than 5 years of the average lifespan. Freud, one of the first to analyze dreams, dubbed dreaming as the royal path to the subconscious. Dreams reflect our desires and motivate our behaviour. Some people claim that they do not dream at all. That's not right. Everybody dreams. It is quite another matter if upon waking one forgets one's dreams. This depends on many factors, including family traditions. Some people dream in black and white, others in colour. Dreaming in colour is more common among emotional people, with a flexible nervous system. Wellbalanced, calm people sometimes dream in colour too, but pay less attention to it. Sleep is composed of consecutive rapid and slow phases. One dreams several times per night, but only during a rapid phase of sleep. Dreams are so important, that if deprived of dreams, a person can experience serious psychic changes. A person can be deprived of dreaming by waking at the beginning of a rapid phase. This moment can be recorded, heart beat becomes more frequent, irregular breathing patterns emerge, eye movements become more rapid. 'Rapid' sleep, and consequently dreams, are crucial for various reasons. Falling asleep is like scaling down the 152 stairs of slumber to its extremely deep stages: initially, superficial sleep, followed by moderate sleep and then deep sleep. If this process did not stop, the logical progression would be the coma stage - a cerebral state which cannot be reversed. However, a rapid phase of sleep, whereby the brain awakens itself, ensues, bringing the slumber a few steps higher to facilitate another drop. Physiologically, this is absolutely vital. But this is also psychologically crucial. Dreaming is a vital mechanism of psychological safeguard against difficulties of everyday life. At night, life seems unbearable, fraught with insurmountable difficulties, but comes morning the sun emerges inspiring hope and resolving problems. There is a Chinese saying «We can sneeze away all our problems in our sleep.» Nowadays there is an abundance of books on interpreting dreams. But the same images are interpreted in completely different ways depending on the book you choose, much is based on mere assumption, and stretches the imagination too far. Books that interpret dreams are based on certain observations, but statistically they are not verified, one cannot generalize proceeding from the information therein. Interpreters of dreams try to foretell a person's future while the scientific research is to understand the essence of an individual, to penetrate into the subconscious. II. Answer the following questions: 1. How does Freud define dreams? Do you support his definition? 2. What do our dreams reflect? 3. Do we remember our dreams? 4. Do we often see dreams in colour? 5. Do people dream all night long? 6. Why are dreams so important for people? 7 What does the Chinese saying state? 153 8. What do interpreters try to foretell in their books? 9. Do you think whether it is possible to predict our future or not? 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. III. Complete the following sentences: Dreams reflect ... . Dreaming in colour is more common among ... . Sleep is composed of ... . Dreams are very important because ... . Falling asleep is like ... . Books interpreting dreams are based on ... . IV. Not long ago people tried to study while asleep. What is your opinion o f this method? V. Divide the text into logical parts and make up an outline. VI. Speak on the text in accordance with this outline. VII. Read the article and find the answers to the following questions: 1. What helps the man follow the regular rhythm of sleep and wakefulness? 2. Why do people suffer from insomnia? 3. What experiment is described in the article? 4. Do all creatures sleep? The Mystery of Sleep (by Graham Workman) We may not give it a moment's thought, but most of us will probably spend one third of our lives asleep. But how much sleep do we really need? In Florida, a volunteer was shut up in a special room for two weeks. He was allowed to sleep as much as he wanted, but there 154 were no clocks in the room and the lights were always on. In other words, the only way he could tell if it was lunchtime, tea-time or bed-time was from what his body told him. The man settled down to a regular rhythm of sleep and wakefulness. How much did he sleep? The same as about normal. The fact that he did this shows that his body must have an inbuilt mechanism, telling him to fall asleep and wake up. What then is the purpose of this biological clock? Originally, it was probably a mechanism for survival. Sleep was a rhythmic process developed millions of years ago as a way of coping with life on a planet which had regular days and nights. Sleep protected people from the predators of the night and the inefficiencies of darkness. All creatures sleep, but the amount they sleep varies greatly. This is because each species has an appropriate pattern of sleep that is suited to the world it inhabits. An elephant has to spend most of the day finding food and eating it, so it sleeps only 2 hours a day. Of all living creatures only human beings get insomnia, because only they distort the natural rhythm of sleep with everything from anxiety to jet travel, from television to working roundthe-clock. But if we do not get to sleep at night, will it necessarily matter? Does it matter that night-shift workers do not get a normal ration of sleep? How safely can we make major decisions - perhaps life-or-death ones if we are prime ministers or doctors - when we have missed a lot of sleep? One exception to all this is Lesley Gamble. He claims that following an accident 11 years ago, he never sleeps at all. Researchers tested him by putting him into a darkened room with electrodes to see to what extent he was drowsy or slept. It is almost impossible for a sleepy person to lie 155 down in a darkened room all night and not fall asleep. The recording showed him relaxed but awake all night. He says he thinks most of the night, reflecting on happy events in his life which helps him to relax mentally. How can a case like Lesley's be explained? It seems likely that his accident damaged in some way the operation of his biological clock and his body is no longer getting the order to sleep. One way to find out if sleep is necessary is to take it away for three days and nights and see what happens, testing all the time which functions are affected most: our muscle co-ordination, our posture, our physical energy and strength, and most important, our mental vigilance. Four students agreed to take part in such an experiment. After 36 hours without sleep they were still doing remarkably well at some things. Interesting games, like chess, presented few problems for the sleep deprived. The tired brain can overcome fatigue if it wants to. Motivation, excitement and danger all keep us awake. The tired brain, however, is not good at boring, repetitive tasks. When the volunteers had to recognize short musical notes from a series of long and short notes, they made more and more mistakes as time passed. After 72 hours without sleep everybody looked tired, their balance and muscle co-ordination had deteriorated and their mental vigilance had dropped. But basically there was nothing wrong. Heart, lungs and muscle strength were all fine. In fact the body can do very well without sleep. Provided it is given adequate relaxation and food, there are no adverse effects on the body and its functioning. So if you miss a lot of sleep you are still able to operate, although the risk of making mistakes is increased. But if the body does not need sleep, why do people feel so awful when they are deprived of it? What arc insomniacs actually complaining about? 156 The answer probably lies in our brains — the homes of our biological clocks. The body may not need sleep but millions of years of evolution have programmed our brains to sleep every night of our lives, and there is nothing we can do about it. VIII. Read the article again and say about: - the purpose of the biological clock; the factors damaging the operation of the biological clock; - the factors that keep us awake. IX. Tell us, please, i f you believe in a possibility not to sleep at all. X. Review the article. . XI. Read and translate the text: A Good Nights Steep - an Impossible Dream? American sleep experts are sounding an alarm over America's sleep deficit. They say Americans are a somnambulant nation, stumbling groggily through their waking hours for lack of sufficient sleep. They are working longer days - and, increasingly, nights - and they are playing longer, too, as TV and the Internet expand the range of round-the-clock entertainment options. By some estimates, Americans are sleeping as much as an hour and a half less per night than they did at the turn of the century — and the problem is likely to get worse: «The 24hour society is here, and it's growing», says one of the slumber scientists. «Physiologically, we just cannot adapt that well.» The health repurcussions of sleep deprivation are not well understood, but sleep researchers point to its ranging 157 from heart problems to depression. In a famous experiment conducted at the University of Chicago, rats kept from sleeping died after two and a half weeks. People are not likely to drop dead in the same way, but sleep deprivation may cost them their life indirectly, when an exhausted doctor prescribes the wrong dosage or a sleepy driver weaves into someone's lane because driving while tired is very similar to driving drunk. What irritates sleep experts most is the fact that much sleep deprivation is voluntary. «People have regarded sleep as a commodity that they could shortchange», says one of them. «It's been considered a mark of very hard work and upward mobility to get very little sleep. It's macho attitude.» Slumber scientists hope that attitude will change. They say people have learned to modify their behaviour in terms of lowering their cholesterol and increasing exercise. Doctors also think people need to be educated that allowing enough time for sleep and taking strategic naps are the most reliable ways to promote alertness behind the wheel and on the job. Naps would be nice, but at the moment, employers tend to frown on them. And what about the increasing numbers of people who work at night? Not only must they work while their bodies' light-activated circadian rhythms tell them to sleep, they also find it tough to get to sleep after work. Biologists say night workers have a hard time not paying attention to the 9-to-5 day, because of noises or family obligations or that's the only time they can go to the dentist. As one may imagine, companies are springing up to take advantage of a sleeplessness. One of the companies makes specially designed shift-work lighting systems intended to keep workers alert around the clock. Shift-work's theory is that bright light, delivered in a controlled fashion, can help adjust people's biological clocks. The 158 company president says they are using light like a medicine. So far, such special lighting has been the province of NASA astronauts and nuclear power plant workers. He thinks that, in the future, such systems may pop up in places like hospitals and 24-hour credit-card processing centres. Other researchers are experimenting with everything from welder's goggles (which night workers wear during the day) to human growth hormones. And, of course, there is always what doctors refer to as «therapeutic caffeine use», but everyone is already familiar with that. So, is a good night's sleep an impossible dream for Americans? Maybe so. XII. Answer the following questions: 1. Why do you think the text starts and ends with the same question? 2. Why are Americans called a somnambulant nation? 3. What are the consequences of sleep deprivation? 4. What experiment was conducted at the University of Chicago? 5. What are sleep experts irritated by? 6. What are the ways to promote alertness? 7. What problems do night workers face? 8. Is it possible to adjust people's biological clocks? 9. What are researchers experimenting with? XIII. Are you in favour o f or against: a) TV and Internet as night entertainment options; b) sleep deprivation as a macho attitude; c) taking strategic naps; d) night work; e) shift-work lighting systems; f) therapeutic caffeine use? XIV. Describe: a) your physical state after a sleepless night; b) your idea of a good night's sleep. 159 XV. Characterize the position towards sleep problems taken by: a) slumber scientists; b) doctors; c) biologists; d) some companies; e) experimenters. XVI. Divide the article into logical parts. Give a heading to each part. XVII. Review the article. XVIII. A role-play: Your uncle is a night worker. Ask him about his job and disadvantages of working at night. XIX. Read the article and render i t s contents in Russian: Sweet Dreams (by Gaynor Device) Everyone of us dreams on and off throughout each night, no matter how vehemently some of us may deny it. True, we probably don't remember even a fraction of our dreams, but laboratory tests have shown that all our brains are busy while we are asleep. Exactly why we dream isn't fully understood, but there's little doubt dreams act as a kind of safety valve, helping us to sift through our waking experiences, and to reconcile conflicting feelings about our lives. In this way, dreams can be of great value in understanding our problems and in getting to know ourselves better. The language of dreams is undeniably puzzling, and yet it does have a logic of its own. To help you understand your dreams it's a good idea to keep a dream journal by your bedside so that you can capture the fleeting details the moment you awake. Note down not just what happens in the dream but the mood and feelings it evokes. Over the 160 months you should begin to see a pattern in your dreaming. One thing's for sure, the more you study your dreams, the more you will be amazed at how clever your mind is. In dreams we become artists, dramatists and poets, conjuring up marvellous imagery. Sometimes the messages of our dreams simply resolve around recognisable people, objects and events which are out of their normal context, but surprisingly the dream message will often involve a pun, either visual or verbal. Along with symbols that are special to us, there is the amazing phenomenon of universal symbols, the idea that we are all born knowing a shared dream language. This arises from what Swiss psychiatrist Carl Jung called «the collective unconscious». All over the world people are dreaming in the same symbolic language every night, with only slight differences according to culture and customs. If you find it hard to accept, ask around your friends and family and you'll see how many of them regularly dream of the following: WATER: It's our emotional life that's being focussed on when we dream of water. A flood can indicate we are being overwhelmed by emotion. Or the water may be stagnant and murky, turbulent or calm, showing various feelings in our waking lives. JOURNEYS: Whatever the mode of transport, a travelling dream symbolizes our journey through life. If we dream we keep missing buses or planes we should not panic. It means we are anxious, but that any real life setbacks are only temporary. FLYING: Flying can show that the dreamer suffers from a lack of confidence and would like to feel more on tops of things, and to rise above difficulties. SITTING AN EXAM: When we dream we're sitting an exam we feel ill-prepared for, it may be a sign that we fear we're about to face a test in life we won't be able to cope with. 161 Recurring dreams can be disturbing, and dream analysts say they indicate that we need to take another look at events in our lives — things which we thought we understood the significance of but perhaps didn't. Can dreams fortell the future? This is the $64,000 question. There are plenty of people who claim to have dreamed the results of horse races, which must come in handy. All too many people have foreseen tragedies such as the TITANIC disaster in their dreams. I personally have no doubt that the future can occasionally be glimpsed in dreams. XX. Make u p disjunctive questions and respond to them: 1. The language of dreams is puzzling. 2. To keep a dream journal by your bedside is a good idea. 3. The dream message involves a pun. 4. All of us share a dream language. 5. People are dreaming in the same symbolic language. 6. Our dreams reflect our past experiences and present emotions. 7. Dreams indicate we need to take another look at events. XXI. D o you remember what dreams signify? Could you interpret a dream with a flood; a journey; flying; being naked? XXII. Choose the statement you think t o be correct. Give your arguments. 1. Dreams reflect a) our hidden wishes; b) past events; c) future. 2. Our brains a) are busy while we are asleep; b) are at a rest; c) make up a future chain of events. 3. Dreams act as a) a safety valve; b) a warning; c) a means of relaxation. 162 4. To understand a dream you must a) study a number of books interpreting dreams; b) note down it into a dream journal; c) imagine what you would like to see in your dream. 5. The messages of our dreams revolve around a) familiar people; b) strangers; c) your future friends. 6. If in your dream you are sitting an exam, it symbolizes a) your fear; b) your negative attitude towards this psychological testing; c) your failure. ХХIII. Speak on the article in accordance with the plan: 1. The meaning of dreams. 2. The language of dreams. 3. The messages of dreams. 4. The symbols of dreams. 5. Dream forecasts. XXIV. Read the article information you, have learnt. and The Meaning of Vernon Coleman) say Dreams what (by new Dr Nearly half of all women admit they dream several times a night but usually have no idea what the dreams mean. That's a pity because your dreams can tell you a lot about yourself. During an average night you'll drift into light sleep and then deep sleep. You'll go through five of these hour-long cycles. Before each new cycle — for between 10 163 and 30 minutes — you'll be in dreamland: an unstructured world where nothing is impossible. By studying your dreams you can learn a great deal about yourself. Overweight people dream more than thin. Women dream more than men: 45 per cent of women say that they dream several times a night, but only 34 per cent of men say they dream that often. It is possible to choose what to dream about. As you fall asleep, make sure that the last thing on your mind is the scene or person you want to dream about. But be warned. It is impossible to decide exactly what is going to happen. Your plans for a night of romantic passion could easily turn into something else. A growing number of scientists believe that premonitions - either when you are awake or when you are in dreamland — may be just as real as other senses. But if you regularly have dreams about terrible things happening to you or those you love, you are almost certainly not dreaming about things that are going to happen but events that you are worried about. If you dream of TV stars, this may mean that you want your life to be more exciting. If you felt inferior, then your confidence probably needs a boost. A dream about death may signify you are looking forward to something about to happen - a new job or a new relationship, for example. XXV. Answer the following questions: 1. How is the dreamland characterized? 2. Who dreams more often depending on the weight? 3. Do males or females dream more often? How can you explain it? 4. Do dreams ever predict the future? 5. What dreams can you see if you want your life to become more exciting? 164 XXVI. Render the contents o f t h e article in 10 sentences. XXVII. Develop the following situations: 1. You are writing a report on dreaming. Your work is more theoretical than practical but still you are going to carry out a poll. What possible questions would you like to include into your questionnaire? But first ask a respondent: - if he always remembers his dreams; - if he dreams more in black and white or in colour; - if his dreams depend on his mood on the eve; - what dreams he sees more often; - if he ever sees horror dreams; - what he feels after that; - if he believes that dreams predict our future. 2. Once among the books in the bookcase (the collection belonged to your grandmother) you found the book «Your Dreams and What They Mean». You were puzzled and surprised. You ask your friend to share your emotions. Ask him: - if he has ever read anything of the same kind; - if he believes that a journey in a dream may signify anxiety; - how psychologists interpret dreams; - who was the first to analyze dreams; - what our dreams may reflect; - if different people can see the same dreams. 3. On the eve of the examination your close friend saw a dream in which he failed his exam. Now lie feels afraid and anxious. You ask him about the state and try to support Mm emotionally. Ask him: if he feels ill-prepared for the exam or he revised all the material completely; - why he believes that dreams foretell a person's future; 165 - if he thinks that our dreams reflect future or past events; - if he doubts the idea that dreaming is simply a psychological safeguard mechanism; - what dream he saw on the eve of the last exam; - what he experienced in dreaming. 4. Your friend has just attended a lecture on dreaming given by a famous psychologist. But you didn't manage to attend this lecture. That's why you ask your friend about it as you are deeply concerned with the problem of the unconscious. Ask him: - what sort of people dream most; - if it is possible to choose what to dream; - if people dream all night long; - what people can experience if deprived of dreams; - what books interpreting dreams are based on; — if our dreams may come true. XXVIII.Translate the text in writing: Freud and Dreams According to the Freudian theory, dreams don't reveal anything about the future. Instead they tell us something about our present unresolved and unconscious complexes and may lead us back to the early years of our lives, when, according to psycho-analytic theory, the ground was being prepared for these later defects. There are three main hypotheses in this general theory. The first hypothesis is that the dream is not a meaningless jumble of images and ideas, accidentally thrown together, but rather that the dream is a whole, and every element in it is meaningful. This idea is a very ancient one. For Freud it follows directly from the 166 deterministic standpoint: i.e., from the view that all mental and physical events have causes and could be predicted if these causes were fully known. This is a philosophical notion with which few scientists would wish to quarrel. Freud's argument of the meaningfulness of dreams is directly connected with his general theory that all our acts are meaningfully determined; a theory which embraces mispronunciations, gestures, lapses, emotions and so forth. The second point that Freud makes is that dreams are always in some sense a wish fulfillment; in other words, they have a purpose, and this purpose is the satisfaction of some desire or drive, usually of an unconscious character. This is linked up with his general theory of personality. Roughly speaking, Freud recognizes three main parts of personality: one, which he calls the id, is a kind of reservoir, as it were, provides the dynamic energy for most of our activities. Opposed to it we have the socalled super-ego, which is partly conscious and partly unconscious and which is the repository of social morality. Intervening between the two, and trying to resolve their opposition, is the ego; i.e., the conscious part of our personality. Thirdly, Freud believes that desires and wishes, having been repressed from consciousness because they are unacceptable to the socialized mind of the dreamer, are not allowed to emerge even into the dream without disguise. A censor or super-ego watches over them and ensures that they can only emerge into the dream in a disguise so heavy that they are unrecognizable. The link-up between Freud's theory of personality and his theory of dream interpretation is a very simple one: the forces of the id are constantly trying to gain control of the ego and to force themselves into consciousness. During the individual's waking life, the super-ego firmly represses them and keeps them unconscious; during sleep, however, the super-ego is less watchful, and consequently some of the desires start up in the id and are allowed to escape in 167 the form of dreams. However, the super-ego may nod, but it is not quite asleep, and consequently these wishfulfilling thoughts require to be heavily disguised. This disguise is stage-managed by what Freud calls the dreamwork. Accordingly, it is necessary to distinguish between the manifest dream, i.e. the dream as experienced and perhaps written down, and the latent dream, i.e. the thoughts, wishes, and desires expressed in the dream with their disguises removed. The task of the analyst and interpreter on this view is to explain the manifest dream in terms of the latent dream. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: Dreaming; average lifespan; to reflect; to recollect; deprived of dreams; to experience psychic changes; to fall asleep; slumber; superficial sleep; imagination; to foretell future; to penetrate the subconscious; a somnambulant nation; sleep deprivation; a macho attitude; nap; to promote alertness; circadian rhythms; sleeplessness. II. Give English equivalents for: Примирить чувства; представлять большую ценность; просыпаться; настроение; удивительное явление; универсальные символы; язык сна; согласно культуре и обычаям; захваченный эмоцией; символизировать; встретиться с испытанием в жизни; страна сновидений; предчувствие; вина. 168 III. Arrange the following words in the pairs o f synonyms: Desire vital Slumber enter Crucial facilitate Tribulation self-awareness Resolve wish Compile trial Penetrate predict Foretell responsibility Modify treat Promote sleep Obligation settle Adjust mean Self-confidence make up Heal change Signify adapt V. Complete the following sentences. Use the words o f the above exercises. A dream is a safeguard against ... . When deprived of dreams people experience ... . Dream interpreters try to ... . Sleep experts regard sleep as ... . Slumber scientists investigate ... . The messages of our dreams resolve around ... . Dream symbols signify .... V. Characterize t h e necessity o f dreaming. Use the following word-combinations: 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. To reflect desires; to motivate behaviour; a vital mechanism; psychological safeguard; to inspire a hope; to resolve a problem; sleep deprivation; to promote alertness; to experience psychic changes; a safety valve; to reconcile conflicting feelings; to have a healing effect. 169 VI. Describe: a) your most pleasant dream (use the following: amazing, fascinating, overwhelmed by emotions, puzzling, marvellous imagery); b) the most unpleasant dream (use the following: feel panic, anxiety, worry, horror, alarm, awful). -What did you feel while asleep and when awake? 170 COMMUNICATION UNIT VII Text I I. Read and translate the text. You Can't Import Psychoanalysis (by Aron Belkin, Chairman Psychoanalytical Society) of the Russian Recently the field of psychoanalysis has got a big boost in Russia. But Russia hasn't enough trained psychoanalysts, those who were trained under another psychoanalyst and who were recognized as professionals by the International Society of Psychoanalysts. There are only a few of them. But you cannot import psychoanalysis like any consumer goods. It is tied to ideology, psychology, and the society's cultural patterns. It's no accident that psychoanalysis has yet to emerge in Islamic countries. Psychoanalysis is unique in its versatility. Practically everyone who works with it finds some way of modifying it. Why did Freud's favourite disciples separate from him? Because they began to expand his discipline in all directions. Carl Jung took on the collective unconscious; Alfred Adler concentrated on the striving for power; Erich Fromm and Erik Erikson moved to sociology. Psychoanalysis stimulates the mind. It spurs diversity. When a person learns new things about himself, he becomes freer, stronger. Psychoanalysis can bring benefit to anybody and to the people around him. Psychoanalysis may be sometimes called a «therapy». In those cases where a person senses that something isn't quite right, but can't dig through to the heart of the matter on his own. Consider this. A patient is suffering from high blood pressure, is taking strong medicines, they work for a week or so, but then the pressure is there again. We tried 171 psychoanalytical therapy, and it turns out this person has been gifted verbally from childhood. He becomes intoxicated on his own words. He has perfect diction, a total command of rhetoric. He is talking all the time and can almost never stop to listen. It's practically impossible for him to empathize with other people. Studies have shown that continuous talking causes the body to release certain hormones which raise blood pressure. Such disbalancing of hormonal equilibrium can lead to diabetes, stomach ulcers, or in his case, high blood pressure. I had a devil of a time teaching him to listen to other people. But after treatment, as he himself said, «at least I'm back down to Earth.» Sometimes people come to me asking how they can break into politics. In talking with them I can say whether they are suited for that. That reminds me of the time I asked one of our statesmen why he entered politics. He said, «Well how else? The country is in such a sorry state — it needs help.» And he wasn't being hypocritical. But in the course of psychoanalysis it turned out that he had pimples in childhood. He was endlessly teased in class. At a subconscious level, he wanted to show his peers that he was stronger and better than they, that he was an outstanding person. He carried this complex for many years until finally he won election to the State Duma. Learning the true motives for one's actions makes a person wiser. II. Answer the following questions: 1. Does Russia have enough trained psychoanalysts? 2. What fields of knowledge is psychoanalysis tied to? 3. Where did psychoanalysis originate? 4. What scientists were greatly interested psychoanalysis? 5. Why is psychoanalysis so important? in 172 6. Why is it called a therapy? 7. What cases of psychoanalytical therapy are described in the article? 8. Would you like to be a psychoanalyst? Why? Why not? III. Give your own definition of psychoanalysis. IV. Speak about pros and cons of psychoanalysis. V. Express your own viewpoint of psychoanalysis (in writing). VI. Remember the following words and wordcombinations: To have a boost; a psychoanalyst; training requirements; to emerge; to expand a discipline; to stimulate the mind; to bring benefit; to be suited for; in the course of psychoanalysis; at a subconscious level; to feel disillusionment. Think of all possible situations where you can use these words Text 2 I. Read and translate the article: Inveterate Sufferers The political and economic crisis in Russia has reopened emotional wounds that had apparently begun to heal. This crisis affects human psychology. It is difficult to find a person in present-day Russia without psychological problems. Usually doctors consider a person sick if he quickly loses his capacity for productive activity, if he tries to shut himself off from the outside world, and if his unsociability grows rapidly. The same applies to social health: In a sick society, production potential shrinks and contradictions between society and the individual deepen. 173 The doctors should appraise «social» disorders correctly. For example, information received by society produces a certain psycho-therapeutic effect. In recent years, news reports have turned into an endless string of catastrophes. In either case, it is an extreme which produces a bad effect on the mind. When people are constantly being told about great success stories that do not exist in reality, they develop a deep skepticism, a split personality, and so forth. On the other hand, when they only see horrors in the papers and on television, they develop a feeling of despair and hopelessness. Of course, people should know the truth but neither should forget about man's psychological limits: Perennial anxiety does little to strengthen public health. In previous times, the adaptive style of behavior was encouraged. The «colorless» conformist was held in esteem. Now an altogether different makeup is called for: activity, independence, and vigor. The abrupt change in values adversely affected many people, a large number of patients suffering from fear and insecurity: Will I find a job? Will I hold down my present job? Why did everything fall apart so quickly? What will happen to my family? Quite often «new Russians» visit psychoanalysts. Their main complaints are: stress, fatigue, insomnia, and fears which they try to drown in alcohol and sex. They are especially worried by the illusory nature of their success. A new Russian understands that his sudden wealth did not result from his perseverance or talent. So this child of fortune tries to justify his rise, painstakingly imitating super-activity, saying that he works 20 hours a day. Such a person often leaves his family, shuns his old friends, and abandons his favourite pursuits in favor of those who are accepted among the elite. New Russians sometimes try to change their appearance, using cosmetic surgery, to lose weight, resorting to various dubious means, and to seek relief from all sorts of fortune tellers and psychics. All this requires tremendous efforts from a person. As a result, instead of attaining peace of mind, he becomes mentally exhausted. 174 At the onset of perestroika, people accumulated a great many problems related to pathological mental conditions. To deal with them, they rushed to doctors; however, at the time we did not manage to set up a normal market of psychoanalytical services. And so our niche was taken up by all sorts of sorcerers and healers. We know for a fact that there is as much money in alternative psychoanalysis as in the entire official medical service. Some 30 percent of these «specialists» have certain abilities; approximately the same proportion are ill-intentioned con artists, while the rest are mentally sick themselves. What is to be done? First of all, no bans should be imposed. There are some talented people who are able to produce a favorable impact on mental deviations, and try to give them an opportunity to display their abilities. Persecution and the resultant secrecy have only brought harm, and still do. Demand breeds supply. Paganism — with its corresponding mystical mentality - is deeply ingrained in our eastern Slav conciousness. Hence the fact that we do not rely on our own power but place eternal faith in the kind father-tsar while we are prone to attribute our own haphazard ways to intrigues by our enemies and dark forces. We have always been guided by our heart. Our people combine the habit of abiding failure with the inability to handle success. Meanwhile, useful practical skills do not appear all by themselves - they need to be formed. There is a special training course designed to form an adequate attitude to material values. (by Professor V.Makarov, head of the Russian PostGraduate Medical Academy) 175 II. Give Russian equivalents for: Inveterate sufferers; unsociability; contradictions; psycho-therapeutic effect; an endless string of catastrophes; a split personality; a feeling of despair and hopelessness; to suffer from fear and insecurity; to abandon one's favourite pursuits; to resort to dubious means; to seek relief; to attain peace of mind; mentally exhausted; pathological mental conditions; all sorts of sorcerers and healers; eternal faith; to be guided by one's heart. III. Choose the necessary word-combinations to characterize the reasons by which new Russians apply for psychoanalysis and other means of untraditional treatment. IV. Divide the article into logical parts and make up an outline. V. Speak on the article according to your outline. VI. Do you agree with the author's description of the present day mentality of the Russian people? VII. What is your personal attitude towards the socalled «New Russians»? Do they comprise the elite of the country? VIII. Do you consider sorcerers and healers talented people? Give your arguments. IX. Whom would you consult if it is necessary for your physical health? For your mental health? X. Read the article and treat its ideas: «Alternative Healers» on the Rise Thousands of magicians, sorcerers, ESP specialists and healers want to make you happy and healthy. Experts from the Health Ministry have noticed a new type of social problem in Russia — people who are rejecting reality. Why 176 are people relying on «alternative healers,» and what can traditional medicine offer? People with serious problems are afraid that traditional doctors will put them away in a psychiatric hospital. This fear is understandable and is explained by the dark periods in the history of psychiatry. Besides, the job of a psychotherapist or a psychoanalyst requires that the patient get involved in his treatment. Psychotherapists can transform a person's subconscious, but their aim is to teach the individual how to formulate his or her goals and tasks, and achieve them. A patient who does not want to make his effort seeks help from an ESP specialist, who claims to be able to solve the person's problems for him. The results can be deplorable. A person's psyche can become so damaged that he'll need a psychiatrist, and not a psychotherapist, to turn him around. Or even worse, you might not even be able to bring the person back. You must understand one thing - only experts have the right to work with people's minds. You wouldn't think about giving your car or television for repair to just anyone. But for some reason we do this ourselves. And we even pay money for it. People who wind up in difficult situations usually recall someone who they feel is responsible for the unlucky streak. ESP practitioners, fortune tellers and magicians respond to the expectations of a person's wayward subconscious and find the guilty party. It's all very simple. Why traumatize yourself by admitting your own mistakes? It is possible to rid a person of his problems in one or two sessions if the person has overreacted to a given situation, or is under stress. But it's impossible to correct the psyche of a person with perpetual problems in two sessions. Prolonged treatment is necessary. But in choosing ways of solving your spiritual problems, you should ask yourself a few questions: «What do I want? Why do I need this? Who am I turning to? Can this person offer me real help?» Find out what consequences can be. After all, you could wind up going in the wrong direction, without even noticing it. 177 Notes: Deplorable — прискорбный To rid - избавиться Text 3 I. Read the article and answer the following questions: 1. What problems do young people come with? 2. Why do people apply for a psychologist? 3. Why can't American psychotherapists work with the Russians? 4. Do Carnegie's principles always work? Famous Psychologist: Today. Everyone's an Orphan (by Vladimir Levi) I have treated about 250,000 patients in my lifetime. This means that, at least in part, I have come to understand the problems of many people. And I have come to realize that as diverse as they might be, they have made very simple mistakes in life and are troubled by the same problems - ten fingers would be more than enough to count them all. Regardless of what has changed over the past few years, my younger patients are following their grandparents' footsteps. They are not copying them deliberately, but it's as if they're unconsciously reproducing the same musical theme. Even young people of 14-16 years come to me with problems that are not determined by time, place, or today's conditions, but by human nature: life and death, health and sickness, age crises, human relationships — love, jealousy, rivalry, violence, deceit. Human inequality is also an eternal theme. The essence of relations between 178 children and parents has not changed for thousands of years. Many see the psychologist as someone who can predict the future, explain the meaning of life, or even create such a meaning. The causes of psychosis, neurosis, depression, fear, dependence, and addiction remain basically the same. Today people have a lot more leeway; they don't find themselves in the crosshairs of a repressive government. However, the overall sum of people's fears is still the same. Feelings of vulnerability have grown, as has the fear of being left without the means to survive. A person has more freedom now, supposedly. But it's not spiritual freedom; rather it's just lack of restraint. Before, even it was an illusion, a person knew where to seek out justice. Now everyone is a lone orphan and can only count on himself. The result is mass disillusionment. Not only the danger of spiritual devastation has become evident, but the psychological and physical destruction of the youth drugs. Every day mums and dads call me: «Something is going on with my daughter - with my son.» Soon it becomes clear: drugs. Some people can be helped. It's like with smoking: about 20 percent quit on their own before becoming addicted. The rest can quit the poison only if they have the desire and get qualified help. Alas, this is rarely possible. The spiritual vacuum results in greater numbers of the psychologically disturbed. Back in the seventies the great geneticist Vladimir Efroimson sounded the alarm: «The gene of oligophrenia is attacking.» And today not only one gene, but a whole number of harmful genetic factors arc working towards the debilitation of the population. In America I worked with our immigrants and some Americans. An amazing revelation: American psychotherapists can't work with our people, but we can work with theirs. Our psychologists and doctors, having studied their language and culture, can switch over to their system, but they can't switch over to ours. It is no coincidence that the demand has fallen for the enormous number of translated publications on applied psychology. 179 Speaking about Dale Carnegie, I should say that he grasped some commonplace psychological factors. But when a person is in a conflict, Carnegie's principles don't work. The main problems are the same here as they are there. But the approaches to them, as well as the social and psychological patterns, are different. I am for the kind of psychology that can provide for healthy morals — as electricity gave the world light. But so far we are living with bonfires and candles. II. Agree or disagree with the following: 1. People have always been troubled by the same problems. 2. Psychological consciousness is difficult to change. 3. Human problems are determined by time and social conditions. 4. The essence of relations between cliildren and parents has greatly changed. 5. A good psychologist can predict the future and explain the meaning of life. 6. Feelings of vulnerability have grown along with fear. 7. A person has more spiritual freedom now. 8. Drugs lead to psychological and physical destruction. 9. A personal wish is quite enough to get rid of drug addiction. 10.American psychotherapists can't work with the Russian clients. 180 III. Explain the following statements: 1. Young people are following their grandparents' footsteps. 2. Today people have a lot more leeway. 3. Now everyone is a lone orphan. 4. Drug abuse is a complete devastation. 5. Carnegie's principles don't work when a person is in a conflict. IV. Review the article. V. Speak on: 1. Youth psychological problems. 2. A psychologist's work. 3. Conditions providing healthy morals. Text 4 I. Read and translate the text. Fear of Living (by Anna Kovalenko) Escapism, the desire to avoid contact with other people, down to subjecting oneself to complete isolation, is not rare. Doctors have known about it for a long time, but it was only in the past few years that it was identified as a disease called sociophobia, and serious studies of this phenomenon were carried out. When lecturing, the great scientist Kliment Timiryazev always made a point of having lecture synopses with him, even though he never looked at them. Under no circumstances would he start a lecture without the notes. On one occasion, he left them at home and when he realized it, he kept the audience waiting until the driver he had sent for the papers delivered them. 181 What was this, mere eccentricity, or a disease? Today, doctors find such behavioural patterns worth studying, since quite often they turn out to be symptoms of a disease. Great Britain's Prof. Stewart A.Montgomery said at a recent international conference in Moscow, where he represented the World Psychiatric Association, that sociophobia had been overlooked by doctors, including Russian ones, for too long. Social fear is not easy to detect, mainly because it is not a fear of something tangible like loneliness, or losing one's job. Its symptoms resemble mere shyness. Prof. Montgomery believes that people tend to develop the first symptoms of sociophobia early on in life, when they are still in school, and this impairs their academic performance. These children always choose a desk in the back row, not because they want to play pranks, but because they want to attract as little attention as possible. The progression of this pathological condition is also difficult to detect in shy older adolescents who don't drink or take drugs. And the longer it is left untreated, the worse the condition gets. As children, they tend to develop complexes, and when older, sociophobics will usually choose a profession that doesn't involve public contact, and will voluntarily deprive themselves of careers. They feel uncomfortable and awkward around people. Anatoly Smulevich, head of the department of borderline conditions at the Centre for Mental Health, uses a graphic description to characterize the disease - «tears that are invisible to the world.» These quiet introverts rarely go to see doctors, and rarely do doctors pay much attention to them either. Meanwhile, the condition continues to worsen. Fearing criticism, negative comments, derogatory words and mean looks from other people, sociophobics begin to panic. They begin by fussing with their clothes and their hair, and looking around all the time. This gives way to a constant fear of disaster, for instance when talking to one's boss, 182 reading a lecture and even when meeting with friends. This is typical behaviour for sociophobics. A teacher at a Moscow institute always felt terrified before an audience. This neurosis would cause him to jump on a train after the lecture and travel to any other city (for some reason it was usually Vologda), just to unwind. The following day he would return to Moscow in a relatively normal state. Prof. Montgomery maintains that five to six percent of the population suffers from sociophobia. This constant fear of social contact is often accompanied by many other symptoms like heart palpitations, tense muscles, dryness of the mouth, headaches and other unpleasant feelings. The symptoms are deeply rooted and the essence of a social introvert. Such people have trouble asserting their opinions and standing up for their rights, which is why they are often looked upon as undesirable workers. Their pathological shyness prevents them from evaluating their abilities positively, and causes them to be constantly selfabsorbed in their own thoughts and to agonize over the most trivial matters. Considering that 95 percent of such diseases tend to develop before the age of 20, treatment should be started as early as possible. Prof. Montgomery believes that if therapy is not started on time, five to seven years later sociophobics begin resorting to alcohol and drugs to cope with their problems. This gives rise to a special stratum of people who have a unique relationship with society. They are lonely and are usually poorly educated, they experience money problems and bounce from job to job. At times they contemplate suicide. But even if the condition is left untreated for a long time, therapy often helps a person restore contact with society. And although remedial treatment for sociophobics may be expensive, treating alcoholics costs the state even more, as does financing the unemployed. Igor Sergeyev, head of the department of Psychiatry at the Russian State Medical University, believes that diagnosis and treatment 183 of such diseases should be provided free of charge at special polyclinics. Although scientists have already developed medication for this disease, it's still too early to talk about any results. In Great Britain, for instance, only 25 percent of all sociophobics are receiving help, and in Canada, only 15 percent are undergoing treatment. Russia's Health Minister Tatyana Dmitriyeva calls sociophobia one of the most widespread psychological disorders. According to various data, in Russia, up to 16 percent of citizens suffer from tliis disease, and two-thirds of these people also suffer from other psychological disorders. A special office has been opened at the Moscow City Psycho-Neurological Centre where sociophobics can now go for help. II. Answer the following questions: 1. Why is the article headlined as fear of living? 2. What is meant by escapism? 3. Is it a disease or a phenomenon? 4. What are the major symptoms of sociophobia? 5. Is social fear easily detected? 6. What kind of profession do sociophobics prefer to choose? 7. How do they feel around people? 8. Are sociophobics introverted or extroverted? 9. Do they easily begin to panic? Under what circumstances? 10. How does their pathological shyness interfere with social contacts? 11. How is it possible to treat this condition? 12. Where can sociophobics apply for help? 184 III. Complete the following sentences: 1. The desire to avoid contact with other people is called … • 2. Sociophobia symptoms resemble .... 3. A.Smulevich characterized this disease as ... . 4. Sociophobics as children tend to develop ... . 5. Their fear impairs academic ... . 6. Constant fear of social contact is accompanied by such physiological symptoms as ... . 7. Very often sociophobics resort to ... to cope with the problems. 8. They are lonely and experience ... . 9. Therapy often helps a person restore .... 10. Diagnosis and treatment of such diseases should be provided free .... IV.Give statistical data enumerated in the article. V. Describe sociophobia. episodes illustrating typical cases of VI. Suggest possible situations in which sociophobics experience either shyness or fear. VII. Characterize escapism as: a) a psychological disorder; b) a social phenomenon. VIII. Review the article. IX. Think of all possible situations in which you have ever experienced panic, fear or uncertainty and shyness. X. If you had a chance to interview a sociophobic, what questions would you ask him? (about his academic performance, a choice of profession, social contacts, friends, close relationships and so on) 185 WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: To modify psychoanalysis; the unconscious; at a subconscious level; orphan; personal impressions; human inequality; addiction; vulnerability; means to survive; spiritual freedom; lack of restraint; devastation; physical destruction; revelation; healthy morals. II. Give English equivalents for: Страх жить; избегать контактов; одиночество; застенчивость; состояние; сущность интроверта; типичное поведение; паниковать; отстаивать свои права; оценивать свои способности; прибегать к алкоголю или наркотикам; размышлять о самоубийстве; проходить лечение; широко распространённое психологическое расстройство. III. Use the above word-combinations in describing: a) psychoanalysis; b) sociophobic behaviour; c) consequences of sociophobia. Texts I. Read and translate the text: Put Pleasure In your Life (by Laura Miller) How frequently do you allow yourself totally carefee moments? Little time-outs and simple pleasures? We race around frantically, making quick cameo appearances at supermarkets, day-care centres and the dry cleaners. We fantasize about curling up in bed with a 186 good novel and a cup of tea on a cold Saturday afternoon but, invariably, feel compelled to wax the car or run a couple of kilometres. Although we believe we're better off for having made those sacrifices - healthier, more productive, better disciplined — that's not necessarily the case. In fact, the very opposite may be true. Truly healthy people, it seems, indulge in the occasional decadent dessert without guilt. They shamelessly grab an afternoon nap, spend 15 minutes idly patting the cat, toss an old blanket on the lawn, lie back and watch the clouds race across the sky. Dr David Sobel, a specialist in preventive medicine, and Robert Ornstein, a psychologist and brain researcher, espouse a theory that a little of what you fancy does you good. «Studies seem to indicate that overall happiness is not dictated so much by the peaks and valleys of your life as by the total amount of time you spend in a positive mood», Dr Sobel says. «And that to us means the small pleasures.» The researchers got the idea when they began noticing that the healthiest people they knew were not those who spent a lot of time managing their health. «We began to realize», Robert says, «that we didn't know anybody we thought was healthy who had an extremely healthy diet and monitored their exercise. Instead, they were people who were actively engaged in their lives.» They live with optimism and gusto, Robert says. They are passionate about hobbies, travel and family life. How pleasure works Scientists are still exploring exactly what makes our bodies acknowledge and feel pleasures. It's all in the brain, it seems. Human beings have pleasure centres, located in the brain in an area known as the limbic system, which can be stimulated naturally through pleasing sights, sounds, smells, tastes and thoughts. Precisely how those centres are tapped in what scientists are trying to discover. 187 Some researchers think pleasure releases endorphins, opiate-like substances in the brain that make us feel better. Says Dr Sobel: «We don't really know. Our understanding of this mechanism is very crude. It's in its infancy.» Back to nature What we do know is that living in the modem world often means being cut off from the natural one - and that's not good. «Our biology and psychology evolved over five million years and during the majority of that evolution we were very closely linked to the natural environment», Dr Sobel says. «Just because we have modernised our environment doesn't mean we can dismiss our age-old tie to nature» It's the natural things - the warm sun, lush fields -that can make life seem better. We brighten considerably with a sunny day, even if it's experienced on a lunch break in the middle of a crowded city. A whiff of happiness. The two scientists believe smell is perhaps the most under-appreciated of the senses. Scientist Jonathan Pevsner is trying to determine how the smell of, say, a rose travels from the nose to the pleasure centres of the brain. «When you smell something it often triggers a memory or an emotion because the sense of smell is most directly connected to the limbic system, where pleasure and emotion and memory are centred, whereas the other senses have a more direct route to get the same place», Dr Pevsner says. Have a chocolate. There's nothing quite like a sinful indulgence. But, then, who's to say it's sinful? Chocolate, for example, has some beneficial qualities: it protects tooth enamel and one of its ingredients, cocoa butter, lowers cholesterol levels. Alcohol has its benefits, too. People who have one or two drinks a day are less prone to heart attack or blocked arteries. The expectations game. Consider the woman who has everything — a big house with a pool, money, a good job 188 and a supportive husband — yet acts as though a storm cloud is perched over her head. According to David Sobel and Robert Ornstein, it's all in the expectations. When we depend on the big, splashy highs - money, falling in love - to make us feel good, it's easy to forget about the little things that truly make us happy. II. Answer arguments. the following questions. Give your 1. Is overall happiness possible? 2. Do you support the idea that healthy people are those actively engaged in their lives? 3. How closely are we linked to the natural environment? 4. What do you do to preserve an emotional balance? 5. How much do you depend on simple pleasures? III. Find in the text information on how pleasure works and give its idea in simple terms. IV. Give as many facts as possible concerning: a) Dr David Sobel and his research; b) Robert Ornstein and his investigation. V. Enumerate what things may bring pleasure and happiness for human beings. And what about you in particular? VI. Remember the following words and wordcombinations: To allow carefree moments; to indulge in occasional pleasures; to espouse a theory; to be actively engaged in; to be closely linked to the natural environment; to make time for a special treat. VII.Review the article. Use the above phrases. 189 Text 6 I. Read the text and say what problem it deals with: What to Do If your relationship isn't working, but you love him too much to live, here is Dr Dan Kiley's guide to change things for the better. Although it's often overused, the recommendation, «You need to improve your communication» is still the most important one for a troubled relationship. Most men recognize the need for improved communication while considering it to be in woman's responsibility. They believe that if they are good providers, relationships will take care of themselves. It does little good to lecture these men about the conjoint nature of improved communication. They have to be shown. Basic communication script I'm not a big fan of giving anyone the exact words to use during a confrontation. But you might face a situation in which you need a few words to get you started in the right direction. Here is the basic script: «When you say... I think (feel)... I wish you would...». When responding to your partner's opinion, say: «When you say that, I think (feel)... I do (don't) agree with you, because...». The basic communication script is limited, but when you are attempting to overcome poor communication habits, you need an elementary method that ensures both of you are operating within the same system. Once you understand the basics, it will feel natural to say: «I feel bad because we're not talking as we used to. Can't we work on that?» 190 Five ways to communicate Appointment: If you and your partner arc barely able to wave as you scurry past each other, I suggest you make an appointment to talk to each other. The appointment should be given the same degree of significance as a regular work appointment. Agree on a time, place and topics. Be prepared to move the conversation away from specific problems and into a discussion of your estrangement. But always keep the conversation as objective as possible. Avoid places where you can meet friends. And permit no interruptions. If it's uncomfortable at first, use notes to guide your discussion. Bibliotherapy: This procedure is designed for couples who are in mild stress. For each partner, it entails reading a section of a mutually enjoyable book and then discussing the contents and individual reactions. You can each read the same biography and then compare reactions, or read a relationship-enrichment book and talk about what parts of it apply to you. Reading aloud: This technique is similar to bibliotherapy except that you read aloud to each other. In most cases you will have to begin the reading aloud with the hope your partner will eventually follow suit. If he doesn't, that's okay. You can still accomplish one goal: he will hear you speak with a kind, upbeat voice, a voice free from problems or complaints. You can start by reading an interesting section from a magazine or a newspaper. If that's successful, you might read a few pages from a book each night. Active listening: This technique helps you demonstrate what you would like your partner to do when you are talking. The next time he begins to speak, drop what you are doing and listen. Do not speak any of your own thoughts or interpret what you hear. Ask for repetition by saying, «Please say that another way», or, «Say it again; I think I missed something». Obviously, active listening won't last long if he says: «Please pass the sugar.» It works best if he's explaining a 191 problem he had at work or stating his opinion about a recent event. After several minutes, feed back what you've heard by summarizing his points. Then ask him if your summary is accurate. To encourage him to listen to you, don't be afraid to say: « I just want you to listen to me for a few moments. Could you please put the newspaper down?» Your active listening will increase the chances that he will ask you about yourself, and you will get to express your opinions without fear of contradiction or, worst of all, being ignored. Many couples have found that active listening can spark spontaneity and increase the satisfaction of a conversation. The more you can control extraneous interruptions, the greater the success of active listening. If active listening is successful, you will begin to feel a deep sense of tranquility during the middle and later stages of the process. This peace comes from two sources: your brain, which enjoys having the auditory channels stimulated without the static created by arguing or needing to think and respond with new information; and your mind, which relaxes when you immerse yourself in another's agenda. Active listening gives your ego defences a welcome rest. Passive questioning: Begin this technique by saying: «I’d like to ask you some questions. Is that okay?» Even his yes is a connection, however small. Ask him about the particulars of whatever he's talking about. If you can't be sincere in this questioning, don't do it. Avoid sarcasm or questions that mask a confrontation («Don't you think you were wrong?»). Also, avoid any question that stimulates disagreement or argument, and do not push the conversation in a particular direction. Passive questioning should be used only after both partners have contained any anger that might be present. You need a clear head in order to weigh evidence, sort through alternatives and project probabilities. 192 Other approaches to passive questioning include looking at the bright side («I know it sounds strange, but is there a good side to your problem?»); looking at the reason for defences («Are you hurt about something?»); and trying to help («What can I do for you?»). II. Answer the following questions: 1. Does the article deal with marital relationships or social communication? 2. Who is more responsible for good communication within the family: men or women? 3. What does basic communication script provide? 4. How many ways for communicating are suggested? 5. What for is appointment necessary? 6. How does bibliotherapy operate? 7. What goal may be achieved by reading aloud? 8. What does the technique of active listening help demonstrate? 9. What do you feel if active listening is successful? 10.How is it better to begin asking questions? III. Complete the following sentences: 1. Most men recognize the need for improved communication to be ... . 2. The first communication technique is to make ... . 3. You should keep the conversation as ... . 4. Bibliotherapy is designed for couples who ... . 5. Reading aloud is similar to bibliotherapy except that … . 6. Many couples found that active listening can spark ... 7. If it is successful you feel ... . 8. Active listening gives you ... . 9. In questioning you should avoid ... . 193 IV. Agree or disagree with the following: 1. If your relationship is troubled, it is the male responsibility to improve it. 2. It's quite possible to overcome poor communication habits. 3. The appointment should be given a certain degree of significance. 4. You always use notes to guide your discussion. 5. Bibliotherapy gives little chance for communication. 6. In reading aloud no problems or complaints arise. 7. Active listening gives your ego defences a welcome rest. 8. Active listening is a useless technique as it disrupts feedback. 9. You should avoid questions that stimulate disagreement or argument. V. Reproduce sentences from the text where the following expressions are used: to improve communication to face a situation to overcome poor communication habits to make an appointment to accomplish a goal to encourage to listen to express opinions to stimulate argument to weigh evidence VI. Divide the article into logical parts and make up an outline in writing. VII. Review the article. 194 VIII. Develop the following situations: 1. If your relationship is not stable, what techniques would you use to improve it? 2. You are going to face a situation directly, what would you start with? 3. What techniques would you offer to overcome poor communication habits? 4. You are a family therapist. What recommendations would you give your client to encourage his partner to listen to the problems of concern? IX. Are you Afraid to Talk? This is a quiz that will indicate your degree of apprehension in speaking to your partner. Rate each statement on a five-point scale: 1- strongly disagree; 2 - disagree; 3 - not sure; 4 - agree; 5 -strongly agree. • My thoughts become confused and jumbled when I am discussing issues that are important to my partner. • I usually try to work out problems myself instead of talking them over with my partner. • Even in casual conversations with my partner, I feel that I must guard what I say. • I am hesitant to get into casual conversation with my partner. • I am uncomfortable getting into an intimate conversation with my partner. If your total score is less than nine, your apprehension in speaking to your partner is low. If it is more than 17, your apprehension is high. Whatever your score, if you think your apprehension is too high, follow the suggestions in the article «What to Do». They will help you as well as your partner. Remember, a happy relationship is the result of hard work, not luck. 195 Text 7 I. Read and translate the text: Loneliness May Create Serious Health Risks Millions of Americans suffer from depression, anxiety and fatigue that are linked to loneliness, says a leading authority who tells how to cope with feelings of being alone. Q-: Mr. Young, how widespread is the problem of loneliness? A.: In one nationwide study, 22 percent of Americans said they felt «lonely and remote from other people.» In another poll, taken by Psychology Today, loneliness was the most frequent problem mentioned. Thirty-eight percent of female and 43 percent of male readers said they often felt lonely. Q.: What is the difference between normal feelings of loneliness and a real loneliness problem? A.: There are two ways to distinguish between normal and problem loneliness. One is by severity. Do your feelings of loneliness interfere with your ability to get enjoyment out of life? The other factor is length of time. Loneliness becomes a chronic problem if it lasts two or more years. Some people have a lifetime pattern of feeling lonely. Q.: Is loneliness increasing in the United States? A.: People who live alone tend to say that they are lonely more frequently than people living with others. Since surveys repeatedly show that an increasing number of Americans live alone, we can infer that the frequency of loneliness is increasing. Q.: Who is at greatest risk for loneliness? 196 A.: Studies of different population groups show that teenagers and young adults have the highest degree of loneliness. One study found that over half of the people in this age group are lonely. One reason is because they are in a process of transition - separating from the parents. They're no longer feeling as close to their parents as they did when they were children, and they may not yet have developed very close, satisfying friendships with their peers. Some adolescents just have trouble making friends. Q.: What are the major consequences of loneliness? A.: We know that severe loneliness can lead to a variety of problems. One recent study showed that among divorced men, the death rate due to heart disease was twice the rate for married men. This suggests that living alone and feeling lonely may actually create serious heart risks. There are also psychological consequences. People who are chronically lonely are often less productive in their work lives. They feel that life is less satisfying and are prone to psychiatric disorders such as depression and anxiety. The majority of depressed patients I studied also reported feeling lonely. Q.: When is a person so lonely that treatment is needed? A.: Having feelings of severe loneliness for more than two years indicates that you're not just having a temporary adjustment to a new situation. There may be a serious psychological problem. Severe loneliness is often accompanied by depression. The symptoms of depression frequently include a persistent sad mood, low appetite, fatigue, low sex drive, withdrawal from people and sleep difficulties. Q.: What is the best therapy for loneliness? A.: This is a new area of research. In a therapy I've developed, the approach is to help people look at what they're doing that keeps them from feeling close to other people. One persistent problem for people who suffer loneliness is low self-esteem. The person is afraid to approach new people because he or she anticipates rejection before it's even happened. In other instances, lonely people may find someone, but then they keep a 197 distance by not revealing much about themselves out of fear that once the other person knows them well, they'll be rejected. Q.: How successful is therapy? How long does it take? A.: This treatment for loneliness is an adaptation of a technique called cognitive-behaviour therapy that we know is successful against many forms of depression. Length of treatment depends on the severity of the problem. For those trying to adjust to a new situation -someone who's recently divorced, for example — therapy may consist of once-a-week sessions over four to six months. For people who have experienced loneliness since childhood, treatment can take a year or more. Q.: How can a person prevent loneliness? A.: The first thing is to learn how to be alone without feeling something is wrong. Many people avoid being alone at any cost. They're afraid they won't be able to handle it or that there's stigma in not being with someone. You can train yourself to enjoy being alone. It's healthy to do things on your own, part of the time. Most important, you have to develop a circle of friends. Participate in activities — sports, cultural events, social gatherings — because that's how you meet people. Don't wait for other people to make the first move. Be aggressive in seeking out friendships and keeping them. For some people, pets and television may ease some of the loneliness, but they can also keep a person turned inward and interfere with developing new friendships. II. Agree or disagree with the following statements: 1. Being alone at times is absolutely necessary to everybody. 2. We are sometimes afraid of having time to think. 3. We get tired of meeting too many people. 4. Communicating with people is an art to be learned. 5. Reading is quite necessary for you. 6. You seldom visit your friends being fond of solitude. 198 7. Watching television influences human psychology. 8. In solitude new ideas come to us. 9. Reading is more useful than watching television. 10. Loneliness may result in depression and anxiety. 11. Being the only child in the family gives you more moments of solitude. III. Make up a dialogue to develop the situation: You are the only child in the family but you do not regret about it as you enjoy certain benefits. Ask you friend how he spends his spare time and moments of solitude. IV. Develop the following situations: 1. You are a psychologist. A client comes to you for advice as he sometimes experiences loneliness. You ask him some questions in order to find out whether he is a sociable person. Ask your client: —if he is fond of being with others; —if he prefers to travel alone; —what his reaction is when he is invited to the party; —if he has got a lot of friends; —if his friends can be substituted by music or films; —if he would mind visiting a psychological training group. 2. You are writing a scientific work on solitude. You have a chance to consult a professor of psychology. Ask him: —why solitude is necessary for a developing mind; —why solitude is the force of creation; —whom solitude is especially necessary for; — how it is possible to use solitude at utmost; - if self-analysis always brings knowledge of oneself. 199 V. Translate the text in writing: Loneliness We humans are paradoxical creatures. We say we want life to be a certain way, but aren't willing to do what we must to make it so. We long for connection and intimacy but demand degrees of independence and privacy. On the one hand, we are communal creatures. We live in a web of interdependence with one another. Few of us are truly self-sufficient. We need partners and housemates. We need family and friends. We live in communities and share workloads. Most of us even dream of a soul-mate of some sort to whom we can unburden ourselves in times of stress, and with whom we can share ordinariness in times of calm. We are by nature storytellers who must recount our days and our lives in order to make sense of them. For this we need listeners, but listeners who are genuinely interested in us as people. On the other hand, we are also solitary figures, physically independent of one another and ultimately and finally alone with our thoughts. There is so much that goes on inside each one of us, so much that we could never communicate to another even if we wanted to do so. We are not alone in wanting to preserve a little of mystery, to keep a few secrets to ourselves. We all have parts of ourselves we would prefer to keep private. At some level we are unknowable to others, solitary figures. The sum of our essential selves will never be shared or communicated, only parts of the whole. The most intimate dimensions of our beings need solitude and the safety of privacy. The most social dimensions of our beings need sharing and contact and even love. It is a difficult balancing act. Loneliness is the result of balancing too far into privacy and independence. Loss of self and identity results from overbalancing into connection. Both possibilities can be frightening. There are 200 some who see the ache of loneliness simply as the price of emotional safety. It is easy to look at loneliness as something inflicted upon us by a cruel and unfeeling world. If we are alone and lonely, it is easy to fall into the self-pitying feeling that we have been mistreated by the universe, that it is our fate to never meet someone with whom we can bond. But that empty and frustrating feeling may be the fault of our need for solitude and protection working overtime. Loneliness is at least partly a function of past hurts and slights. Every person experiences pain or betrayal. Whether it was an abusive parent, a lover who hurt us badly or a friend who betrayed us, we have all experienced these battering rejections and destruction of trust. No one likes being hurt. So we learn wariness and caution. We become a little more careful about our friendships each time we get zinged. Even those of us who seem to form one bad relationship after another build a gradually hardening shell until one day this intimacy stuff loses its attraction. For a while we are fine on our own, maybe even feel free, until the demons find us. But when loneliness becomes a constant companion, it is calling us to look deeper inside, calling us to work on tearing down the walls that isolate us, whether self-built or outwardly imposed. In order to be loved, we must find ways to love. In order to find engagement, we must find ways to engage. The first step is to go inside our walls, inside ourselves and tend to our soul work. If we do this the soul warms and grows until it expands through and beyond our suffocating walls of loneliness. Then we can start building the bridge towards others. 201 Text 8 I. Read and translate the text: Confident Conversation (by Dr Lillian Glass) A great conversationalist is someone who connects with people and makes them feel important. Usually starting a conversation means coming with an opening line or 'ice-breaker’. The best kind of icebreaker is one that is positive — after all, the last thing people want to hear from a stranger is how noisy the party is, how awful the food is, or how badly the party-goers are dressed. A compliment is always a great icebreaker. It will usually be appreciated if you feel like saying to someone: «You look great in that dress.» People appreciate it when their taste is noticed. Any news event is a good icebreaker. The weather is another great opener. Many a relationship has begun with: «Wonderful weather we're having.» This is an obvious overture to a conversation, and how the other person picks up on it is a good indication of whether they are interested in having a conversation with you or whether it would be in your best interest to find someone more receptive to talk to. If you think the above two suggestions are tired old cliches, remember that a conversation always has to start somewhere. If you pitch in with something that isn't a nice, general, easy subject, your partner may feel intimidated. Other turns-off include being too nosy or too invasive. Nobody wants to be pressed for the gory details, no matter how interesting it may seem to the other person. Talk about something you've just read in a magazine, an interesting fact you've heard, something about your pet, or even a joke you've heard. 202 Once you've got a conversation going, the best way to keep it going is by asking the other person questions that don't require just a 'yes' or 'no' answer, or questions that show genuine interest on your part as you hear what they have to say. Ask questions without becoming too intrusive. Choose the kind that will draw a person out — who, what, when, where and why questions. Once you hit on something you find interesting, keep asking questions in order to get the other person to elaborate on the topic as much as possible. Good conversationalists elaborate on the experiences they have had. Description is the best form of communication, because it keeps people's interest up and stimulates them. Use words to create images and paint pictures. Being a good observer and reactor means being attentive and sensitive to the other person's cues, in both their facial and body language. Look for eye contact cues. If the other person is constantly looking away, he may be interested in something or someone else, in which case you can say: «You seem preoccupied.» Take his cue and wind up the conversation and leave. Paying attention to a person's visual cues can tell as much as or even more than what they say verbally. If you want to make a good impression on people and maintain a good relationship, you need to give others respect and enable them to feel important when they are around you. Being a good communicator requires having a good memory and remembering things about the other person. If your memory is particularly bad you could always make notes. This works well with business associates and clients. Keep the notes in the file and look through them before calling up the person and when you know you're going to see him. Often, if you have an approachable manner, people will respond to you and be attracted to you like a magnet. Approachability involves your body posture, gestures and 203 facial expression. If your posture is too stiff, you will communicate uptightness, while too loose a posture can communicate sloppiness and carelessness. A hunchedover back communicates a lack of confidence and selfrespect. By simply straightening your shoulders and holding your head up, you can improve people's impressions on you. All too often when someone is concentrating intensely or thinking about something, their face will show an expression that doesn't reflect who they are or what they are thinking about. So if you are in the presence of others you need to be mindful of your facial expression at all times. II. Answer the following questions: 1. Who is considered to be a good conversationalist? 2. What does an icebreaker mean? 3. What is the best kind of icebreaker? 4. What do people appreciate much? 5. What other remarks are good icebreakers? 6. What topics should be avoided in a conversation? 7. What should you talk about? 8. What kind of questions are you recommended to ask? 9. Why is description the best form of communication? 10. What does being a good communicator require? 11. What does approachability involve? III. Explain what you should do: a) to maintain solid relationships; b) to exercise your memory; c) to control your behaviour while conversing. IV. Review this part of the article. 204 V. Read the second part and render its contents in Russian: Ending a Conversation If you've started a conversation with another person and you're having difficulty in ending it, there are subtle signals you can send to the other person that will end the conversation without hurting the other person's feelings. Breaking eye contact is a good way of signalling to the other person that you are ready to end the conversation. Assuming that you have maintained good eye contact throughout the conversation, looking off in another direction is a discreet signal that the conversation is about to end. Another way to signal that a conversation is coming to an end is to use transition words like «Well» or «At any rate», or even statements like «It was really nice talking to you». You may then want to recap all that was said. To recap, look at the other person and state key points that have been made - theirs and yours - and express your appreciation for their point of view. Then you can add: «I've already enjoyed talking to you. I hope we'll have another chat soon.» Whatever you do, don't lie to the other person. If you are not interested in talking to them again, don't mention the possibility of a future meeting just to be polite. That is hypocritical. Instead, you may finish by saying, «Nice meeting you», and then leave. Finally, be sure to give the other person a good, firm handshake. The final impression you make can be just as important as the initial impression you made. VI. What about your personal performance in a conversation? Does it coincide with the author's 205 suggestion? Do you think his advice is of positive character? VII. Read the following tips for maintaining a good conversation and take them into account: • Be aware of your own body and facial language, which means making good facial contact when you speak and not invading the other person's space. • Don't gossip. When you start gossiping, you run the risk of offending the person you are talking to because of their possible relationship to the person being discussed. • Cultivate a wide range of topics. Keep up with current events by reading newspapers and magazines. When you are talking to someone you do not know very well, it is probably best to stay away from politics and religion or anything that is controversial. • Have a sense of humour. Everyone enjoys a humorous story or joke, but take care. Even though sexist and racist humour often gets a laugh or a chuckle, it's not worth the effect that the jokes may have. People may be offended and may think less of you. • Don't interrupt. • Be enthusiastic. Your enthusiasm allows the other person to feel that you are interested in what they are saying. • Be flexible in your point of view. You can certainly express your own views, but in a way that is not hostile. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: Conversationalist; social gathering; to break the ice; to feel intimidated; to show genuine interest; to elaborate on the topic; to be attentive and sensitive; eye contact cues; to seem preoccupied; to make a good impression on; to maintain a relationship; communicator; approach-ability; lack of confidence and self-respect; subtle signals; to cultivate a range of topics; sense of humour; to be offended. 206 II. Give all suitable word-combinations associated with «a good conversation». III. Try to explain in the English language what the following words and word-combinations mean: Communicator; icebreaker; gory details; facial and body language; to brand images; approachability; to hurt someone's feelings; to be enthusiastic. IV. Describe the basic guidelines of a conversation with: a) a stranger at a social gathering; b) a boss at work; c) a person you would like to produce a good impression on; d) a business associate. V. Develop the following situation: You have just come from the party where you had to communicate with a very intrusive man. You feel disappointed and frustrated as you pinned great hopes on this gathering in the way of developing business contacts. You express your complaints and displeasure to your parents. Text 9 I. Read and translate the text: Is Good Conversation a Declining Art? Many people unwittingly bore, irritate or mislead others. Why — and what can be done to have more memorable conversations is explained in this interview by a leading authority on talk. Q.: Professor Goodman, is the art of conversation waning in America? 207 A.: I would agree that there never was a golden age of conversation in the U.S. Even in the days before radio and television, good conversation probably was not all that common. Despite the visions we have of colonial times when people supposedly sat around parlors exchanging ideas, my guess is that most people then were just too busy surviving to have much time for free-flowing talk. Social rules in past times also restricted what men and women said to each other, and children really were seen not heard. When parents did talk to children, it was usually a matter of the adult commanding, advising or admonishing. That's not conversation. At any rate, we don't know for sure what conversation was like back then because there was no voice recording. In many ways, conversation should be of higher quality today because the range of experience is broader and because we can hear others converse on television, radio and in the movies. Q.: How does conversation today differ from what might have taken place years ago in the United States? A.: Take young people. If a young couple beginning their courtship at the turn of the century could by magic listen in on the conversation of a similar couple today, they would be horrified. They would be stunned at the openness toward talking about such private matters as sex, religion and money. Women are no longer feel compelled to wait for a long pause before they express their ideas, although they still tend to be less dominant in conversation than men. Children are also far more outspoken. In contrast, people in decades past were more restricted in what they talked about. Their world was smaller, and they tended to stick to subjects that were more familiar to them. This was before the age of specialization, and people were on more equal footing when they talked to each other. Q.: In your opinion, just what makes for a good conversation? A.: A true conversation is like a sports event: its outcome is usually in doubt, not in terms of winning or 208 losing, but in the sense that we don't know where it is headed. Q.: Is the fact that parents and children are not on equal footing in conversation a reason for a generation gap? A.: It's part of it. A lot of parents say to their teenagers, «Let's have a conversation.» But the kids aren't interested because they know their parents often want only to interrogate or advise. They know that they don't have equal power. Yet those same kids will talk on the phone for hours with their peers. Q.: Besides closed questions, what are some of the other talk tools that are overused? A.: A common one is giving quick advice when hearing another's complaint or problem. You don't have the time to really address those problems, so you rely on some quick motto: «Well, it'll all work out in the end» or «Keep your chin up.» Americans can't seem to have long conversations about personal matters without wanting to come to some instant solution — much like the radio psychologists or the advice columnists. There's a tendency to go for the quick fix. Q.: What skills are necessary to have a good conversation? A.: You need to know how to gather information, how to guide someone, how to give and get attention and how to demonstrate understanding especially empathic understanding. You also need to know how to make explanations about people and things and how to disclose personal information about yourself in an appropriate way. Q.: Why are so many people deficient in talk skills? A.: For one thing, our education system has failed almost completely to teach these skills. We teach writing grammar, English composition - and we teach public speaking, but we don't teach the pleasures and pitfalls of face-to-face communication. This is ironic because we talk to each other or engage in public speaking. 209 Q.: How is our society damaged by people's shortcomings in developing communication skills? A.: It keeps people from making and keeping friends who can form a personal support network that's vital to mental health. It really is possible to teach people techniques for exchanging help with family, friends and support groups. Inadequate talk skills also play a big part in the high divorce rate. Many couples simply don't talk to each other well enough. One of the big problems is the husband's inability or unwillingness to disclose as much as the woman - particularly, when it comes to revealing feelings. As for women, many allow themselves to be dominated in conversation too much. For example, men interrupt women more than they interrupt other men. That can lead to bad feelings that build up over the years. Married couples also overlook the importance of providing entertaining talk to each other. In time, they can become bored and drift apart. II. Give synonymous phrases for: Waning art of conversation; restricting social rules; adult admonishing; to be stunned; to be outspoken; to stick to subjects; pleasures and pitfalls; to reveal feelings; to provide entertaining talk; to drift apart. III. Answer the following questions: 1. Has there ever been a golden age of conversation in the US? 2. How did social rules interfere with male and female communication? 3. How did parents use to talk to their children? 4. Why is it difficult to restore conversation of the past times? 5. Why is it of higher quality today? 210 6. Do the young people talk today as freely as did at the turn of the century? 7. Who is more dominant in conversation now: men or women? 8. What does a true conversation resemble? 9. Do you agree that poor conversation is one of the reasons of generation gap? 10. Do people eagerly listen to other people's complaints or problems? 11. What advice do they hurry to offer? 12. What skills are important for conducting a good conversation? 13. Is it necessary to teach people these techniques? IV. Explain, please, what we mean by: a) a golden age of conversation; b) free-flowing talk; c) equal footing in conversation; d) face-to-face communication; e) communication skills. V. Compare conversation of today with that of past times as far as men, women, young men and children are concerned. VI. Speak on: a) the factors promoting high quality of conversation; b) reasons for a generation gap: c) empathic communication; d) communication skills; e) outcomes of couples’ misunderstanding. VII. Express your opinion of the following statements: 1. Women tend to be less dominant in conversation than men. 2. A true conversation is like a sports event. 211 3. Young people are more prone to talk on the phone with their peers than with their parents. 4. Inadequate talk skills play a big part in the high divorce rate. VIII. Review the text. IX. Write an essay on the theme «Ideal Face-to-Face Communication». Text 10 I. Read and translate the text: You Just Don't understand Why can't men and women understand each other? Who talks more, men or women? Is there a difference in the way men talk to other men and the way women talk to other women? What do men and women each want from their conversations? Deborah Tannen, a professor of linguistics at Georgetown University, provides some startling answers to these questions in her best selling book «YOU JUST DON'T UNDERSTAND: WOMEN AND MEN IN CONVERSATION». Tannen analyzed numerous recordings and video tapes of everyday conversations of children, teenagers and adults to study how people interact and how they use conversation to satisfy their needs. Her research led her to the conclusion that American boys and girls grow up in what are essentially different cultures, so talk between women and men is cross-cultural communication. Citing her research, and that of other specialists — sociologists, anthropologists, and psychologists, she states: 212 «Even if they grow up in the same neighborhood, on the same block, or in the same house, girls and boys grow up in different worlds of words. Others talk to them differently and expect and accept different ways of talking from them. Most important, children learn how to talk, how to have conversations, not only from their parents but from their peers.» Researchers have documented that boys and girls spend most of their time playing with other children of the same sex and that the way that boys and girls talk to their friends is very different. Boys tend to play outside and prefer games involving large groups which have leaders and systems of rules to determine the winners and the losers. In their play, boys are primarily concerned about establishing and maintaining their status in the hierarchy of the group. Status is achieved by giving orders and getting others to follow them. Their talk is centered on giving commands, boasting about what they can do, or arguing about who can do something best. The world of little girls presents a stark contrast. Girls tend to play indoors in small groups. They spend much of their time sitting and talking, sharing secrets to maintain their closeness. Girls play games where they take turns and winning and losing is not very important. Whereas «independence and freedom» are important to boys, «intimacy and connection» are the goals of girls' conversation. These attitudes and conversational priorities carry over into the lives of adult men and women. For men, life is «a contest, a struggle to preserve independence and avoid failure.» In a man's world, conversations are negotiations in which people try to achieve and maintain the upper hand if they can, and protect themselves from others‘ attempts to put them down and push them around. For women, on the other hand, life is «a community, a struggle to preserve intimacy and avoid isolation». In a woman's world, conversations are negotiations for closeness in which people try to seek and give confirmation and support, to reach consensus. They try to protect themselves from others' attempts to push them away. 213 The differences in the conversations and the body language show that females and males sometimes look like they came from different planets. The girls and women sit close together, face each other directly, and look into each others' eyes when they talk. They take turns talking about each others' problems and about the people they know and make supportive statements. The boys and men, on the other hand, tend to have more open body positions and have very little eye contact. They show their caring for each other by teasing and joking. For men and boys, offering sympathy puts the other in a «one-down» position, so when they talk about their problems, they reassure each other by offering quick advice. Men and women view public and private speech differently. Many men are more comfortable with public speech where they defend their positions and exchange information. In public situations, men speak more than women. When they come home, however, men want to relax and read the newspaper. Men are more interested in knowing about the news than they are in discussing what is happening to other people. This is very frustrating to their wives, who are eager to talk about the details of other people's lives — their friends, family members, and business associates. For women, the purpose of conversation is interaction. But for men, the purpose of conversation is to impart information. They do not like small talk. The fact that women are more comfortable with private talk than they are with public talk puts them at a disadvantage in the public arena. Women are not accustomed to fighting for a chance to speak during the meeting. Because women are used to waiting for their turn to speak, they are frequently ignored by men who expect that if they have something to say, they will speak up. 214 Because women are generally good listeners, asking questions and making supportive comments, they may find that men are lecturing them, instead of asking them what they think, as another woman would do. This may help explain why there are so few women who hold public office. In order to run for office, a woman has to be able to campaign like a man and employ many of the conversation strategies used by men. In so doing, however, she appears to be unwomanly, and may therefore not be trusted. Tannen concludes that it is important to understand the differences in the conversational styles of men and women so that we can better interpret the messages that are being communicated. Understanding each others' styles of speaking as women and men is the first step to understanding each other as individuals. II. Answer the following questions: 1. What was the aim of Deborah Tannen's research? 2. Who were the subjects of her research? 3. What research material did she use? 4. Why does she say that men and women look like they came from different planets? 5. How do girls achieve status in their play group? 6. How do the boys play with each other? 7. How do men and women view life? 8. How do they behave in conversation with each other? 9. What is their body language like? 10. How do men react to each other's problems? 11. What docs a woman expect when she tells another woman about a problem? 12. Why are there few women holding public offices? 13. What is it necessary to know for good communication? 215 III. Could you characterize body language andconversational styles of men and women in the process of communication? IV. Do you agree with all statements suggested by Tannen? What do you think of that? V. Read the article and express your opinion of its contents: To Tell the Truth, you're a Liar! (by Harvey Kirk) Nobody likes being called a liar, but the truth is we all tell lies. One expert estimates that the average person tells more than 1000 lies a year, while another claims some adults tell as many as 200 a day - or 73,000 a year. Women lie more than men. However, women's lies fall mostly into the 'white' category: reassuring a friend about her choice of outfit or covering a situation of potential embarrassment. It comes as no surprise that politicians are the biggest liars in the world, making promises they know they can't keep. They are followed by salesmen - particularly the used-car variety - and actors seeking publicity. Even doctors sometimes lie to sick patients about their condition. Of all professional people, scientists, architects and engineers lie the least. After all, their statements can easily be checked by other experts in the same field. But don't worry, says Dr Robert Goldstein, a professor of psychiatry who led a team of researchers to find these facts. He believes you can still be a nice person and a liar 216 at the same time, because most of the lies told by the average person are harmless, white lies. For example, a man might tell his wife or girlfriend, «Sweetheart, you look great», when in reality she doesn't look so good. These sorts of lies are constructive. They can cheer people up if they feel a bit low, says Dr Goldstein. One of Dr Goldstein's colleagues Dr Gerald Jellison recently put a team of researchers onto the subject of lying. They found that adults tell about 200 a day. «These lies are excuses, alibis, explanations and apologies we fabricate on the spot almost automatically», says Dr Jellison. His researchers found that women tell about four white lies every 15 minutes, compared to men's three. They also found, like Dr Goldstein, that women were better at lying; their lies were more convincing than those told by men. Women were also better at detecting lies. When a person lies, a lot of physiological changes bike place. It is based on these changes that lie-detector machines, or specially adapted polygraphs operate. An unnaturally cool customer can outwit a lie detector, but the machine will not record a lie if one has not been uttered. Few of us can rely on technology to detect a falsehood, but the study of body language can be almost as accurate. If you think somebody is deceiving, here's what to look for: Fidgeting: Liars often touch their faces and the backs of their necks. Hesitation: This applies in both the physical and vocal sense. If your question stops somebody dead in their tracks, beware! It takes longer to think up a lie than to tell the truth. Smiling: If somebody starts smiling more than usual, be on your guard. Beware also when a normal «smiler» cuts back on the smiles. Both could indicate lying. 217 Coughing: Together with sneezing, this is often used as a stalling technique. Both sometimes indicate that the lie is choking the person telling it. Eyes: A person who is lying won't look you in the eye as much as someone telling the truth. So be wary of anybody who avoids eye contact. The shrug: Be suspicious if somebody shrugs for no apparent reason when they are telling you something. This could indicate they are trying to deceive you. Distance: Liars sometimes back away from you, if only slightly, when they are trying to deceive you. Voice: The pitch of the voice may be higher when somebody is lying. Some liars also repeat themselves. Disruption in the speech pattern, such as stammering or a sudden pitch in the voice itself, also indicates lying. Head nodding: This means the liar is betraying then his doubts and his insincerity. You can also tell people are lying by the things they say. Liars use evasive words and phrases that often mean the opposite to what they are saying. For example, if somebody says, «It depends», this is often a way of saying no without having to face the consequences directly. If somebody says, «That's interesting», they mean just the opposite. The person to whom you are talking is actually bored with the conversation and wishes you would either stop talking or change the subject. Here are more examples of what they actually mean: «Let's get together some time.» Without a specific agreement, this is an insincere invitation that shows a desire to get away, to end the conversation. «We'll see» — this is another way of saying no and is often used by parents. «Don't worry, everything will be all right» — this really means the listener is fed-up hearing about your problems but wants to appear concerned. 218 And there's the classic: «I wouldn't lie to you». If somebody says this to you, they certainly would lie and are probably just about to. VI. Give Russian equivalents for: It comes as no surprise; to seek publicity; to detect a falsehood; fidgeting; hesitation; a stalling technique; to avoid eye contact; stammering; to betray doubts; to face consequences; head nodding; an insincere invitation; to be fed-up. VII. Give English equivalents for: Заверять; делать обещания; подбадривать; убеждать; лгать; говорить неправду; неискренность; сменять тему; белая ложь; детектор лжи; казаться обеспокоенным; придумывать извинения; алиби. VIII. Explain the following words and wordcombinations: White lies; publicity; a lie-detector machine; evasive phrases; for no apparent reason; fidgeting. IX. Answer the following questions: 1. What statistical data are given at the beginning of the article? 2. Who lies more: men or women? 3. Who are the biggest liars in the world? 4. Who follows them? 5. What professional people lie the least? 6. What lies do people tell most often? 7. Could you give examples of white lies? 8. How often do adults lie a day? 9. Who is better at lying: males or females? 10. What are the non-verbal signals of lying? 11. What phrases do liars use? X. Could you recollect an episode from your personal experience when: a)you couldn't help lying; b)you were punished for lying by your parents; 219 c) your best friend deceived you and you experienced emotional wounds. XI. Say what evasive phrases you most often use when: a) you are bored in a conversation; b) you have to leave; c) you would like to end the conversation as soon as possible. Text 11 I. Read and translate the text: Suicide Today Before when people wanted to commit suicide, they would throw themselves under a car. Nowadays Russian businessmen have found a new method - they take out or damage the brakes of their car, sit behind the wheel, and take off. Why are there so many suicides for no apparent reason? Chemists are searching for answers to this question. Post mortem examinations reveal that more than 95 percent of those who take their own life have certain changes in their brain chemistry. It is also known that in the few weeks before their deaths, more than half of suicide victims visit their doctor. Usually, the doctor can't find anything wrong, and so the patient is sent home. In the opinion of Vladimir Skavysh, a specialist at the Suicide Center, there is a predisposition to suicide in some people. However, this does not mean that there is a ‘suicide gene’, because the problem is psychological rather than biological. There are many cases where suicide becomes hereditary. However, this is presumably a case of inheriting the principle of behavior in a critical situation. In other words, at present science cannot give us an 220 unequivocal answer to the question of whether a suicide gene exists. It is well known that in certain circumstances the risk of suicide increases sharply. People are more at risk if one of their parents had killed themselves; if their parents are divorced; if their parents fight like cat and dog; if they are impulsive and cannot control their actions. The highest risk category consists of introverts, that is people who, after some kind of misfortune, direct their rage at themselves rather than lash out at those around them. Extroverts deal with their emotions by preferring to simply smash someone in the face rather than indulge in protracted contemplation of human malice and therefore hardly ever commit suicide. A quarter of all successful suicide victims are mentally ill, another quarter are completely healthy, and the rest are on the border-line - neither ill nor healthy, but inclined to neuroses and tragic perception of reality. There are many different reasons why some people commit suicide. The real reason may be difficult to establish, even when the victim has left a note. Often the notes describe completely different reasons, or things which really have only a slight or no connection at all with their decision to die. Some decide to kill themselves without really knowing why — perhaps because insomnia suggested the idea of suicide or it may have rained too hard or too long. According to Alekper Tagi-Zade, manager of the Samaritans - a charitable association for the prevention of suicides - the profile of a typical potential suicide is something like this: a woman between 35 and 40, with a university degree, and in the overwhelming majority of cases unmarried and without a boyfriend. Failure in one's personal life very often leads to thoughts of suicide, and neither men nor women are strong enough to acknowledge that this is the cause of their depression, so they prefer to 221 attribute everything to unpleasantness at work, money worries, health anxieties, or social problems. Only one in seven or eight attempted suicides is ‘successful’. Women attempt to commit suicide much more frequently than men. However, men are four times more likely to actually commit suicide than women. The most frequent method is an overdose, but fatalities from this method are few. The most reliable suicide method is by hanging. Ten years ago an elderly American woman carried out what became known as the 'suicide of the century'. She attached a long rope to the balcony of her skyscraper with a noose so that one end reached the ground and the other end would tighten up in flight, she took a fatal dose of sleeping tablets, stood on the edge of the balcony, and shot herself in the head with a revolver. In this way an ordinary American pensioner contrived to kill herself in four different ways. Specialists often cite this case as evidence that those who make unsuccessful attempts really do not intend to die. Any suicide victim whose decision is irrevocable makes very careful preparations. In such cases there are no overdoses with long-expired pills, weak ropes or defective bullets. Does one have the right to take one's own life? To whom does human life belong? To the person, his nearest and dearest, the state of God? In some countries - Canada, Denmark, Chile - suicide attempts are punishable by law. But history has known periods when suicide was a cult. In ancient Rome patricians preferred to depart from their life early rather than become a burden to their relatives in their declining years. In Japan, the highest form of valour and revenge was hari-kiri. In Russia it was always thought that only sick people killed themselves. In 1716, the future Tsar Peter wrote in the Poteshny Regiment Rules and Regulations: «If someone kills themselves, then an executioner should drag their body through the streets, then take it away to an inaccessible place and bury it.» 222 In recent years the suicide rate in Russia has gone up. Personal loneliness has been added to social loneliness, the fear of losing one's job, one's home, the ground under one's feet. In Russia, in 1998, there were 45 suicides per 100,000 which is a terribly high figure by world standards. In England the figure today is nine per 100,000 and in pre-revolutionary Russia the 'norm' was three per 100,000. The WHO has acknowledged that today in Russia suicide is a slowly unfolding crisis. When someone starts talking about killing himself and tells his closest friends about it, they should not let him out of their sight for a moment, and keep in constant touch with him. At such times human contact is more important than even before. Doctors advise those who want to cope with delusions on their own that they should buy a ticket for a long train journey, and unburden their soul to the first person who comes along, it will take a great load off their minds. II. Answer the following questions: 1. What attempts do chemists make to find out apparent reasons of suicides? 2. Is there a predisposition to suicide? 3. Who is at a more risk of committing suicide? 4. What does the highest risk category consist of? 5. How do extroverts deal with their emotions? 6. What arc the most possible reasons of suicide? 7. What is the profile of a typical potential suicide? 8. Who commits suicide more frequently: men or women? 9. Has suicide ever been a cult? 10. Why has the suicide rate in Russia gone up? 223 Text 12 I. Read the text and give its general idea: Depression In College Students Depression is widespread among college students. As many as 78 percent of college students suffer some symptoms of depression. Forty-six percent of the students have intense enough depression to make some professional help appropriate. At least twice the rate of suicides occur among college students each year as among nonstudents of similar age. Why are these students, a more competent and advantaged group than the general population, such easy prey to depression? There are many possible reasons. Many students are living away from home for the first time. They must cope with situations that require new kinds of adaptive behaviors. In addition, because colleges bring together the most talented and achieving students from many high schools, staying at the top is much harder, and competition is fierce. Many students who have always been near the top of their classes can't face the prospect of a less outstanding position. Often students aren't sure what career they want to follow. They may spend time feeling guilty about the money their parents are spending on their education and feel an obligation to be successful even when they have no clear idea of what to do with their lives. At first, they may have few people to whom they can turn for comfort or reassurance. Their old friends are back home, and the effort required to make new friends may cause some anxiety. Severe loneliness and feelings of isolation result. Self-destruction is also a serious problem among college students. The suicide rate for the college population is 50 percent higher than for the general population. Each year 100,000 college students threaten 224 suicide and some 1,000 actually kill themselves. This problem is found not only in the United States, but in European countries, India, and Japan as well. During a nine-year period, twenty-three students enrolled at the University of California at Berkeley committed suicide. Compared to their nonsuicidal classmates, these students appeared to be moody, drove themselves harder, and were depressed frequently. Their depression often took the form of extreme agitation. Most of them gave recurrent warnings of their suicidal intent. The major precipitating factors seemed to be worry about schoolwork, concerns about health, and difficulties in their relationships with others. Most of the students who feel depressed do not seek professional help either within the college or from outside sources. They try to handle the problem by working harder, by talking to friends, or by dropping out. Colleges have tried to cope with these problems in a variety of ways. Perhaps one effective way to reduce this problem is to make students aware that what they are experiencing is not unique. The majority of students have the same discomforts. This might help them decide more intelligently how to deal with depression and where to seek help. Rather than attributing academic difficulties to intellectual deficiencies, the student might be made aware that emotional stress and depression may cause sadness and less motivated behavior, which also might interfere with academic performance. II. Answer the following questions: 1. How many percent of college students suffer depression? 2. What are the possible reasons of such a situation? 3. Are these reasons social or psychological? 4. Self-destruction is also a serious problem, isn't it? 5. What data are given concerning a suicide rate among college students? 225 6. What countries are mentioned in connection with it? 7. How did these suicidal victims behave on the eve? 8. What were the major precipitating factors of their depression? 9. How do depressed students very often try to cope with their problems? 10. What is the effective way to reduce the problem of depression? III. Choose the right variant: a) At least thrice the rate of suicides occur among college students as among nonstudents. b) At least twice the rate of suicides occur among college students as among nonstudents. c) At least four times the rate of suicides occur among college students as among nonstudents. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: To commit suicide; for no apparent reason; predisposition; hereditary; to inherit the principle of behavior; to be at a risk of; to deal with emotions; protracted contemplation; to be on the border-line; to be inclined to; a charitable association; overwhelming majority; to cope with delusions. II. Make up all possible word-combinations with the word «suicide»: To commit; a predisposition to; an attempt; a center; gene; a risk of; a victim; prevention of; a thought of; a reliable method; a century; n rate; to threaten. III. Give English equivalents for: Категория высокого риска; при определённых обстоятельствах; трагическое восприятие реальности; бессонница; расстаться с жизнью; бремя; жестокая конкуренция; чувствовать вину; обратиться за утешением; саморазрушение; несуицидное поведение; 226 суицидное измерение; преобладающие академическая успеваемость. факторы; IV. Give synonyms for: Inherited; to deal with; to be prone to; to attempt suicide; to take place; a victim of depression; to demand; to feel responsibility; overwhelming factors; to relieve a problem; to search for. V. What word-combinations may be used characterize: 1. Suicide causes. 2. People at a high risk of committing suicides. 3. Suicide victims. 4. Depression as a psychic state. 5. Severe loneliness. 6. Effective ways to reduce depression. to Text 13 I. Read the text and try to explain why it is called in this way: Hypnosis «Useful In Medicine, Dangerous In Court» The use of hypnosis is spreading. The technique has been accepted by the American Medical Association, the American Psychiatric Association and the American Psychological Association. In addition to many encouraging clinical reports, there is now a growing body of research which helps to clarify the nature of hypnosis and supports its use in a variety of areas. 227 We know that hypnosis has many useful applications in medicine, such as in the treatment of pain. It can lower an individual's level of arousal, and it helps in the treatment of stress. It is effective in the treatment of some forms of asthma and in certain skin disorders. It can even help modify the response of the body's immune system. Hypnosis is also used in psychiatry in a variety of ways: in the context of psychodynamic therapy, to uncover feelings and memories; in the context of behavioral approaches, to facilitate imagery. The medical uses of hypnosis are not controversial: what is controversial is the use of hypnosis in questioning suspects and witnesses to solve crimes. If hypnosis is used to create pseudo memories, it can be extremely dangerous in the courtroom. If you use hypnosis to convince a jury that an innocent man is guilty, it can lead to a terrible miscarriage of justice. Many of the effects of hypnosis wear off rapidly. Typical posthypnotic suggestions do not tend to persist over long periods, but hypnosis can permanently distort memory if the hypnotized subject comes to believe that he has remembered something that had not actually occurred. Like any therapeutic techniques, hypnosis has certain risks. Used in competent hands for appropriate reasons, hypnosis is very effective. Hypnosis is a state or condition where the subject focuses his mind on the suggestions of the hypnotist so that he is able to experience distortions of memory or perception. For the time being, the subject suspends disbelief and lowers his critical judgment. A good way to think of it is that your mind becomes so focused that you really get into fantasy. You become so absorbed in what you are thinking that you begin to experience it as reality. Dramatic results have been achieved in the relief of asthma and some other allergies. This is because hypnosis can at times modify the body's immune system and block some of the allergic reaction. Hypnosis can be quite effective in arresting intractable hiccups and treating some 228 forms of severe insomnia. One of the more interesting uses is in the treatment of certain kinds of warts and some skin disorders. Hypnosis is very effective in the control of pain. Children with leukemia, for example, must undergo a painful procedure to obtain bone-marrow specimens to assess their condition. With hypnosis you can relieve the anxiety associated with the anticipation of pain and help these children to tolerate this procedure relatively comfortably. Hypnosis is not very effective in treating disorders of self-control. It won't make you do something that you can do voluntarily if you put your mind to it - but that you really don't want to do for a variety of conscious and subconscious reasons. In getting people to stop smoking, the success rate with hypnosis has not been dramatic. It's more a help in controlling the discomfort associated with quitting rather than in quitting itself. For people trying to lose weight, hypnosis is only moderately and occasionally effective. For control of drugs and alcohol, hypnosis is virtually useless. In most cases of alcohol and drug abuse, there are complex psychological reasons that prevent the mind from responding to hypnotic suggestions for self-control. Finally, hypnosis has very little use in the major psychoses. It is rarely, if ever, the treatment of choice for severe depressions, mania or schizophrenia. 229 II. Translate into Russian the second part of the text starting from the paragraph the beginning of which sounds like that: «Hypnosis is a state or condition...» III. Give Russian equivalents for: Technique; a growing body of research; a variety of areas; to uncover feelings and memories; psychodynamic therapy; suspect; anticipation of pain; to tolerate a painful procedure; to respond to hypnotic suggestions. IV. Give English equivalents for: Полезное применение; уровень возбуждения; поведенческий подход; невиновный; виновный; внушение; сознательные и подсознательные причины; сильная депрессия; шизофрения; спорный. V. Translate into Russian: Hypnosis; hypnotic session; hypnotic suggestion; posthypnotic suggestion; hypnotized subject; hypnotist. VI. Make up sentences. Choose the correct ending. 1. Hypnosis is useful a) controlling discomfort b) reducing anxiety in ... 2.Hypnosis is effective c)producing suggestions in ... 3.Hypnosis is d) modifying the response of the body's immune system controversial in ... 4.The use of hypnosis e) treating insomnia is doubtful in ... f)overcoming addictions g)the treatment of pain and skin disorders h) competent hands for appropriate reasons 230 i) questioning suspects and witnesses j)creating pseudomemories k) facilitating imagery l) solving crimes m) treating psychoses n) relieving allergic reactions o) convincing a jury to take a decision p) tolerating a painful procedure q) lowering one's critical judgment r) treating self-control s) losing weight VII. Make up a list of positive and negative effects of hypnosis. VIII. Answer the following questions: 1. What associations have accepted the technique of hypnosis? 2. What useful applications has hypnosis in medicine? 3. How is it used in psychiatry? 4. What use of hypnosis is controversial? 5. Why can hypnosis be dangerous? 6. Do typical posthypnotic suggestions persist over long or short periods? 7. Can hypnosis distort memory in any way? 8. Is hypnosis a risky procedure? 9. There is a definition of hypnosis in the article. What is it? Do you agree with it? 10. What happens to the hypnotized subject? 11. Where is hypnosis very effective? 12. Is it possible to relieve pain under hypnosis? 13. Can hypnosis help overcome smoking and drug addictions? 14. Can hypnosis help overcome alcohol abuse? 231 IX. Agree or disagree with the following: 1. Hypnosis has many useful applications. 2. But it is not effective in relieving pain. 3. Hypnosis can cause actual physical and mental harm. 4. With hypnosis we may stimulate human creative abilities. 5. Animals can be easily hypnotized. 6. Hypnosis used in psychiatry has dramatic effects. 7. Hypnosis is a phenomenon of wonders. X. Review the article. Add some facts from your personal experience. XI. Read the article and find answers to the following questions: 1. What does hypnosis mean? 2. What did experiments staged by V.Raikov show? 3. Bo the aroused abilities disappear after hypnosis? 4. How does hypnosis help in curing people? 5. What diseases can hypnosis heal? Healing under Hypnosis Hypnosis means sleep in Greek. Maybe that's why the prevailing opinion is that it is a passive state in which a person's will is paralyzed. In real life, however, hypnosis is a special state of the human's psychic activities and of the nervous system. Experiments staged by Vladimir Raikov, a well-known psychotherapist, showed that abilities which the subjects hadn't even suspected they have before may be aroused in them in a hypnotic state. For example, under hypnosis, a first-year student at a conservatoire performed piano pieces with the skill of a first-class master. Others subjected to the test started playing chess about two categories of skill higher. The important thing is that the aroused abilities do not disappear after hypnosis. If the people were doing drawings under hypnosis, then after 15 to 20 sessions 232 their drawings could well be displayed at professional exhibitions. Hypnosis helps in curing people of illness. It is suggested to the patient that he is healthy. The patient trains for about a month to learn how to arouse this feeling of health in himself. The feeling of health becomes a habit, which, in its turn, mobilizes the organism to combat the disease. Hypnosis can heal hypertension, angina pectoris, cardiac diseases, ulcers at early stages, and many neuroses. Notes: Angina pectoris - грудная жаба Ulcer - язва XII. Make u p disjunctive questions: 1. Hypnosis means sleep in Greek. 2. It is a special state of human psychic activities. 3. It helps in curing people of illness. 4. The feeling of health becomes a habit. 5. Hypnosis can heal many neuroses. ХIII. Speak on: 1. Vladimir Raikov. 2. Experiments under hypnosis. 3. Useful effects of hypnosis. XIV. Express your opinion of the article. XV. A role-play: Imagine you are a hypnotist. Your subject is easily hypnotized. He has come to you as he is afraid of the operation to be made next week. Ask him some questions about pleasant past experinces and try to relieve his fear. 233 Text 14 I. Read and translate the text: Taste and Smell Lessen with Age The senses of taste and smell are inextricably connected, and both can have a profound effect on appetite. In elderly persons, the neurological functions that govern these senses decrease with age as a result of age-related neuron loss, and the elderly lose the intensity of taste and smell that they possessed when younger. This can lead to a concominant decline in appetite, which may lead to nutritional problems, reported the American researchers. The scientists used an olefactometer to compare the abilities of college students and elderly people to detect and discriminate odors. The groups were matched as much as possible for background and socio-economic level, both of which can be important factors in familiarity with tastes and smells. College students are able to detect an odor at much lower concentrations than are elderly people. This change in threshold affects eating not only because odor itself can stimulate appetite, but also because some people notice a bitter taste in foods that they are unable to smell. The scientists report that a significantly greater percentage of elderly persons complained of a bitter flavor in foods that tasted normal to younger subjects. For the elderly, this may mean that foods they once enjoyed no longer taste good. A decreased sense of smell among elderly persons held true not only for food, but for less pleasant odors as well. The researchers tested their subjects with urinelike odors, 234 and found that aged subjects had even more difficulty detecting those odors than they did detecting the food smells. They believe that this may account for the tolerance in the elderly of the sometimes malodorous atmosphere of nursing homes and hospitals. Many younger persons say that they can't stand to work there because of the smell, although older residents seem unbothered. The scientists also found that elderly persons lose the ability to discriminate between unlike tastes, as well as to identify familiar ones. They prepared foods to make them identical in consistency, then tested them on blindfolded subjects. For elderly persons, things began to taste the same. The person might be able to detect a taste, but not be able to tell what it is. For example, only 55 percent of the elderly subjects recognized the taste of apple, while 61 percent of the college students identified it correctly. Many elderly persons prefer fruit flavors, however, because the ability to taste these flavors often lingers longer. The explanation for this decline in sensory ability may lie in the fact that tastes are coded across neurons. For example, there is a difference in the codes for salty tastes and for bitter tastes. With age we drop neurons, and so with age there is less difference between the two patterns. If a person needed a total neural mass of, say ten, to detect taste, he may need a larger mass to discriminate between tastes. II. Give Russian equivalents for: To have a profound effect; elderly people; a concomitant decline; threshold; nursing home; a greater percentage; blindfolded subjects; fruit flavours; sensory ability; bitter tastes; a total neural mass. Ш. Answer the following questions: 1. Why do the neurological functions decrease in elderly persons? 2. Where can it lead to? 3. What experiment was made to discriminate odors? 235 4. What did the elderly people complain about? 5. What other ability do elderly people lose? 6. What flavours do they prefer? 7. How may it be explained? 8. What is the conclusion drawn by the researchers? IV. Enumerate basic physiological occurring in the organism with aging. changes V. Divide the article into logical parts and make up a plan for a review. VI. Review the article. VII. How old are you now? Have your tastes and smell changed since your childhood? What factors influence your appetite? Are they psychological or social in nature? VIII. Make up a list of questions you would like to ask an elderly man concerning his tastes, if you are given such a task. IX. Read the item and say what scent has been identified a s being relaxing: A Relaxing New Scent Feeling a bit tense lately? Maybe your sales report is three days overdue. Or perhaps your sports car is in the auto shop for an estimate. Or maybe your unemployed brother-in-law is coming to stay. Well, you need something to help you relax. How about a nice whiff of apple spice fragrance? OK, maybe that's not quite what you had in mind as a relaxant. But researchers of Yale University say that sniffing fragrances is an ideal way to relieve stress. In studies on the effect of odors on human emotion, researchers tested 200 people by inducing «hassie factors». Test subjects had to do complex arithmetic problems in their head and finish partial sentences that had 236 embarrassing or emotion-laden meanings. During the testing the researchers took physiological measurements of anxiety, such as blood pressure. Then they introduced different odors into the test subject's environment and studied the physiological changes. So far one particular fragrance, apple spice, has shown a significant anxiety-reducing effect. The researchers received a patent on it, but has no immediate plans to market the scent; they want to give it further study. Still, the potential market for an anxiety-relieving odor seems promising. X. What scent reduces your sense of anxiety? 237 EMOTIONS and STRESS UNIT VIII Text I I. Read and translate the text: Emotions An emotion is generally a response of a person to a situation in which he finds himself. A situation which is out of the ordinary one for an individual is likely to result in emotional activity. This emotional activity is generally random and disorganized. It is accompanied by feelings of pleasantness or unpleasantness and universally associated with marked changes in the chemistry of the body. We know an emotion is not an independent element which comes or goes at will. It is initiated by certain perceptions and accompanies the activities which are stimulated by the situation. We all know how much easier it is to work long hours on something we enjoy and how surprised we are to discover that we are suddenly fatigued after such activity. On the other hand, it is exceedingly difficult to work at something we dislike and find ourselves restless settling down to work at something with conscious effort and intent. Most of our emotions are learned. We are born with a capacity for emotions and physiological structure capable of handling emotionally charged situations, but emotional behaviour as a reaction to particular objects or events is learned. A young child in such a situation as that of frustration may respond by an emotional storm. As he gets older he learns to inhibit the purely emotional response and to exhibit voluntarily controlled behaviour. As he learns to do this, emotional behaviour becomes less common and less intense. Uninhibited emotional 238 responses amongst human adults are normally rare, and when an individual does exhibit outbreaks of rage, panic etc., these are recognised as pathological. They are one of the symptoms of regression or a going back to infantile modes of behaviour. Throughout the life people may experience different kinds of emotions. The most characteristic for human beings are the so-called altruistic emotions. They may be of two types, i.e. sympathetic and disinterested emotions. We may experience the emotion of fear when we hear a scream of a frightened person or anger, when we hear a friend's voice raised angrily towards some person. The emotion called out in this way is called a sympathetic emotion. Similarly, we may feel anger at an insulting speech about another person which he has not himself heard. The emotion called out in this way on behalf of another person is called a disinterested emotion. The altruistic emotions are of obvious importance in social behaviour. II. Answer the following questions: 1. In what way may an emotion be defined? 2. What is an emotional activity accompanied by? 3. What is an emotion initiated by? 4. Are our emotions learned or inborn? 5. What is a child's reaction to a situation characterized by? 6. Is it easy or difficult for a grown-up person to inhibit an emotional response? 7. What altruistic emotions do you know? 8. What is a sympathetic emotion called? 9. What is a disinterested emotion called? III. Ask your groupmate: 1. whether he agrees or disagrees with the definition of the emotion given in the text; 2. what emotions he experiences when he is fatigued; 3. what he feels when he has not finished his work but a deadline is coming; 239 4. if he often experiences altruistic emotions; 5. if he likes to express his emotions and feelings openly; 6. whether he can inhibit his emotional responses quite easily; 7. if he used to respond to a frustrated situation in his childhood by an emotional storm. IV. What is your reaction to be in the following situations: (a)You see the threatening gestures towards some person. (b)You see another person on the point of being run down by a bus which he has not seen. (c) You watch a child playing on the road unconscious of the danger. (d) You learn of the death of your friend's father. (e) You learn that your neighbour has been run down by a bus. V. Characterize in short an emotionally-charged situation. Give examples. VI. Make up an outline of the text «Emotions». VII. Speak on the text according to your plan. Give additional information if you like. VIII. Look through the text and say what problem this text deals with. Fatigue Several factors cause fatigue, but in general, they come down to two main causes: lack of fuel or food, and the excessive accumulation of by-products of activity. Muscle activity uses up stores of glycogen or sugar. It also must have oxygen, for a muscle deprived of it will soon cease to contract. Lactic acid and carborn dioxide are the chief byproducts of muscle activity, but there are also toxins from 240 other sources which may help produce fatigue. Some of these toxins may come from bodily infections and some may be absorbed from breathing or from the digestive process. But in addition to these factors, there are certain causes of fatigue which are more or less obscure. Some of these are less physiological than psychological, such as lack of interest in what you are doing. When you do something that bores you, you tire easily; if you are interested in your work, you forget the amount of energy you put into it. You also tire more quickly when you are walking, for in walking, each leg rests half of the time. (C.P.HICKMAN from «Health for College Students) Notes: lack - недостаток; to cease - to stop; to contract — сокращаться; lactic acid - молочная кислота; obscure — неясный; to bore — наскучить. IX. Read the text and be ready to answer the following questions: 1. What are the two main causes of fatigue? 2. Are there any psychological causes of fatigue? 3. What additional information is given in the text? X. Give the general idea of the text. XI. Explain: ■what circumstances influence your productivity in work; •under what conditions you are fatigued more quickly; • what emotions you experience when you are doing the work you dislike; •what emotions you experience when you are solving some interesting problem; •why you do not like being disturbed by somebody while you are working. 241 Text 2 I. Read and translate the text: Classification of Emotions The list of feelings and reactions we include under the term emotion is almost infinite. A few that come to mind readily are: fear, anger, rage, horror, terror, agony, anxiety, jealousy, shame, embarrassment, disgust, grief, boredom and dejection. These tend to be negative emotions, but positive ones can be added: love, joy, amusement, elation, ecstasy, pleasure, and happiness. It is quite clear that the list could be extended indefinitely, depending on one's introspective skill and vocabulary range. At birth there are just a few basic emotional reactions that develop and combine in different ways, through learning and maturation, to cover the full spectrum of emotional experience as we know it at adults. The behaviourist, John Watson postulated three basic emotions in children - fear, rage, and love. Robert Plutchik has proposed a theory of emotional mixture. He assumes that there are eight basic emotional reactions - anticipation, anger, joy, acceptance, surprise, fear, sorrow, and disgust. According to him, each primary emotional reaction can vary in intensity producing different shades of emotional experience. For instance, such basic reaction like fear can vary in intensity from timidity, through apprehension, fear and panic, up to terror. So we may have annoyance, anger, and rage as well as calmness, serenity, pleasure, happiness, joy and ecstasy. Other psychologists took a more descriptive approach to the classification of emotions. This approach involves the isolation of one or more basic dimensions along which emotional reactions can be placed. Three main dimensions 242 were described by various authors: intensity, pleasantness-unpleasantness, and approach-avoidance. The intensity dimension is the one most psychologists agree upon. It was also called a level of arousal or activation. And Elizabeth Duffy suggested that the term emotion be replaced by arousal or energy mobilization. Emotions at the same level of intensity may be pleasant or unpleasant. Among the more aroused emotions appear joy, astonishment, hopefulness, and ecstasy on the pleasant side and disgust, fear, rage and terror on the unpleasant one. Among the less aroused emotions there are the pleasantness of material feeling and the unpleasantness of grief. II. Answer the following questions: 1. Into what types are emotions differentiated? 2. How do basic emotional reactions develop? 3. What basic emotions did John Watson postulate? 4. What theory did Robert Plutchik propose? 5. How can each primary reaction vary? 6. What does the descriptive approach involve? 7. What are three main dimensions of emotions? 8. How are emotions differentiated at the same level of intensity? 9. What theory do you think to be the most influential? Give your arguments. 243 III. Explain: •what you understand by positive emotions; •what you mean by negative emotions; •the essence of John Watson's theory; •the importance of Robert Plutchik's theory. IV Say, if you please: • what emotions you experience more often: positive or negative; •what circumstances give rise to your positive emotions and negative ones accordingly. V. Describe to your friend the most situation you have ever found yourself in. pleasant VI. Think of the unpleasant situation you have been a witness of. VII. Give the general idea of the text «Classification of Emotions». VIII. Read the text and give its contents in Russian: Emotions and Heart «Не was so upset, I thought he'd have a heart attack». That expression is seldom meant literally, but a group of Boston heart specialists and psychiatrists report in the JOURNAL of the AMERICAN MEDICAL ASSOCIATION that there does seem to be a connection between emotions and heart. In a study of 117 people who had been hospitalized for life threatening disturbances in heart rhythm, and in most cases had suffered cardiac arrest, the doctors found that 25 had experienced «cute emotional disturbances», during 24 hours. Situations that seemed to bring on attack included arguments, marital breakups, and the death of someone close. In 17 cases, the precipitating emotion was 244 apparently anger; in others, depression, fear, grief, extreme agitation and tension played a role. The researchers think these upsets may interfere with the nervous system's regulation of heart rhythm and, they add, doctors should study not only the physical conditions of patients' hearts, but also their lives and emotions. Notes: upset - расстроенный; disturbance — нарушение; marital breakups - разводы. IX. Read the text once more and answer: 1. What observation did Boston specialists make? 2. What were the reasons of the heart attacks? 3. What is the task of the doctors in this respect? X. Speak specialists. on the research made by Boston Text 3 I. Read and translate the text: Emotional Motives Emotions are powerful reactions that have motivating effects on behaviour. Emotions are physiological and psychological responses that influence perception, learning, and performance. Unfortunately, there is no basic definition of emotions. For example, some people take the position that emotion is an entirely different process from motivation. Others say that emotions are simply one class of motives. Some define emotion subjectively - in terms of feelings experienced by the individual. Others see emotions as bodily changes. Most of these people have emphasized the reaction as the main 245 component in emotion, but others concentrate on the perception of the situation that arouses the emotion or the effects of the emotion on ordinary behaviour. The first person to seriously challenge the classical position was William James, the famous Harvard psychologist. In 1884, he wrote that conscious experience follows the bodily reactions, which are more or less automatic reactions to stimuli in the environment. The most important part of the bodily reaction is in internal visceral organs - the heart, stomach, blood vessels and so on. Since a Danish scientist, Carl Lange, put forth a similar theory at about the same time, the basic notion has come to be known as the James-Lange theory of emotions. Walter Cannon, one of the chief critics of the JamesLange theory proposed an alternative explanation of emotion and bodily change. This is the «thalamic» theory, which was also suggested by P. Bard and has become known as the Cannon-Bard theory. According to this theory, incoming sensory impulses pass through the thalamus, which is at the base of the brain near the hypothalamus. During the transit in the thalamus, the incoming message receives an «emotional quale». Ordinarily, the cortex inhibits this emotional reaction in the thalamus but, if it does not, then emotion is released. This consists of a simultaneous discharge of the thalamus upwards the cortex — which constitutes the conscious emotional experience - and downwards to the body -which produces the visceral and muscular expression. The most sensible hypothesis has been put forth by Magda Arnold. First of all, she says that most of the emphasis has been on emotion, expression, action. She suggests the following sequence of an emotional reaction: 1. Perception — the neutral reception of external stimuli. 2. Appraisal — a judgement of the stimuli as good and beneficial or bad and harmful. 3. Emotion - a left tendency towards stimuli. 246 4. Expression - physiological changes organized towards approach or withdrawal. 5. Action - approach or withdrawal may occur if another emotion does not interfere. An important feature of Arnold's theory is that emotion is defined in a motivational sense. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 1. 2. 3. 4. II. Answer the following questions: In what way do psychologists define emotions? What definition do you think is the most significant in the psychological thought? How did William James treat emotions? Why is this theory called the James-Lange theory? What theory did Walter Cannon propose? Why is it called the Cannon-Bard theory? What theory was put forth by Magda Arnold? Where does the importance of her theory lie? III. Choose the facts to prove that: There is no general agreement on the definition of emotions. William James was the first to seriously challenge the classical position. There was another explanation of emotion and bodily change. Magda Arnold put forth the most sensible hypothesis. IV. Ask your friend to explain you: •the core of the W. James' theory; •the essence of the Cannon-Bard theory; •the significance of M. Arnold's theory. 247 V. Speak on the text. Give additional information if you please. VI. Read the article and comment on it: Anxiety Gene Turns out a Bit of Worry (by Charles Arthur, Science Editor) Recently the scientists in the US and Germany have announced they found an «anxiety» gene - which played a part in determining how anxious people were, according to psychological tests measuring a trait called «harm avoidance». But now another team of scientists, based in Jerusalem, say that direct measurement of 120 people with and without that gene showed no correlation between their anxiety levels and the gene's presence. So is it worrying that the anxiety gene appears to have disappeared? According to one author of the latest study, it may only mean that the gene affects anxiety in some groups but not in others; and one of the authors of the original study suggested that the latest project would not have detected the effect anyway. Difference in genetic backgrounds and environment could mean the gene influences the anxiety trait differently in some groups. The gene itself lies on chromosome 17 and plays a role in a brain communication system that takes the neurotransmitter serotonin - the «pleasure chemical» -back into brain cells. The gene itself comes in two forms, «short» and «long», so it seemed logical the short version would lead to less available serotonin - and so more readily to a state of anxiety. VII. Do you think these findings seem to be truthful or somehow a bit conroversial? Express your point of view. 248 VIII. Read the text and explain why fathers smile less than mothers: Translating the Smile Stettner, a psychologist at Wayne State University in Detroit, says smiling is a complicated and important form of self-expression, and he believes that improved knowledge of it could have practical implications. Besides, it feels good, Stettner said at a symposium on his favourite subject at a meeting of the International Primatological Society. «It's like discovering a language system», he said. «I’ve become ensnared in working out the vocabulary of smiling». Stettner told the symposium that there are many different kinds of smile — 1,814,400, by his estimate. «That could be off by several hundred thousand», he added, not with a straight face. He turned serious when explaining some of the practical applications of his work. «A lot of people are interested in smiles. People who study a foreign language, for example, ought to know what different smiles signify in different cultures. You learn a language but you don't learn the nonverbal language». Most of what is known about smiling comes from studies of infants and their parents. Sidney Perloe of Haverford College in Pensylvania tried to determine why fathers tend to smile less at the antics of babies than mothers do. It had been thought that fathers had less reason than mothers to develop rapport with infants because fathers play a smaller role in nurturing the infant. But Perloe found that males are less likely to smile simply because they are more aware that they are being watched by other adults and may fear that smiling at babies might be unbecoming. Notes: to ensnare — увлечься; rapport — взаимопонимание. 249 IX. Read the text again and choose the information on: 1. Stettner's research. 2. Sidney's studies. X. Do you believe in the results investigation? Give your arguments. of their XI. Develop the following situation: You have just come from the symposium of the International Primatological Society. What would you like to tell your colleagues about? Text 4 I. Read and translate the text: Nonverbal Communication Nonverbal communication is communication using the body or cultural symbols other than spoken words. Nonverbal communication is largely based on the use of the body to convey information to others, as suggested by the common phrase body language. Facial expressions are crucial to nonverbal communication. Smiling, for example, is a symbol of pleasure, although we distinguish between the casual, lighthearted smile, a smile of embarrassment, and the full, unrestrained smile we often associate with the «cat who ate the canary». Other facial expressions are used to convey an almost limitless range of human emotions, including anger, confusion, disgust, pain, indifference, sadness, and seriousness of purpose. Eye contact is another widely used means of nonverbal communication. In general, eye contact is an invitation to 250 further social interaction. An individual across the room «catches our eye», for instance, and a conversation begins. Avoiding the eyes of another, in contrast, discourages communication. Our hands speak for us too. Hand gestures commonly used within our culture can convey, among other things, an insult, a request for a ride, an invitation to have someone join us, or a demand that others stop in their tracks. Gestures of this kind are commonly used to supplement spoken words. Pointing in a menacing way at someone, for example, gives greater emphasis to a word of warning, as a shrug of the shoulders adds an air of indifference to the phrase «I don't know», and rapidly waving the arms lends urgency to the single word «Hurry!» Like all symbols, nonverbal communication is largely culture-specific. A smile indicates pleasure the world over, but many gestures that are significant within North American culture mean nothing — or something very different - to members of other cultures. Indeed, a gesture indicating praise in North America may convey a powerful insult to those who «read» the performance according to a different set of rules. The examples of nonverbal communication presented so far are elements of a deliberate performance. Nonverbal communication is often difficult to control, however. Sometimes, in fact, verbal communication (information we give) is contradicted by nonverbal cues (information we give off). Listening to her teenage son's explanation for returning home at a late hour, for instance, a mother begins to doubt his words because he is unable to hold eye contact. In this manner, nonverbal communication may provide clues to verbal deception. II. Answer the following questions: 1. How would you define nonverbal communication? 2. What is the other term for nonverbal communication? 3. What does smiling signify? 4. What emotions do facial expressions convey? 5. What are the means of conveying nonverbal communication? 251 6. Why do we say that nonverbal communication is culture-specific? 7. Is it easy or difficult to control nonverbal communication? 8. Give examples of nonverbal communication. III. Make up disjunctive questions of the following sentences: 1. Nonverbal communication is based on the use of the body to convey information. 2. Facial expressions are crucial to nonverbal communication. 3. Eye contact is a widely used means of body language. 4. Hand gestures are also eloquent in communicating with people. 5. Hand gestures supplement spoken words. 6. Body language is largely culture-specific. 7. Nonverbal communication is often difficult to control. IV. Prove the following statements by the facts from the text: 1. Facial expressions are crucial to nonverbal communication. 2. Nonverbal communication is greatly based on the culture we live in. V. Speak on the text. VI. Think of all possible situations where nonverbal communication plays a greater part than spoken words. VII. Look through the text, find and read sentences on: •the most common indicators of approval and disapproval; •universal nonverbal signals. 252 What Body Language Can Tell you That Words Cannot The most successful lawyers, teachers, and salespeople, among others, have one thing in common: A capacity to understand nonverbal signals and use them advantageously. It is important for people to understand body language - that is, communication by means of movements and gestures. For example, the most successful lawyers are those who look at a jury and a judge and pick up little cues that tip off what people are thinking. An observant lawyer may notice that the judge is compressing his lips into a thin line as the lawyer is speaking. That is a common sign people use when they disagree. Such signals are used constantly, even though people generally don't realize they are communicating through their movements, posture and mannerisms. Nonverbal language is likely to reveal a person's true feelings, which may be contrary to what is usually being spoken. There are some common indicators of approval and disapproval. For example, when people show rapport with each other, they face each other squarely, they lean slightly toward each other, and there is more eye contact. If they disagree, they unconsciously turn their bodies away from each other. Such forms are unmistakable signs of body language. There are some universal nonverbal signals. One is an automatic raising of the eyebrows that a person does when he or she meets someone else. It is a natural and universal form of greeting. Another obvious cue is known as the «hand behind head», which signals uncertainty or stress. About 125 nonverbal signals of the type have been catalogued as recognizable. Mannerisms we get are almost entirely inborn. Nonverbal behaviour occurs naturally, without being taught, and even shows up in newborn infants and in lower animals. It is firmly grounded in evolutionary development. It's something that Mother Nature provides to help us get along with each other. 253 Nonverbal communication is also what we call culturefree; it applies worldwide. People can go anywhere and understand these signals, even if they don't know the spoken language. Notes: to tip off - намекать; a Judge - судья. VIII. Read the text again and be ready to answer the following questions: 1. What does body communication mean? 2. What is a common sign people use when they disagree? 3. What does nonverbal language reveal? 4. What gesture signals uncertainty or stress? 5. How many nonverbal signals exist? 6. Are mannerisms inborn or learned? 7. What is the other name for nonverbal communication? IX. Give the main idea of the text. TEXT 5 I. Read and translate the text: The Functions of Nonverbal Communication in Marriage In the marital situation, as in most others, it is impossible to «not communicate» - communication can 254 continue to occur, either nonverbally, or through the situation, long after the last word has been spoken. Many people acknowledging the importance of nonverbal communication limit its scope to body language — facial expression and gestures in particular - and thus fail to realize that communication is going on whenever we are in the presence of somebody else. Effective marital communication demands that the communicator gets across to the spouse the message that he or she intends. When they talk to each other how they say what they say will be more important than what they say - the posture, the facial expression, the tone of voice, the volume, and any sighs, grunts, etc., which may accompany the words all may have a powerful effect on how those words are interpreted and the response which will follow them. When a husband comes home from work and sits silently with hunched shoulders, a wife may interpret this behaviour as indicating that he is angry with because she has somehow displeased him - how, she doesn't know. On the other hand, if he is upset about something that happened at work, how can she know that unless he tells her. While some would say that he has failed to communicate, a message has been communicated to his wife. But the intent of the communication and the impact that it has on the spouse are quite different. Misunderstanding has occurred, and the potential for argument is great. Communication continues to occur in situations like this whether the interactants realize it or not. Nonverbal communication, then, could be defined as that part of a message, which is not words, but which may accompany words or occur separately from words -and includes facial expressions, gestures, posture, spacing, tone of voice, pitch, volume, speed of talking, etc. Argyle discusses some functions of nonverbal communication. Conveying interpersonal attitudes, particularly towards other interactants, and the topic under discussion is an important function of nonverbal communication. It is important also to realize that 255 nonverbal communication is ambiguous, and thus is capable of being misinterpreted. For example, a frown on the face of a spouse may mean that he is annoyed, or may indicate that he has a headache. To assume that he is annoyed, without checking out, may only lead to more misunderstanding and unnecessary argument. There is considerable evidence that where the verbal and the nonverbal components conflict, much more weight is given to the nonverbal part, despite its ambiguity. The expression of emotion is also mentioned by Argyle as a function of nonverbal communication. How a person feels at a particular time is likely to be conveyed nonverbally - whether he/she is feeling happy or sad, depressed or confused, excited or disgusted. Such emotions may be expressed voluntarily and deliberately, as when a person feels sad and doesn't care who knows it, or may be «leaked» as when a person is secretly pleased about a situation and would prefer that noone realized that, but his pleasure still shows. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. II. Answer the following questions: Is it possible not to communicate in the marital situation? What does effective marital communication demand? What are the important components of communication? How can nonverbal communication be defined? What are the functions of nonverbal communication? Why do we say that nonverbal communication is ambiguous? Give examples. 256 III. Contradict the following statements (Start with «Quite on the contrary»)? 1. It is possible not to communicate in the marital situation. 2. Nonverbal communication does not promote misunderstanding. 3. There is no ambiguity in nonverbal communication at all. IV. Divide the text into logical parts and make up an outline of the text. V. Speak on the text according to your plan. VI. Give the key points of Argyle's theory. VII. Do you think the following situations to be ambiguous or not? 1. A husband is sitting behind his newspaper and responding to his wife with grunts. 2. A wife walks out on a discussion with her husband and goes wandering in the garden. 3. A husband is trying to convey his wife that he sees her as an equal in the relationship, and wants her to have an equal say in the decision-making, but she doesn't seem to believe him. Text 6 I. Read and translate the text: Nonverbal Behavior People from different cultures attach a wide variety of meanings to the same specific non-verbal behavior: looking another person in the eye, laughing in a certain 257 way, touching a person on the head, holding up two fingers, and so forth. Many misunderstandings between culturally different people arise simply because a nonverbal signal of some kind was misinterpreted. One of the best ways to keep such misinterpretations to a minimum is to remember that it is rare for people to act deliberately disrespectful or insulting towards others, especially towards strangers or visitors. This rule applies to the people of the U.S. just as it does to almost all other peoples of the world. Therefore, if you have the feeling that an American has slighted or insulted you through a certain behavior, or through the absence of an expected behavior, you probably have made the common mistake of interpreting acceptable U.S. behavior according to the standards and expectations of your own home culture. Non-verbal behavior involves innumerable complex and subtle sounds of the voice and movements of the body. In general, people in the U.S. do not touch each other frequently. What is particularly lacking is the freedom to come into lengthy and frequent bodily contact with other people of the same sex. Women are freer about touching each other than are men; nevertheless, one rarely sees women walking arm-in-arm, as is common in some other cultures. American men touch each other only infrequently and very briefly; lengthy touching between men is viewed as a sign of homosexuality, and therefore is avoided. As suggested earlier, lengthy and frequent touching between men and women is normal, but the implication is that sexual attraction or romantic involvement exists between the two. Americans are most likely to come into direct bodily contact with each other when greeting or taking leave. Men shake hands at such times; men who are good friends and who have been (or expect to be) separated for a long time may give each other a brief hug. Men never kiss each other. In general, the same rules apply to women greeting or separating from other women, although they are free to kiss each other lightly on one or both cheeks (or to touch cheek-to-cheek and kiss the air) if this is common in their social circle. The traditional pattern for a man and woman 258 is that they shake hands only if the woman takes the initiative by offering her hand. In recent decades, however, the rules for men and women in some social circles have broadened to include men's taking the initiative in handshaking; a light kiss on the cheek between friends or relatives also is becoming increasingly common. Men and women may hug each other, even in the absence of romantic attachment, under the same conditions mentioned above for men. When in conversation with one another, Americans generally stand about half a meter apart and look each other in the eye frequently but not constantly. The distance that is maintained between people in conversation can vary; for example, a larger distance is likely to be maintained between people who have a clear superior-subordinate relationship, while a lesser distance is common between peers who are good friends. You should be aware that, under most circumstances, people in the U.S. instantly are made to feel very uncomfortable by others who stand very close to them. A common exception occurs on public transportation vehicles during the crowded «rush hours», but in these cases the people who are very close to one another are careful to completely ignore each other. Americans also feel very uncomfortable when dealing with others who look constantly into their eyes; on the other hand, they feel suspicious about others who never look into their eyes. In general, the rules for eye contact seem to be these: When you are listening, you should look into the speaker's eyes (or at least at his or her face) fairly constantly, with an occasional glance away. When you are speaking, you are freer to let your eyes wander as you talk, but you should look at the eyes of the listener from time to time to receive acknowledgement that he or she is listening and understands the points you are making. Some visitors to the U.S. are shocked, insulted, or perplexed by certain common non-verbal behaviors of Americans. Here are a few facts for you to keep in mind: (1) Americans have no taboo of any kind associated with the left hand; they are as likely to touch you or to hand you objects with the left hand as with the right hand. (2) 259 Americans have no negative association with the soles of the feet or bottom of the shoes; they do not feel it necessary to prevent others from seeing these areas. (3) A common way to greet small children in the U.S. is to pat them on the top of the head. (4) People in the U.S. often point with their index finger and wave it around as they make important points in conversation. (5) One beckons to another person to come closer by holding the hand with the palm and fingers up, not down. (6) Americans show respect and deference for another person by looking him or her in the face, not by looking down. (7) Informal, relaxed postures are commonly assumed by U.S. people when they are standing or sitting, even when they are conversing with others; lack of formal posture is not a sign of inattention or disrespect. (8) Americans are uncomfortable with silence; they expect to talk rather constantly when in the presence of others. (9) The doors of rooms usually are left open unless there is a specific reason to close them. (10) Punctuality is important to many U.S. people; they become quite annoyed if forced to wait more than 15 minutes beyond the scheduled time for appointments. (11) People who see each other on a daily basis do not shake hands every time they encounter one another; they may not even greet each other on every encounter after the first one each day. (12) Smokers do not necessarily offer cigarettes to others whenever they light up. (13) When Americans offer food or drink, they expect the other person to say «yes» at once if the food is desired; they do not expect polite refusals first. 260 II. Answer the following questions: 1. What is the way to reduce misunderstandings between culturally different people? 2. Why do Americans avoid touching each other while communicating? 3. Do men shake their hands when greeting? 4. How do women behave in this situation? 5. Do Americans observe a distance when in conversation? 6. What are the rules for eye contact? 7. Which is the common way to greet children? 8. How do Americans show respect for another person? 9. What postures are assumed in conversing? 10.What is the most necessary quality to be valued by Americans? III. Find in the text the facts to characterize the following ideas: 1. American women are freer about touching each other. 2. The rules for people in some social circles have broadened. 3. The distance between people in conversation can vary. 4. Non-verbal behaviour among Americans has some definite peculiarities. IV. There are 13 facts for a stranger to keep in mind. Which ones do you think to be the most significant? Give your arguments. V. Speak on: 1. Male non-verbal behaviour in the American society. 2. Female non-verbal behaviour. 261 VI. Develop the following situations: 1. Your son is going to the appointment with an American businessman. What advice would you give him concerning his behaviour in the course of a talk? 2. You have just come from the USA. You were greatly perplexed by Americans' manners. You discuss their non-verbal signals with your friends. VII. Translate the following text in writing: The truth, however, is that with our human body language we are all creatures of habit. Unless we are drunk, drugged or temporarily insane, we stick to a remarkably fixed set of personal body actions that are as typical of each of us as our fingerprints. Whether we are smiling, shaking a fist, wiping our nose or putting on our shoes, we nearly always perform the movements in the same way every time. It takes an immense amount of effort for a great actor to adopt a body language that is entirely alien to his own. Most of us never try. And we would be hopeless at it if we did. For each of us, our body language is like a signature. So what exactly are the elements of this visual language of the body? The most extraordinary thing we do, as animals, is so familiar that we take it completely for granted: walking. Unlike any other mammal, we walk about all day long on our hind legs. Some other species may hop along on their hind legs and a few, like bears and gibbons, occasionally rear up and waddle clumsily forward but we are the only true mammalian bipedal walkers. Amazingly, specialists are still arguing over why we took this strange, vertical step during the course of our evolution. One idea comes from watching our closest living relatives, the chimpanzees. If they find themselves faced with the unusual task of having to carry too much food, they are forced to adopt a clumsy, vertical posture. When our ancient human ancestors first turned to hunting as a way of life, they must have faced the tricky problem of how to carry home the bacon. On all fours this would have been almost impossible and, to start with, the kill was probably consumed on the spot. But if the meat was to be 262 brought back to the safety of the home base, where it could be shared with the rest of the group, then carrying must have become a regular human chore. In a similar way, female food-gathering could have been improved by the simple invention of a container — a primitive bag or basket of some sort — which would have permitted the collecting and carrying home of large numbers of vegetable foods, such as berries, nuts, fruits and roots. A second idea sees the act of carrying as a later development. Our ancestors, it is argued, originally took to standing upright as a way of seeing over long grasses and peering into the distance. This would have given them a considerable advantage when searching for prey or keeping a look-out for predators. Or it could have been used merely to satisfy their curiosity. (From D. Morris «The Human Animal; BBC Books, 1994). Text 7 I. Read and translate the text: Ways to Control Stress and Make It Work for You People often think of stress as something external that intrudes into life. Actually, stress is an interaction between a life situation requiring readjustment and the person's ability to cope. It is the way people react to events rather than the events themselves, that causes stress. Everyone is familiar with those life-readjustment scales you see in magazines that rank events by degree of stress. The worst is death of a spouse, followed by divorce, sickness, taking out a mortgage and so on. The relation between stressful events and reaction to such events is complex. Epictetus 263 said centuries ago that we are not disturbed by things, but by our opinions about things. Some people experience a large objective amount of life stress and handle it well, while others don't. A person can look at a difficult situation as a half-empty glass or a halffull glass. Or in the Chinese word, crisis is composed of two characters - one means danger and the other opportunity. That's a good way to look at potentially stressful situations. Suzanne Kobasa, a researcher at the University of Chicago, talks about three characteristics of a stresshardy personality - challenge, commitment and control. Stress-hardy people view a potentially difficult event as something challenging rather than something to be feared. Fear may be at the basis of all kinds of stress. When the mind perceives fear, a coordinated system of events takes place that has been termed the fight-or-flight response. Quite often, however, people perceive danger where there is none. They are not reacting to the reality of a situation as much as to associations they carry around internally based on past experience. They worry about what the future will bring, how long will I live, how will I pay the bills. Such fears produce a chronic fight-or-flight response. Constant arousal of the nervous system can also contribute to heart disease and other diseases. But there are some active ways to relieve stress that stress-prone people can take into consideration. One way is through meditation and relaxation training, evoking what Dr. Herbert Benson has called «the relaxation response». Physiologically, it's the polar extreme of the fight-or-flight response. Roughly 70 per cent of the physical problems that bring people to their doctor have to do with stress and lifestyle. By evoking the relaxation response people can participate in their own well-being, and in some cases reduce medical problems such as high blood pressure, headache and other conditions that are caused by or worsened by stress. It also gives people a sense of control and has been found to be very useful in reducing anxiety. 264 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. II. Answer the following questions: How is stress defined? What are its causes? Is the relation between stressful events and reaction to such events simple or complex? What is a good way to look at a difficult situation? What characteristics does Kobasa give in accordance with a stress-hardy personality? What is at the basis of all kinds of stress? What do people worry about? What can such fears produce? What are the ways of overcoming stress? III. Explain, please: •what Epictetus meant by saying «we are not disturbed by things, but by our opinions about things»; •crisis is composed of two characters - one means danger and the other opportunity; •fears produce a fight-or-flight response; •the meaning of the relaxation response. IV. Say whether you often experience stress, and if so, in what situation? V. Give your own recommendations to control stress. VI. Say as much as you can on: 1. Suzanne Kobasa's research. 2. Stress-hardy and stress-prone people. 3. The ways to control stress. 265 VII. Read the text and render it: Firms Urged to Recognize Stress Factor Stress-related illness is a management rather than a medical problem, doctors claimed at a conference in London. The conference of «Stress and the City» was told that 60 per cent of absence through work was caused by stress-related illness. On the average 100 million working days a year are lost because people cannot face going to work. Stress levels may become even more higher as employees will have to adapt to extensive changes and the new problems of high technology virtually overnight. It has been mentioned at the conference that nearly two thirds of the firms regard stress as the main health issue affecting their employees. The poll, conducted among senior managers also disclosed that the middle managers from 30 to 50 are believed to be more vulnerable to stress than senior managers. But although firms are increasingly worried about the effects of stress, few are doing anything constructive about it, very few employed occupational physicians specializing in emotional factors. Stress manifested itself in drinking problems or heart disease and faces three fundamental occupational dilemmas. Firstly, when an employee is overloaded or underloaded at work, where there is too much or too little responsibility. Secondly, when someone's role is ambiguous or unclear. Thirdly, people are under stress when they have to compete with others in the same organization for the resources necessary to achieve their objectives. All these problems create the gap between a person's abilities, training, aptitude, on the one hand, and the demand made on him, on the other. People need help when they move from one job to another. Change often makes people feel worried, distressed or uncomfortable. 266 Notes: employee — служащий; overnight - быстро; to be vulnerable to - быть уязвимым; poll - опрос общественного мнения. VIII. Read the text and give its general idea: Stress Control People wonder whether it is possible to influence stress situations and to control them. Before answering this question it is necessary to decide which sort of stress requires control. Hans Selye, a Canadian scientist who invented the term «stress», offered a differentiation between «distress» and «eustress». The first is harmful for human health. The second is a good companion in any productive activity and presents no danger. It is closely linked with efforts to overcome difficulties, to solve routine and professional problems. Distress begins as a result of refusing to try and solve difficult situations in life. Distress must be controlled. Outside factors or information which cause stress are divided into physical and psychic. The first, with the exception of gravitational and climatic fluctuations or injuries, rarely lead to distress. Distress is mainly caused by conflicts between the requirements and wishes of a person and the possibility of meeting or fulfilling them. Normally they are associated with outward obstacles or the resistance and counteractions of other people. Moreover, they are more frequently associated with the fact that the requirements of a person run counter to the requirements of other people, and the person in question fails to find a compromising solution within his or her internal conflict. This happens, for example, when we can attain a goal only 267 on the condition that it leads, it would seem to us, to a loss of self-respect or respect of our environment. In most cases distress originates due to a lack of communication culture and inadequate perception. If not, then due to the inability to understand the desires and wishes of other people and coordinate them with our own. There is no doubt that the best preventive treatment of psychic and emotional stress is correct upbringing and higher standards of communication culture. This is a difficult task which takes a long time. It does not exclude more concrete efforts aimed at increasing individual resistance to stress by those who are already in need of it. Until recently, various means of reducing emotional tension were used in the «struggle against stress». These means include medical preparations (tranquilizers) and numerous forms of relaxation, from self-suggestion to selfregulation techniques used by Yoga. Correct regime and diet are also important. The reduction of emotional tension which has caused distress does not lead to adaptation. It only can, at the most, help develop a more sensible view of the situation that has given rise to the stress. However, if there is no other cure, there will be no real stress control and the adaptation is temporary. As a rule, as soon as a patient stops taking medicine and gives up self-suggestion, the unpleasant sensations return. It is clear why: in the early stages of the «struggle against stress», the patient tried to solve his problems rationally by himself, «with a cool head», but lost this ability precisely because he was unable to cope with the situation. Calm achieved with the help of tranquilizers and relaxation just brings him back to the stage he has already passed. Radically solving the problems demands more than a cool head. It calls for changing the strategy of solving the problem, of revaluating all the values, of developing a fundamentally new approach to the concrete situation, life in general, and oneself as an individual. None of the above-mentioned methods can help achieve such a state. Only such an ability can guarantee a resistance to stress in the future. 268 In order to understand what such an approach implies we have to go back to the conditions that created «insoluble» conflicts. The refusal to find a solution and the condition of distress arise when and where a person fails to see a way out of an impasse, fails to find a means of solving conflicts within himself or contradictions with external conditions. However, objectively situations are rarely really insoluble. In the majority of cases they are qualified like this from a subjective point of view. Even when events in one's life seem fatal, the person in question still has a chance to reconsider his attitude to these events, and minimize their significance. Such a reassessment of the situation, helped by different methods of psychotherapy, amounts to the ability to see new aspects of the situation, and to understand what a relatively modest place the conflict occupies in the infinitely rich world of human emotions and relations. In this understanding a great role is played by warmhearted human relations and human concern, and one of the chief tasks of psychotherapeutists is to form such relations with their patients and between the patients and people surrounding them - at home and at work, and at the beginning among patients themselves. In Russia, and in other countries, group psychotherapy occupies an increasing place. In its process patients are brought together by reciprocal sympathies and common worries. To develop a broad, unbiassed and flexible attitude to problems, contacts with art and literature are indispensable. The greatest works of literature reflect the world and life in all their aspects. People who have read about them are already protected in a way from a narrow and unproductive approach to events. This is why art as a «cure» is regarded as one of the most promising methods of preventing and removing stress. An active position in life, active perception of art, developing taste, personal participation in everything that contributes to broadening horizons and increasing physical and intellectual abilities - all this is a prerequisite for stress resistance and for effective individual efforts in shifting distress to eustress, unless the first has assumed 269 an absolute character. In the latter case medical aid is necessary. The task of medicine is to achieve control over stress and to turn it from a force of destruction into a creative force. Vadim ROTENBERG. D. Sc. (Medicine), Vyacheslav ALEXANDROV, Cand. Sc. (Medicine). IX. Find the answers to the following questions: 1. Who has invented the term «stress»? 2. What two kinds of stress does he distinguish? 3. Where does their differentiation lie? 4. What stress may be controlled? 5. In what way are outside factors of stress divided? 6. What factors lead to distress? 7. When does stress originate in most cases? 8. What is the best preventive treatment of psychic and emotional stress? 9. What means of reducing emotional tension were used? 10.Does the reduction of emotional tension lead to adaption? 11.What docs radically solving the problems call for? 12.What is one of the chief tasks of psychotherapeutists? 13.What recommendations to resist to stress are given? 1. 2. 3. 4. X. Complete the following sentences: There are two types of stresses ... . Distress begins as ... . Factors causing stress are divided into ... . Distress is mainly caused by ... . 270 5. 6. 7. 8. In most cases it originates due to ... . Struggle against stress includes ... . The most promising method of preventing stress is .... Prerequisite for stress resistance is ... . XI. What do you think whether: 1. there are insoluble situations; 2. the best preventive treatment of emotional stress is correct upbringing; 3. proper communication culture is a means of reducing stress; 4. it is possible to solve professional problems under stress; 5. you can easily resolve conflicts; 6. self-suggestion is a good technique for overcoming stresses; 7. there is a chance to guarantee a resistance to stress in future. ХII. Review the article; use the questions as a plan. ХIII. Prepare a report on the theme "How to Cope with a Stressful Situations. XIV. Say as much as you can on Hans Selye. XV. Look at the picture and comment on: FOREHEAD. Frowning stresses face muscles and often causes wrinkles. 271 MIND FOREHEA EYES D JAM ---------NECK + SHOULDER S WRISTS STOMAC H Cure: Train yourself to stop. Relax by raising brows and holding the tension for five seconds. Relax. Frown hard, then hold for five seconds. Smooth out brow. Rest eyelids together. Focus on all tension leaving your forehead. JAM. Jam tension can make you grind your teeth when you're asleep. Cure: Gently open your mouth wide. Exhale while slowly closing it. Lightly massage the points where your jam hinges on to the head. Repeat 10 times. Place fist beneath chin. Open mouth against light pressure. Repeat 12 times. LUNGS. Anxiety makes you breathe unevenly, leading to stress and panic attacks. Cure: Start by gently pressing your stomach to expel air. Breathe slowly and deeply, pulling air into lungs using the whole of your diaphragm. Place one hand on your stomach and feel it move as you breathe. HANDS. Palms can get sweaty and cold. 272 Cure: Sit quietly and concentrate on one of your hands becoming warmer (the right hand if you are right-handed). Imagine holding it in front of a fire as it gets hotter. This will relax you by bringing warm blood from deep inside your body back to the skin's surface. BLADDER. Dehydration is a frequent cause of mental and physical stress, especially in air-conditioned offices. Cure: Try to keep your urine as pale as possible by drinking eight glasses of water a day (unless you have medical advice to the contrary). Avoid diuretics like tea, coffee and alcohol which will increase dehydration and make you go to the loo more often. MIND. Worrying will stop you from concentrating. Cure: Sit or lie down. Close your eyes. Take five deep slow breaths. Feel the tension flowing from your body. Imagine yourself on a desert island. Smell the flowers. See the tranquil blue ocean. If any worries come to mind, write them on the sand and watch the tide washing them away. EYES. Close work, especially on computer screens, stresses eyes and their muscles. Cure: Try to take regular breaks and refocus your eyes on distant views. Rub hands briskly together. Place lightly over your eyes and forehead and feel the heat from your palms ease away all tension. NECK+SHOULDERS. Hunched posture when seated can lead to aching muscles and tension headaches. Cure: Always try to keep shoulders relaxed. Use cues such as a ringing phone or a red traffic light to focus on any tension here. Roll your shoulders with an exaggerated rowing action, three times clockwise, then three times anticlockwise. Finally, shrug hard three times in a row. WRISTS. Caused by computer work or repetitive actions. Cure: Stretch each hand in turn, wrist uppermost, hand open. Bend back towards forearm. Rotate clockwise as far as possible, but don't twist your arm. Make a sudden fist, 273 then relax all muscles in your hand. Rotate hand back to starting point. Repeat three times and do the same with left hand. STOMACH. Stress can churn up your tummy and make you lose your appetite or binge on comfort food. Cure: Eat something when you feel stressed, but swap chocolate bars and sugary buns for fruit, nuts or cheese. This will help trigger the body's natural relaxation response. FEET. This is a focus of stress and tension for people whose job involves standing or walking around. Cure: Take off your shoes. Sit down and place your right ankle over your left knee. Holding your foot in one hand, rub the sole applying firm pressure. Repeat with the left foot. XVI. Translate the text in writing: The Language of the Body One of the best locations to study the body language is a politicall rally. Each speaker has already worked out his verbal message, usually a string of highly predictable platitudes calculated to gain him applause. But while he is mouthing his utterances, his hands are busy too. He will not be aware precisely what they are doing, merely that they are beating time to his statements and helping to underline them. If we ignore his words and focus exclusively on his hands, it soon becomes clear that he employs some major hand signals. If he is making a powerful point, he will clench his fist, as if about to punch an invisible opponent. If he is trying 274 to chop down a rival proposal, he switches instead to the hand-chop gesture, cutting down through the air as forcibly as possible with a flattened hand, its hard edge pointing down. With this action he transforms his hand into a symbolic axe. For those who wish to appear forceful, but not too violent, there is a slightly milder hand gesture - the semiclenched fist. With the thumb uppermost, on top of the bent forefinger, this half-fist is jerked in the air to emphasize point after point in the speaker's words. It is almost as if he is serving an invisible writ on his audience. This gesture is favoured by politicians. In a more dominant mood, the speaker introduces the palm-down hand posture, usually with a few slight downward movements. In this he is symbolically calming down his audience, as if it were composed entirely of unruly children. If he is less sure of himself, he uses the opposite hand signal, with the palm up. This is a gesture of the beggar, reaching out his hand for help. This particular gesture is universal and can even be seen in wild chimpanzees when begging for food from companions. If the speaker wishes his audience to embrace his ideas, he offers them a hint of an embrace in his hand gestures. He reaches out both hands, with his palms facing one another, as if trying to hug his audience at a distance. This is a favourite gesture of good communicators, who know the value of making their audience feel intimate with those on the platform. Finally there is one more special forefinger gesture much loved by the more aggressive politicians, that is a prodding forefinger, aimed straight towards the audience, as if stabbing them into submission. There are, of course, many other gesticulations employed during speech-making. Because both the speaker and the audience are primarily focussed on the words being spoken, none of these gestures is deliberately made or deliberately read. They form a sub-text which carries with it a mood communication system that imparts far more information than any of those present may 275 realize. They will transmit to the audience either a feeling that the speaker is not to be trusted or that he means what he says. If his verbal message is false or exaggerated, his gestures will give him away. They will make a «bad fit» with his words and leave the audience uncomfortable, without knowing quite why. If they match well with the spoken words, the listeners will unconsciously sense that harmony and will respond more positively. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: To dislike; to handle emotionally charged situations; to put forth a theory; to be aware of; to signify; to convey information; to realize; to acknowledge; to intend; to have an effect on; to indicate; to fail; to occur; to leak; to prefer; to insult; to involve; to touch; to apply the rules to; to keep in mind; to evoke. II. Give English equivalents for: Чувство; усталость; приобретенный; врожденный; недостаток интереса; научение; среда; эмоциональный заряд; невербальное общение; супруг; сообщение; двусмысленный; придавать значение; игнорировать; случайный взгляд; взаимодействие; вызывать стресс; испытывать стресс. 276 III. Make up a list of pleasant and unpleasant emotions. Choose them from the words below: Fear; anger; amusement; anticipation; annoyance; astonishment; grief; horror; anxiety; happiness; calmness; disgust; jealousy; elation; surprise; timidity; serenity; embarrassment; boredom; apprehension; sorrow. Give examples of those emotions that may comprize an emotional mixture. VI. Derive adjectives from the following nouns: Anger; jealousy; happiness; calmness; tension; hopefulness; anxiety; sorrow; emotion; ambiguity; confusion; excitement; stress; uncertainty. V. Explain in English the meanings of the following word-combinations: Emotional activity; emotional storm; outbreaks of rage; to show rapport; marital situation; interpersonal attitudes; to have an impact on; to provide a complete overview; to receive acknowledgement; fight-or-flight response; to be vulnerable. VI. Arrange the following words in pairs of synonyms: sorrow anger horror marital break-up surprise distressed rage grief calmness sign indicator relaxation message reaction divorce terror response serenity relief astonishment worried signal VII. Arrange the following words in pairs of antonyms: pleasantness amuse 277 restless inhibit bore dejection acceptance avoidance approval reveal understanding respect please disapproval displease unpleasantness approach misunderstanding restful disrespect exhibit canceal serenity withdrawal VIII. Make up word-combinations them into Russian: and translate Conscious effort / experience / activity / performance; body language / reaction / movement / posture; to cope with feelings / emotions / stress / situation; to show sympathy / support / respect / true feelings / rapport; to receive approval / disapproval / acknowledgement / emotional quale; to feel suspicious / uncomfortable / anxious / vulnerable. IX. Substitute the following word-combinations by those close in their meanings. Choose them from the list below: To have an effect on; to control stress; stress-hardy personality; to produce stress; to relieve stress; stress level; to feel worried; to inhibit an emotional response; to be conscious of; to put forth a theory; to convey information; body language; inborn responses. Stress-prone personality; degree of stress; to be aware of; nonverbal language; to have an impact on; to release stress; to feel distressed; to put forward a theory; innate reactions; to handle stress; to reduce stress; to suppress an emotional reaction; to pass information. 278 X. Make up a list of characterize: •altruistic emotions; •sympathetic emotions; •disinterested emotions; •nonverbal communication; •stress experience; •relaxation training. word-combinations to XI. What would you feel if...: a) you failed your driving test; b) you passed your exam after two re-examinations; c) you lost your purse; d) you won the first prize; e) you quarrelled with your parents; f) you heard bad news. XII. Make up your own sentences with the following words and word-combinations: To exhibit controlled behaviour; to bore; to handle a situation; to face smth or smb; to fail; to keep in mind; to experience stress; to feel dejected; to put forth an idea; to displease smb. XIII. Fill in the blanks with the words below: 1. The chief aim of Wundt and his students was to discover the ingredients of ...... 2. Individuals try to adapt to the conditions of their social 3. Subjects used an extraordinary different... to problem. 4. New and more efficient techniques for investigating ...... people are being developed. 5. Children who have good relations with parents and siblings ... more readily to other children. 6. The rate of ... and the degree of motivation are seen to be closely related. 7. The experimenters have found that... makes subjects take longer to react. 279 8. In the early months infants appear to experience little beyond delight and ... . 9. James ......... another scientist, Walter Cannon, to begin research under laboratory conditions in order to find out the nature of psychological changes that accompany emotion. 10. Any activity can bring ... — it depends on the individual and his attitude to the occasion. (Stress-prone; pleasure; conscious experience; anxiety; environment; to have an impact on; learning; approach; to adjust; distress). XIV. Translate the following sentences into Russian: 1. Psychotherapy is directed towards the aim of relieving the chronic emotional state, either by a process or reeducation in which the patient learns to re-evaluate the situations in which he finds himself. 2. By means of the psycho-analytic method proposed by S. Freud people become aware of the causes which produce the anxious attitude. 3. Control of the emotional responses, and in particular, handling stressful situations, becomes easier as one trains to realize objectively his experiences. 4. Voluntary control is of importance in our adjustment to social environment and we should learn to cope with manifestations of negative emotions. 5. Our emotions can be conveyed either in terms of spoken words or body language, that is, by means of hand gestures, facial expression, eye contact and so on. 6. One of the best locations to study hand gestures is a political rally. Each speaker has already worked out his verbal messages calculated to produce approval on pan of the public. 7. The more you travel the globe making observations of the language of the human body, the more optimistic you become. Everyone talks about the differences that 280 exist between nations and cultures and societies but, by contrast, there are so many similarities, so many shared emotions and common moods. 8. Smiling is perhaps our most important facial expression; by using the «happy mouth» as a greeting we can convey instant friendliness. 9. In partnerships and marriages, those who can't adapt, who think compromise is a dirty word, who are convinced that a person is either good or bad; right or wrong, have a slim chance of success. 10. American psychologists Gottman and Krokoff found that in the marital situation those spouses who could give each other «positive strokes» and who supported and appreciated each other's talents and qualities, were more likely to survive. XV. Comment on the quotation: A world-renowned zoologist and psychologist Desmond Morris said, «Human beings are animals. We are sometimes monsters, sometimes magnificent, but always animals. We may prefer to think of ourselves as fallen angels, but in reality we are risen apes.» 1. 2. 3. 4. XVI. Translate the following sentences into English: On испытывал постоянный страх в присутствии этого человека. Если испытываешь желание достичь определенной цели, исполнение лучше, чем когда такого желания нет. Психолога интересует, какое влияние окружающая среда оказывает на внутренний мир человека, его мысли и чувства. Настроение — длительное эмоциональное состояние, которое придает определенную эмоциональную окраску другим переживаниям, а также мыслям и действиям человека. 281 5. Безработица продуцирует психологический и эмоциональный стресс, состоящий из 4-х стадий: паники, вины (я ничего не стою), депрессии и злости на босса и весь мир. 6. Чтобы справиться со стрессом, следует осознать, что есть ситуации более уязвимые, чем безработица, такие, как развод и смерть. 7. Вербальное и невербальное общение составляют важную часть взаимодействия между людьми. 8. Снижение эмоционального напряжения не ведет к адаптации, оно может только способствовать более разумному подходу к ситуации. 9. Соединение различных эмоций при различных уровнях напряжения объясняет разнообразие эмоционального опыта. 10. Американцы чувствуют себя неуютно, если их собеседник находится слишком близко от них. XVII. Agree or recommendations: disagree with the Phillip Hodson's ingredients happy, balanced relationship. following for a 1. Being able to say sorry - the next day. 2. Being able to wait for the other person to say sorry - the next day. 3. Having similar interests and quirks and complementary vices and virtues. 4. Wanting the other's good opinion. 5. Enjoying mutual silence/time off. 6. Giving each other permission to say the unpopular or voice anxieties. 7. Giving verbal encouragement, always. 8. Reading the other's moods. 9. Taking a second place often enough. 10. Being given first place often enough. 11. Learning each other's skills so each of you can be the other's back-up. 282 12. Sorting out money issues from day one. 13. Making all criticism constructive («I'd prefer this», instead of «You never do that.»). 14. Touching - especially if the relationship is going through a difficult patch. 15. Planning and having fun. 16. Being open-minded and adaptable to change and new ideas at the same rate. 17. Dragging a problem out by the teeth when necessary, in order to move it along. 18. Respecting the other's family, within reasonable limits. 19. Forgiving. 20. Learning how to enjoy domestic life. (We all end up in an armchair eventually.) XVIII. Do the following tests and check your scores: How much do you worry? Each one is followed by two possible responses: agree or disagree. Read each statement carefully and decide which response best describes how you feel. Then put a tick over the corresponding box. Respond to every statement and, if you aren't sure which response is more accurate, choose the one you feel is most appropriate. Don't read the scoring explanation before answering, and don't spend too long deciding. It's important that you answer each question as honestly as possible. 1.I will never lose my close friends. Agree A □ □ Disagree В 2. I am unattractive to many of the opposite sex. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 283 3. I never appear stupid to others. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 4. My future job prospects are not secure. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 5. My work is up to date. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 6. This country is in serious trouble. Agree A Disagree В □ 7. I open bills immediately. Agree A □ Disagree В □ □ 8. I might be a lot less healthy than I realise. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 9. The future will be Agree A □ Disagree В □ better than the past. 10. Something terrible could be about to happen. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 11. I shower and dress as quickly as my friends. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 12. I dislike touching people who are ill. Agree А □ Disagree В □ 13. I quickly forget my mistakes at work. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 14. I detest visiting hospitals. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 15. After locking a door, I do not return to check it. Agree А □ Disagree В □ 16. While on holiday I worry a lot about home. Agree А □ Disagree В □ 17. Human frailty is forgivable. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 18. I do it myself if 1 want it done well. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 284 19. I prefer eating out to staying in. Agree A □ Disagree В □ 20. I very rarely, if ever, use public toilets. Agree A □ Disagree В □ Find out how you scored Work out your score by adding up the numbers of As and Bs you have ticked. 16 or more Bs: high. You are scoring high on worrying. This means that, while you worry about the same sort of things as everyone else, you tend to worry for much longer. You are convinced that you are unable to do much to change your fate, while also dreading what it might hold. One way of tackling anxiety is to investigate what you can do to resolve the problem. And remember that chronic worry might be a worse fate than your current fears. 10 to 15 Bs: average. You aren't quite as worried as higher scorers, but your tendency to judge yourself, your concern over time and your perfectionism all combine for a stressful way of life. In fact, your performance at all things would improve if you worried less — although you believe that if you stop worrying, you won't do as well. It's true you might be able to avoid problems by anticipating them, but only if your concerns are realistic. Unrealistic worries are those which none of your friends or family understands or shares. 6 to 10 Bs: low. You are fairly free from worry and are not preoccupied with your health in the same way as chronic worriers. But there are still days when you are apprehensive about finances and, perhaps, wider subjects like politics and current affairs. One aspect of your tendency to worry is that you frequently avoid the opportunity to take control of your life, and so you worry about how things will turn out. 0 to 5 Bs: very low. 285 You are scoring low on worrying, which means you are a lot less anxious than higher scores about health, money, relationships, jobs and family. While this means your life is more relaxed, the downside is that you are often unprepared for the worst. Worrying about something allows us to anticipate and prepare for an otherwise unforeseen problem. For those who do not worry enough, life is more full of unpleasant surprises. Are you a self-saboteur? Each of the statements below is followed by two responses: agree or disagree. Read each statement carefully, decide which response best describes how you feel, then tick the corresponding box. Please respond to every statement. If you are not completely sure which response is more accurate, tick the one which you feel is most appropriate. Do not read the scoring explanation before filling out the questionnaire. Do not spend too long on each statement. It is important that you answer each question as honestly as possible. 1.I hate being busy all day 2. On balance, I fail more than I succeed 3. I especially like unremitting pampering 4. I do not draw attention to my good work 5. Lots of fun is good for you 6 . What I do is better than what I am 7. I usually prefer being alone to company 8. I often feel trapped 9. Problems are almost never my fault 10. I am very self-sufficient A В В A A В В A A В В A A В В A A В В A 286 To find your score, add up the total number of Bs you have ticked. Ignore the number of As. Seven Bs or more. A high score on self-defeating: although you are humbly persevering, you also selfsabotage. You enjoy looking after others and are uncomfortable if someone is looking after you. You blame yourself when things go wrong in your work or in relationships, as you are self-sacrificing, self-deprecating and outwardly pleasing but inwardly defiant and angry. You need to learn respect for yourself by focusing on your positive qualities. Between 5 and 7 Bs. You don't self-sabotage quite as much as higher scorers, and so you feel deeply hurt if others try to take advantage of you. Nevertheless, endless worry over what others think about you ensures that you regularly cave in to their demands instead of putting own interests first. You are suspicious of those who go out of their way to help, and prefer to do things yourself rather than seek assistance. You have to learn that your masochism is a self defeating way of loving - it is the weapon of the weak. You need to become more comfortable with praise and to learn that not all compliments are phoney. Between 3 and 5 Bs. You are more confident than the typical self-saboteur and you believe you do some things better than anyone else - but you will stifle anger with superiors, who tend to bring out the groveller in you when you're in their presence, so you do have some masochistic streaks. You can be a help-rejecting complainer sometimes. You occasionally believe you are loved for what you do rather than what you are. Two Bs or under. You think suffering is usually needless and should be avoided but a dislike of personal sacrifices may hold your career or relationships back. You don't really enjoy looking after others, although you can do it temporarily. You may prefer making people squirm: there's an element of sadism here. You are unlikely to make the mistake of most self-handicappers - loving someone who gives no love in return- You may even find you do the reverse: form a relationship with a saboteur. 287 EXPRESSING YOUR FEELINGS Read the following and take it into account: Which of your feelings do you let other people know about? Which do you keep to yourself? Sometimes it's a good thing to say what you feel. At other times it's better to keep quiet about your feelings. Sometimes it's hard to know exactly what it is you do feel. At other times feelings are so strong they seem to overwhelm you. How often do you express what you feel? The stereotype of the English is that they are cold, reserved and unemotional. Compared with the extravagant French or the explosive Italians the English are an uptight lot. If they do feel anything they're not likely to let you know. It's a caricature but it has some truth in it. We grow up in a culture which tells us that it's good to control our feelings. We learn that it's best to restrain our warmth, our tears, our anger. We learn that it's better to be rational. But is it? What happens to feelings you don't express? Many people argue that they don't just disappear. They continue to exist under the surface and affect the way you feel and behave. Anger that you don't express to others can become anger that you turn against yourself. Fears that you don't talk about may make you timid in all things. You may put on a brave front but inside you're fearful and anxious. Hurts and disappointments that you've never cried over may make you protect yourself hard against any possible new hurt and become overcautious about getting close to others. 288 Would you try to answer all the questions asked in this short text? How is the stereotype of the English presented in the text? Do the following test. The following quiz looks at some feelings that are common to us all and some of the different ways that people react to them. Reactions can range from expressing the feeling spontaneously and directly to finding some way of denying that it exists at all. Choose the answer that is most often typical of you. 1. Anger When you feel angry, which of the following reactions would be most typical of you? A. Raising your voice or shouting at the person you're angry with. B. Explaining quietly why you're angry. C. Trying not to be angry (perhaps because you think it's wrong or unfair). D. Telling yourself you've not really got anything to be angry about. 2. Feeling sad or upset When you feel sad or upset, which of the following reactions would be most typical of you? A. Crying about it to someone else. B. Talking to a friend about what's upset you. C. Going away and crying on your own. D. Telling yourself you don't really feel upset or sad or that you don't really have anything to feel upset or sad about. 3. Feeling frightened or worried When you feel frightened or worried, which of the following reactions would be most typical of you? 289 A. Trembling, shaking or crying as you tell someone how you feel. B. Talking to a friend about the things that are frightening or worrying you. C. Going away on your own and crying about it or feeling bad. D. Telling yourself you don't really feel frightened or worried or that you don't really have anything to feel frightened or worried about. 4. Feeling embarrassed or ashamed When you feel embarrassed or ashamed, which of the following reactions would be most typical of you? A. Laughing in embarrassment as you try to explain to someone why you feel embarrassed or ashamed. B. Telling a friend later about how you felt embarrassed or why you felt so ashamed. C. Swallowing hard and wishing the floor would open so that you could disappear from sight. D.Pretending you're not in the least embarrassed or ashamed and putting an arrogant or cocky face on it. 5. Feeling happy When you are feeling happy, which of the following reactions would be most typical of you? A. Laughing and smiling, telling someone how you feel. B. Analysing to yourself or others the reasons why you're happy. C. Going around with an inner glow. D. Telling yourself this can't last, it's not really true or it's not right to be happy when others aren't. 6. Feeling disgust or dislike When you feel disgust or dislike, which of the following reactions would be most typical of you? A. Screwing up your face, grimacing as you say what you feel. B. Telling your friend how much you dislike or feel disgust about something or someone. C. Controlling your disgust or dislike. D. Pretending that nothing's happened, ignoring the things or people that make you feel this way. 290 7. Feeling warmth or affection for others When you feel warmth or affection for others, which of the following reactions would be most typical of you? A. Touching, holding, embracing, kissing other people. B. Talking to a friend about the way you feel. C. Deciding not to express how you feel, perhaps because you're afraid you might get hurt. D. Telling yourself it's sloppy and sentimental to feel like this about people and pushing the feelings away. Do you express your feelings directly? The a statements show ways in which feelings can be expressed directly. You feel something and show it. Do you talk about your feelings? The b statements show ways in which feelings can be partially expressed by talking about them. Talking about your feelings can help you get clear about what you feel. You can get support. You may start to build up the confidence to express feelings more directly. Do you keep your feelings to yourself? The с statements are about trying to control your feelings. Sometimes you may feel it's best to keep quiet about what you feel. You may not want to make yourself vulnerable before others. Or you may decide that expressing your feelings would be destructive to someone else. If you always keep your feelings to yourself, however, you may find that they start to come out in other ways. Do you deny your feelings? The d statements are about ways of denying your feelings altogether. You may think they're not nice. Or you may be frightened of their strength. Again, these denied feelings may emerge in other ways. 291 Look through the following list of feeling words count how many you regularly use. PLEASANT UNPLEASANT Amazed Afraid Amused Angry Astonished Anxious Calm Bored Confident Broken-hearted Contented Depressed Cool Disappointed Delighted Distressed Enjoyment Frightened Enthusiastic Frustrated Excited Furious Fascinated Guilty Friendly Hate Grateful Helpless Happy Hurt Hopeful Impatient Interested Jealous Loving Lonely Optimism Mean Peaceful Miserable Pleasant Sad Proud Sorry Quiet Surprised Satisfied Terrified Sensitive Tired Surprised Troubled Tender Uncomfortable Thankful Unhappy Touched Upset Warm Worried 292 CONSUMER BEHAVIOUR UNIT IX Text I I. Read and translate the text: Personality and Consumer Behaviour The word «personality» comes from the Latin term persona, which means «actor's face mask». In a sense, one's personality is the 'mask' worn as a person moves from situation to situation during a lifetime. Over the years many different definitions of personality have been proposed by psychologists. One of the best from the consumer researcher's point of view states that «Personality is the distinctive patterns of behaviour, including thoughts and emotions, that characterize each individual's adaptation to the situations of his or her life.» At a general level, the concept of personality has a number of characteristics. First, to be called a personality, a person's behaviour should show some degree of consistency - that is, the behaviours must show a consistency that distinguishes them from a person's random responses to different stimuli. Personality characteristics are relatively stable across time rather than short-term in nature. Second, the behaviours should distinguish the person from others. Thus, in the definition of personality just presented, the phrase «distinctive patterns of behavior» connotes the idea that a personality characteristic cannot be shared by all consumers. 293 A third characteristic of personality is that it interacts with the situation. One type of situation is the social context in which purchases occur. Researchers have found that consumers are differently depending upon whether or not other people are observing their purchase behaviour. This situational variable may interact with a personality characteristic that distinguishes people on their tendency to conform to social pressures when making purchases. A scale, called the ATSCI (attention to social comparison interaction), has been developed to measure this disposition to conform to others. In most circumstances people go shopping with plans to make certain purchases. Could the social situation interact with the tendency to conform to others so as to impact the extent that the consumer fails to make the intended purchases? One can predict that a person who has a low tendency to conform will tend to make her desired purchases whether or not she shops alone or with a group. In contrast, a person with a high tendency to conform will make many more changes in purchase plans when shopping with a group than when shopping alone. A fourth aspect of the study of personality is that it cannot be expected to accurately predict an individual's behaviour on one specific occasion from a single measure of personality. Personality characteristics are not rigidly connected to specific types of behaviour. Thus one cannot predict how many cans of peas a person will buy or the type of furniture a person will own by looking at specific personality characteristics. The choice of a particular brand depends upon the interaction of personality, the situation, and the product. Within each of these categories, a variety of interacting forces may operate. Thus the consumer may be under time pressure, may be buying a gift to be given at a social occasion, or may be in a lousy mood. At the same time, the person may be very low in dogmatism (when people reveal rigid and inflexible behaviour) but also very high in self-confidence. The study indicates that behaviour must be measured on multiple occasions to assess personality-behaviour relationships. 294 1. 2. 3. 4. II. Characteristics of personality: Behaviour shows consistency. Behaviours distinguish one person from another. Behaviours interact with the situation. Single measures of personality cannot predict specific behaviours, such as which brand of car a consumer will purchase. For consumer researchers four distinct approaches to personality have had an impact on developing managerial strategy. They are psychoanalytic theory, trait theory, social-psychological theory , and self-concept theories. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. III. Answer the following questions: What is the origin of the word «personality»? What is the definition of personality? Can everyone be called a personality? What characteristics permit a person to be called a personality? How does a social situation influence the consumer's choice? What is the difference between a person with a low tendency to conform and with a high tendency to conform? What does the choice of a particular brand depend on in the long run? What are the approaches to personality that consumer researchers apply to? IV. Ask your partner: 1. whether he agrees or disagrees with the definition of personality given in the text; 2. if he could say something to add details; 3. how people differ when making purchases; 4. what scale has been developed to measure the disposition to conform to others; 295 5. whether it is possible or impossible to predict accurately an individual's behaviour; 6. what main characteristics of personality are presented in the text. V. Divide the text into logical parts. Make up an outline of the text. VI. Speak on the major aspects of the problem raised. VII.Read the text and say whether you support or reject Freud's theory: «The Structure o f the Personality» According to Freud, the personality results from the clash of three forces - the id, ego, and superego. Present at birth, the id represents the physiological drives that propel a person to action. These drives are completely unconscious and form a chaotic cauldron of seething excitations. The id requires instant gratification of its instincts. As such, it operates on the pleasure principle. That is, the id functions to move a person to obtain positive feelings and emotions. The ego begins to develop as the child grows. The function of the ego is to curb the appetites of the id and help the person to function effectively in the world. As Freud stated, the ego stands for «reason and good sense while the id stands for untamed passions». Freud viewed the ego as operating on the reality principle. The reality principle helps the person to be practical and to avoid the extremes of behaviour to which the id and superego can push an individual. 296 The superego can be understood as the conscience or «voice within» of a person that echoes the morals and values of parents and society. Only a small portion of it is available to the conscious mind. It is formed during middle childhood through the process of identification, according to Freud. The superego actively opposes and clashes with the id, and one role of the ego is to resolve these conflicts. The focus on the conflict between the id and superego is what classifies the psychoanalytic view of personality as a conflict theory. VIII. Summarize the contents of the text. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: to show some degree of consistency; to share a personality characteristic; to conform to social pressures; to measure a disposition; to be under time pressure; to be apt to; to assess relationships; to have an impact on; to curb appetites; to avoid the extremes of behaviour. Use the above word-combinations in the sentences of your own. II. Give English equivalents for: Личность; модель поведения; индивидуальная адаптация; ответ на стимулы; личностные характеристики; взаимодействие; ситуационная переменная; социальное давление; совесть; мораль и ценности; разрешать конфликты; психоаналитический взгляд. III. Give as many word-combinations with the word «personality» as possible. IV. Find in the texts synonyms for: To offer; adjustment; to differentiate; to affect; to foretell; option; setting; self-assurance; to estimate; to be conscious of; people; to receive. 297 VII. Suggest prepositions used after the following verbs: To adapt... the situation; to depend ... observation; to interact ... a personality; to conform ... social pressures; to be connected ... specific types of behaviour; to be ... time pressure; to contribute ... low correlations; to have an impact ... development; to be aware ... the driving forces. VI. Insert the above word-combinations into the following sentences: l. When conducting psychotherapy, psychologists understand that their clients' statements ... specific types of behaviour. 2. In the unfamiliar setting it is rather difficult to ... the situation. 3. Social environment and family patterns of behaviour have ... development of a child. 4. When you ... time pressure and the deadline is approaching you feel anxiety. 5. The theoretical conclusions ... very much ... observation. 6. How to ... a personality is a science to be learnt. 7. You should take into consideration the driving forces and ... of them all the time. 8. Taboos are necessary in our lives to ... social pressures. VII. Develop the following situations: 1. What present would you choose for your friend's birthday when you are under time pressure? 2. How would you act if on coming home you found out the defect on the purchased item? 3. What do you feel when being at the shop you are offerred an assistance in choosing any thing by the shopgirl? 298 Text 2 I. Read and translate the text: Psychoanalytic Theory Sigmund Freud's psychoanalytic theory of personality has had a major impact on our understanding of our human makeup. Freud argued that the human personality results from a dynamic struggle between inner physiological drives (such as hunger, sex, and aggression) and social pressures to follow laws, rules, and moral codes. Furthermore, Freud proposed that individuals are aware of only a small portion of the forces that drive their behaviour. From his perspective, humans have a conscious, preconscious, and unconscious mind. This idea — that much of what propels humans to action is a part of the unconscious mind and not available for scrutiny — revolutionized the perception of the human personality. Psychoanalytic thought had a major impact on marketing in the 1950s. Advertising firms hired psychoanalysts to help develop promotional themes and packaging to appeal to the unconscious minds of consumers. Psychoanalytic theory emphasized the use of dreams, of fantasy, and of symbols to identify the unconscious motives behind a person's actions. Marketers hoped that they could turn the tables and use symbols and flights of fantasy to propel people to buy products. As noted, Freud's theory stresses the importance of fantasy to the human psyche. Advertisers frequently attempt to move consumers to fantasize about using the product or the consequences of using the product. A number of symbols exist in psychoanalytic theory that could be used by marketers. The psychoanalytic approach to personality has had the greatest impact on consumer behaviour through the research methods developed by Sigmund Freud and his 299 followers. They developed projective techniques to assist psychologists in identifying the unconscious motives that spur people to action. Examples of the projective techniques include word association tasks, sentence completion tasks, and thematic apperception tests (TATs). (TATs are ambiguous drawings about which people are asked to write stories.) Freud's major therapeutic tool was to have people lie on a couch and relax both physically and psychologically. The therapist helped them to bring down their defenses to understand more of their unconscious motivations. Later, psychologists began to bring people together for group therapy. These two approaches have been translated by marketers into the use of depth interviews and focus groups. Depth interviews are long, probing, «one-on-one» interviews undertaken to identify hidden reasons for purchasing products and services. Focus groups employ long sessions in which five to ten consumers are encouraged to talk freely about their feelings and thoughts concerning a product or service. II. Answer the following questions: 1. What struggle takes place inside the human personality? 2. In what way has their mind been characterized? 3. What for did advertising firms hire psychologists? 4. What does psychoanalytic theory make use of in this respect? 5. What techniques were developed for this purpose? 6. What are these projective techniques? 7. What therapeutic tool did Freud use? 8. What approaches are applied in group therapy? 1. 2. 3. 4. III. Complete the following sentences: The human personality results from ... Psychoanalytic theory has a major impact on ... Psychoanalytic theory emphasized the use of ... The projective techniques include ... 300 5. The major therapeutic tool was to ... 6. Marketers use interviews of two kinds ... IV. What is your personal opinion of the projective techniques suggested by Freud? Are they useful and productive or useless? Give your arguments. V. Give the general idea o f the text. VI. Explain what is understood by: 1. human makeup; 2. physiological drives; 3. social pressures; 4. moral codes; 5. projective techniques; 6. thematic apperception tests; 7. depth interviews; 8. focus groups. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: Physiological drives; social pressures; conscious mind; pleasure principle; reason and good sense; untamed passions; extremes of behaviour; conscience; morals and values; unconscious motives; human psyche; advertisers; marketers; approach; research methods; projective techniques; ambiguous drawings; therapeutic tool; depth interviews. II. Give English equivalents for: Оказывать воздействие; соблюдать законы; получать положительные эмоции; обуздать аппетит; избегать крайности; разрешать конфликт; нанимать психоаналитиков; разработать методику; проводить интервью; выявлять причины; поощрять. 301 III. Find in the text antonyms for: To be unconscious of; to suppress; displeasure; to get rid of; to approach; to dismiss; to sell; insignificance; to experience tension; surface reasons; to discourage. IV. Translate the Russian phrases in the brackets: Psychoanalytic theory had an impact on: (понимание имиджа; рекламу; маркетинг; поведение потребителя; подсознательные мотивы). V. Make up your own sentences with the expression «to have an impact on». VI. Could you say what social factors have a major impact on your living standards? VII. A role-play: You are a sociologist. You would like to understand what has a major impact on the customer's choice. What possible questions you could ask. The first one is made up for you: What do you rely on — a price or a quality? Text 3 1. Read and translate the text: Trait Theory The trait theory approach to personality attempts to classify people according to their dominant characteristics or traits. A trait is any characteristic in which one person differs from another in a relatively permanent and consistent way. Trait theories attempt to describe people in 302 terms of their predispositions on a series of adjectives. As such, a person's personality would be described in terms of a particular combination of traits. One of the problems of trait theories is the huge number of traits that can be used to describe people. Here is a list of traits that could be used to describe a person: Personality Traits Identified by Cattel 1. Reserved versus outgoing 2. Dull versus bright 3. Unstable versus stable 4. Docile versus aggressive 5. Serious versus happy-go-lucky 6. Expedient versus conscientious 7. Shy versus uninhibited 8. Tough-minded versus tender-minded 9. Trusting versus suspicious 10. Practical versus imaginative 11. Unpretentious versus polished 12. Self-assured versus self-reproaching 13. Conservative versus experimenting 14. Group-dependent versus self-sufficient 15. Undisciplined versus controlled 16. Relaxed versus tense The early studies had selected trait inventories used by psychologists for purposes that had nothing to do with buying behaviour. In addition, researchers using a trait approach needed to recognize the importance of situational factors and assess the validity and reliability of their measures. A recent study used a trait approach to study coupon proneness and value consciousness. The authors proposed that the tendency of consumers to redeem coupons is based in part on their view of coupons and in part on their value consciousness. Value consciousness was defined as the amount of concern the consumer has for the needsatisfying properties of the product in relation to the price paid for the product. In contrast, coupon proneness deals with the tendency of a consumer to buy because the 303 purchase offer includes a coupon, which such people view almost as an end in itself. The trait approach to personality can be highly valuable for market researchers, if used properly. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. II. Answer the following questions: What does the trait theory approach suggest? How is a trait defined? What do trait theories attempt to describe? What do you think of Cattel's 16 traits? How is a trait approach used in analyzing buying behaviour? How was value consciousness characterized? What does coupon proneness deal with? III. Complete the following sentences: 1. The trait theory classifies people ... . 2. A trait is defined as ... . 3. One of the problems of trait theories is ... . 4. Cattel's trait inventory consists of ... . 5. A recent study used a trait approach to ... . 6. Value consciousness was defined as ... . 7. Coupon proneness deals with ... . IV. If you were a market researcher, what traits from Cattel's inventory would you take into account first o f all? V. Agree or disagree: 1. I always buy the brand I like very much. 2. I am not very much concerned about prices. 3. I generally shop around for lower prices on products. 4. I compare the prices of different brands. 5. The quality of the item is the only thing that matters. 6. I enjoy using coupons. 7. I rely greatly on advertising while buying anything. VI. Characterize your experience while shopping. Do you feel trusting towards a shop-assistant or suspicious? Relaxed or tense? S h y or uninhibited? Reserved or outgoing? 304 WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: Trait; predisposition; inventory; coupon proneness; value consciousness; reliability; to redeem; amount of concern; need-satisfying properties; in relation to; if used properly. II. Give English equivalents for: Сдержанный; послушный; застенчивый; доверчивый; подозрительный; самоуверенный; напряжённый; по отношению к; не иметь ничего общего; оценивать; напротив; частично. III. Make up your own sentences with the following expressions: To have nothing to do with; to recognize the importance of; to view as an end; to deal with; to be highly valuable. Text 4 I. Read and translate the text: Social-Psychological and Cognitive Personality Theories Early personality theorists, such as psychoanalysts, tended to view personality as resulting from biological factors. Somewhat later, researchers began to view personality as resulting from the social nature of people and/or from the way they processed information. Social-Psychological Personality Theory. From a socialpsychological personality theory perspective, personality describes the consistent patterns of behaviour that people show with regard to social situations. A number of these theories have been used by marketers to help explain 305 buyer behaviour. For example, the personality concept of dogmatism is socially and psychologically based. The construct of dogmatism relates principally to the rigidity with which people approach the social environment. Other social-psychological personality theories used by marketers include gender schema theory, consumer anxiety, consumer ethnocentrism, and the compliance, aggression, detachment model. Cognitive Personality Theories. Psychologists have also developed cognitive personality theories, which focus on identifying individual differences in how consumers process and react to information. For example, researchers have attempted to assess consumer cognitive complexity. The goal is to measure the structural complexity of the organizing schemas used by different groups of consumers to code and store information in memory. Another approach involves investigating the extent to which different people engage in verbal versus information processing. A third cognitively oriented personality variable is called the need for cognition, a scale that assesses difference in the extent that people enjoy thinking and engaging in cognitive work. The need for cognition is particularly relevant to understanding the persuasion process. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. II. Answer the following questions: How did psychoanalysts try to view personality? What other attempts were made by the researchers? How is personality viewed from a social-psychological theory? What social-psychological theories were used by marketers? What do cognitive personality theories focus on? Could you give an example of such a theory? What other approaches were used in accordance with a cognitive personality theory? 306 III. Prove b y the facts from the text that: 1. There were many attempts to view personality. 2. The personality concept of dogmatism is socially and psychologically interpreted. 3. Cognitive personality theories were of different aspects. IV. Characterize in brief approaches to view personality from a social-psychological theory and cognitive personality theory. Can you state pros and cons o f each o f them? V. Read out « A Scale to Measure the Attention to Social Comparison Information» worked out on the basis o f the social-psychological theory, and say how you view your own behaviour in this respect: 1. It is my feeling that if everyone else in a group is behaving in a certain manner, this must be the proper way to behave. 2. I actively avoid wearing clothes that are not in style. 3. At parties I usually try to behave in a manner that makes me fit in. 4. When I am uncertain how to act in a social situation, I look to the behaviour of others for cues. 5. I try to pay attention to the reactions of others to my behaviour in order to avoid being out of place. 6. I find that I tend to pick up slang expressions from others and use them as part of my own vocabulary. 7. I tend to pay attention to what others are wearing. 8. The lightest look of disapproval in the eyes of a person with whom I am interacting is enough to make me change my approach. 9. It's important for me to fit into the group I'm with. 10. My behaviour often depends on how I feel others wish me to behave. 11. If I am the least bit uncertain as to how to act in a social situation, I look to the behaviour of others for cues. 12. I usually keep up with clothing style changes by watching what others wear. 307 13. When in a social situation, I tend not to follow the crowd, but instead behave in a manner that suits my particular mood at the time. VI. Would you suggest any other behaviour stereotypes in a social situation? VII. Read out « A Cognition Scale» developed on the basis o f a cognitive personality theory and say about your place in this scale: 1. I really enjoy a task that involves coming up with new solutions to problems. 2. I would prefer a task that is intellectual, difficult, and important to one that is somewhat important but does not require much thought. 3. I prefer just to let things happen rather than try to understand why they turned out that way. 4. The notion of thinking abstractly is not appealing to me. 5. I find it especially satisfying to complete an important task that required a lot of thinking and mental effort. 6. I like tasks that require little thought once I've learned them. 7. I prefer to think about small, daily projects to long-term ones. 8. I don't like to have the responsibilities of handling a situation that requires a lot of thinking. 9. I feel relief rather than satisfaction after completing a task that required a lot of mental effort. 10. I think best when those around me are very intelligent. 11. I prefer my life to be filled with puzzles that I must solve. 12. I would prefer complex to simple problems. 13. Simply knowing the answer rather than understanding the reasons for the answer to a problem is fine with me. 308 VIII. Could you suggest your own ideas concerning the above statements? IX. Translate the text below i n writing: Is There an Ethical Personality Characteristic? A psychologist named Lawrence Kohlberg developed a scale that measures people's level of cognitive moral development. He argued that advanced moral behaviour requires people to have the ability to employ logical reasoning. Kohlberg identified six stages through which people may progress in their moral reasoning. In the early stages people respond to moral rules based upon whether or not they will be punished for breaking them. In the middle stages people follow societally accepted standards, such as the «golden rule». Such people act to maintain order within a society and to contribute to the society. At the highest levels of moral development, people follow rules of behaviour that uphold societal and individual rights regardless of what majority opinion may indicate. They identify universal ethical principles that may supersede those upheld by a society. Recently, researchers surveyed marketing professionals to assess their level of cognitive moral development. In addition, they sought to identify variables that may be associated with higher levels of moral development. The results revealed that those with higher moral development levels tended to be female, to have more years of schooling, and to possess more socially responsible attitudes. Thus they tended to believe that corporations and managers have social responsibilities that go beyond merely maximizing the profit for a firm. An interesting issue for researchers involves investigating the cognitive moral development of consumers. A key question concerns whether those consumers with 309 higher levels of cognitive moral development act more ethically in their exchange relations with firms. WORD STUDY I. Give Russian equivalents for: Consistent patterns of behaviour; with regard to; compliance; cognitive; to code and store information; information processing; to engage in cognitive work; persuasion process. II. Translate the following words and their derivatives: A process - to process - processing Cognize - cognition - cognizing Engage - to be engaged - engagement Think - thinker - thinking - thought Persuade - persuasion Store – storage III. Translate the following sentences: 1. In compliance with new techniques personality theorists work out various scales for characterizing consumer behaviuor. 2. They try to find out in their clients consistent ways of behaving depending on the situation under the similar conditions. 3. The force of persuasion creates wonders with regard to consumer behaviour. 4. Only new technological innovations persuaded him to participate in this joint venture. 5. The self-concept is defined as the totality of a person's thoughts and feelings with reference to himself or herself as the object. 310 6. The personality of consumers is generally assessed through questions that focus on identifying consumer traits and attitudes. 7. Persuasion is a process in which communication is delivered to change beliefs and attitudes in a desired manner. 8. Information processing is the process through which consumers receive stimulation, transform it into meaningful information, store the information in memory for later use, and retrieve it for decision making. Text 5 I. Read and translate the text: Attitudes Towards the Advertisement To persuade consumers to purchase their brands, firms employ various forms of advertising. Researchers have found that consumers develop attitudes towards advertisements, just as they do towards the brand. In turn, these attitudes toward ads may influence attitudes toward the brand. An attitude toward the ad is a consumer's general liking or disliking for a particular advertising stimulus during a particular advertising exposure. Attitudes toward advertisements can result from a number of factors including the content and imagery vividness of the ad, the mood of the consumer, and the consumer's emotions elicited by the advertisement. Evidence indicates that these factors can influence attitude toward the brand under both high- and lowinvolvement conditions, whether or not the consumer is familiar with the brand. A number of researchers have investigated the relationships between attitude toward the ad, emotions, 311 the degree of ad imagery, attitude toward the brand, and brand cognitions (i.e., product-attribute beliefs). The following statements summarize some of the major findings of the research. 1. The formation of attitudes toward the ad can influence attitudes toward the brand. 2. Emotions elicited by the ad (e.g., positive and negative effect as well as feelings of dominance and arousal) may influence the attitude toward the ad. 3. The content of the advertisement may influence the emotions felt by the consumer. 4. The visual and verbal components of an ad may independently influence the attitude toward the advertisement, the formation of product-attitude beliefs, and time spent viewing the ad. 5. The degree of ad imagery influences feelings and emotions. 6. Attitude toward the ad can influence brand cognitions as well as attitude toward the brand. Researchers have also found that ads containing high levels of imagery more strongly impact attitudes toward the ad. The term imagery refers to the extent to which an ad causes consumers to imagine their use of the product and to connect the ad to their own feelings and beliefs. Ads that employ concrete words, vivid verbal or pictorial images, instructions for consumers to imagine the use of the brand, and high levels of plausibility have been found to strongly impact consumers’ attitude toward the ad. Therefore a firm should attempt to create ads that have positive emotional and factual qualities in order to reduce zipping and zapping while TV viewing. The work on the effects of the attitude toward the ad nicely meshes with the experiential perspective on consumer behaviour. This research shows the importance of feelings and emotions in influencing how attitudes toward the brand are changed. Indeed, research indicates that attitude change may be moderated by the emotions and feelings created by advertising as well as by how the advertising influences consumers' product-attribute beliefs. 312 Of course, the work on the attitudes toward the ad has major importance for advertisers, who must be concerned with both the pictorial and verbal content of advertisements and how they influence the formation of product-attribute beliefs and the creation of feelings and emotions. In fact, a new term has been developed for advertisements that effectively influence the feelings and emotions of consumers; they are called transformational ads. Such ads transform the experience of using a product or service by attaching feelings and emotions to its use. II. Give Russian equivalents for: To purchase a brand; to employ advertising; to develop attitudes; liking or disliking; advertising exposure; imagery vividness; to elicit emotions; a level of plausibility; to reduce zipping and zapping; pictorial and verbal content; experiencial perspective. III. Reproduce situations where the following wordcombinations may be used: To influence attitudes; to create positive effects; to cause arousal; to view negatively; to be moderated by. IV. Give as many word-combinations as possible with the following verbs: To reduce; to influence; to persuade; to develop; to elicit; to indicate; to investigate; to imagine; to create. Use the words below: Attitudes; advertisement; liking and disliking; evidence; relationships; conditions; feelings and emotions; customers; TV viewers; techniques; perspectives; mood; factors; statements: research. V. Give definitions o f : a) an attitude toward the ad: b) transformational ads. 313 VI. Answer the following questions: 1. What forms of advertising may various firms employ? 2. What are they based on in their attempts to advertise the brand? 3. What do they take into consideration? 4. What kinds of relationships do they investigate? 5. What are the major findings of the research? 6. Are they constructive for constant practical usage? 7. What is understood by the term imagery? 8. What do advertisements employ? VII. Describe two advertisements that create your positive attitude. VIII. Describe two advertisements that produce your negative attitude. IX. Do your attitudes toward the ads influence your perception o f the products? Your purchasing motives? X. Written tasks: 1. Write an essay on the topic «A Role of Advertising in Human Life». 2. Imagine you are to advertise some brand. How would you do it? XI. Develop the following situations: 1. You are a deputy of the State Duma. Ask your colleagues: - what they think about the impact of advertisement on people; - if advertisement is really necessary; - if advertisement should be broadcast only on certain channels; - what kind of advertisement should be banned; - how they personally react to advertisement, interrupting an interesting programme too often; 314 - if they are in favour of or against advertising. Tell the colleagues about your attitude to advertising. 2. You want to advertise your products. Ask the advertiser: - where they dispose their advertisement; - how much a billboard advertising costs; - in what way your products can be advertised: - if it will be appealing; - when you can strike a deal; - if they use graphics in advertising. Express your ideas concerning a good advertisement. 3. You are polling people in the street. Ask the respondents: - what is their attitude to advertisement; - what advertisement they like most on TV; - what attracts them in advertising; - if there is any ad which irritates them; - if they would like to forbid advertisement; - if they don't mind being shot in an advertisement. Tell them about the purpose of this survey. Decide whose answers will be published. 4. You want to know everything about advertisement. Ask your friend-advertising agent: - what a good advertisement means; - where it can be put; - how to persuade a customer to use your services; - if their service is expensive; - if he enjoys his work; - how much time he spends at his work; — if he ever works at odd hours; - where lie got special education in advertising. Express your opinion concerning a good advertisement. Decide if you want to become an advertising agent. 315 PSYCHOTHERAPY Text I I. UNIT X Read the text and render its contents in Russian: What Is Positive Psychotherapy? The situation of the ill - and not only of the mentally ill is in many ways like that of a person who for a long time has been standing on only one leg. After some time the muscles become cramped and the burdened leg begins to hurt. He is hardly able to retain his balance. Not only the leg hurts: the whole musculature, unaccustomed to this posture, begins to cramp up. The pain becomes unbearable, and the person cries for help. In this situation, various helpers approach him. While he remains standing on the one leg, one helper begins to massage the burdened and cramped leg. Another takes hold of the neck and gives it a Swedish massage, following all the rules of that art. A third helper sees that the person seems about to lose his balance, and offers him his arm as a support. From among the onlookers comes the suggestion that the person should perhaps take hold of both hands, so that standing may no longer be so hard for him. A wise old man remarks that ho should think about how well off he is, compared with people who have no legs at all. One swears to him that he should imagine himself to be a feather, and that the more intensely he concentrates on that, the more his pain will abate. An enlightened old man adds this well-meant advice: «Time will tell.» Finally, an observer goes up to the sufferer and asks him, «Why are you standing on one leg? Straighten out the other one and stand on it. You do have a second leg, you know.» 316 II. Look through the text and find English equivalents for: психически больной; причинять боль; сохранять равновесие; невыносимая боль; больше не; по сравнению с; клясться; сосредоточиться. III. Read and translate the following words: helper; onlooker; enlightened man; observer; sufferer. In what situations are these words used? IV. Read the following passage and explain the goal of positive psychotherapy: Precisely This Is Positive Psychotherapy The situation in psychotherapy today requires the development of methods which are both economical and effective. The point here is not just to add to the already vast multitude of theories, methods, concepts, and procedures; rather, it is a question of a fundamental broadening. While many of the existing psychotherapeutic procedures take as their starting point the disturbances and illnesses, prophylactic preventive medicine and psychotherapy require another approach, which starts with a person's developmental possibilities and capacities instead of the disturbances. If these capacities are inhibited, neglected, or one-sidedly structured in their development, there arise, either hidden or openly, predispositions to conflict. V. Check your knowledge of the following words: to require; multitude; procedure; approach; capacity; disturbance; to inhibit; predisposition. VI. Answer the following questions: 1. Why is psychotherapy so necessary today? 2. What methods does psychotherapy require? 317 3. What is a starting point of psychotherapeutic procedures? 3. What is another approach of certain necessity today? Text 2 I. Read and translate the text: The «No Diagnosis» Principle Traditional psychotherapy derives its view of man from psychopathology. Thus, the object of its investigation is illnesses. The goal of a treatment is to remove these illnesses, just as in surgery a sick organ is excised. To that extent, psychotherapy follows a venerable tradition. The psychotherapist is primarily occupied with depres¬sions, attention-getting behavior, and psychosomatic diseases such as asthma, headaches, cardiac pain, stomach trouble, and abdominal pains. At first, this is justified! Very rarely does a patient seek out a therapist just because he would like to have his good health confirmed; rather, he does so because functions and organs are disturbed and he would like to have these disturbances eliminated. From this practical starting point, medicine developed the no diagnosis principle, according to which everything which is not sick is healthy, and vice versa. In following this principle, psychotherapy employs a cognitive model which was already present in Oriental and Greek philosophy. I am referring to the negative principle. It consists in defining a concept by saying what it is not; one describes negative attributes, denies their presence, and assumes the positive. This method of proceeding has a story behind it. It is said that Socrates asked a famous poet to speak about beauty. To the astonishment of his listeners, however, the poet spoke not about beauty but rather about its opposite, ugliness. When Socrates inquired why he praised beauty in that way, without 318 speaking of it, the poet replied: «I have described what is ugly. That which is not ugly is beautiful.» In the Ten Commandments of the Old Testament this principle is also found: thou shalt not steal, thou shalt not cover thy neighbor's wife, thou shalt not kill, etc. Even everyday descriptions and demands hold to the negative procedure. It is seldom said what and how one should act. More frequently, one hears what one should not do. The scientific method of psychoanalysis was initially based on the same principle. S. Freud formulated it in this way: «Only when one studies the pathological does one learn to understand the normal.» In saying this, Freud is part of a long tradition. For example, the philosopher Lichtenberg had stated: «One first acquires the feeling of health through sickness.» Not until we have had contact with that which should not be or that which does not seem very desirable to us do we come to recognize the desired object and learn to treasure it. This attitude tacitly implies that one must first suffer injury before one becomes wise: suffer a heart attack before one takes care of one's health, go through a divorce before one clearly perceives the value of marriage, or suffer disturbances of experience and behavior before one pays attention to oneself and one's own wants and needs. In this way, the human personality is grasped via the roundabout way of knowledge of disturbances. One seeks to define the conflict-free person through expressions such as relative capacity for resistance to regression, relative freedom from repression, and reduced tendency to ambivalence. In consequence, not the patient but the illness is treated. The conception of illness covers the patient like a cloud; the therapist perceives only the illness. The patient himself soon learns: My only claim on the therapist is through my illness. As a result the disturbance stands out even more starkly before his eyes. The pathological diagnosis arrived at is like blinders which are supposed to hinder the perception of anything more than the disturbed domain. In this way, the 319 therapeutic possibilities are diminished. II. Translate the following combinations «one + verb»: one should act; one hears; one studies; one learns to understand; one acquires; one perceives; one pays attention to; one seeks to define; Find them in the text and see whether your translation was correct. Make up your own sentences with similar models. III. Answer the questions to the text: 1. What is the object of the investigation in psychotherapy? 2. What is the psychotherapist occupied with? 3. What does «the no diagnosis principle» mean? 4. What model does psychotherapy employ? 5. What is the scientific method of psychoanalysis based on? 6. How can one define the conflict-free person? IV. Explain: 1. The role of the psychotherapist. 2. The meaning of «the no diagnosis principle». 3. The notion of the conflict-free person. V. Read out the following statement and treat its sense: Positive Psychotherapy is concerned with this question: it attempts to avoid the classic misunderstanding which sees in the patient only a bearer of symptoms, and by contrast, to achieve a comprehensive representation. 320 VI. Develop the following situations: 1. You lost your job. You experience depression and anxiety. At last you make up your mind to consult a psychotherapist. What's influenced your decision-making? 2. You have recently become divorced. You feel lonely and neglected. You take a decision to apply for a psychoanalyst. Why? 3. Your close friend suffers from mental disturbance. You recommend him to consult a psychotherapist. Try to persuade him to do it as fast as possible. 4. Psychotherapy has some historical grounds. What are they? Text 3 I. Read the text and answer the following questions: 1. What can you tell about a universal character of Positive Psychotherapy? 2. What are the two basic questions in Positive Psychotherapy? 3. Why is Positive Psychology more a practice than a theory? Aims of Positive Psychotherapy Positive Psychotherapy is a new form of psychotherapy which pursues several fundamental aims. Positive Psychotherapy has a universal character. It doesn't just look into individual, accidental aspects of how conflicts arise, but rather seeks, as far as possible, to understand the patient in a comprehensive way. In so 321 doing, the most important thing is to counteract theoretical prejudice through which the therapist merely reencounters in the patient that which he, through his theory, has invested in him. In pursuit of this aim Positive Psychotherapy employs a multitude of procedures, techniques, and methodological aids in accordance with the manifold forms of appearance of disturbance and the uniqueness of each patient. The concepts of Positive Psychotherapy especially the actual capacities as descriptive categories of human behavior and experience, are neither class nor culture specific. They present a basis for communication, with the help of which language barriers can be overcome. Positive Psychotherapy is therefore not just psychotherapy for the middle class; rather it is also appropriate to the problems and difficulties of patients from the lower class, who for the most part have long been excluded from psychotherapy. It provides the therapist with the possibility of making himself understood to the laborer, while the patient, for his part, can have the feeling that the therapist understands his problems. Thus, Positive Psychotherapy has been able to make a contribution to the furthering of equality of opportunity, at least in psychotherapy. In that Positive Psychotherapy deals with elementary human capacities, it is in a position to speak to people of all languages and social strata, and to cope effectively with transcultural problems. This approach presupposes an answer to the two basic questions: How are people different? What do all people have in common? Therapeutically, Positive Psychotherapy offers an efficacious five-stage short therapy which stresses activation of the patient's indwelling therapeutic capacities. In other words, the patient is not only the sufferer of his illness, but also is employed as a therapist himself. The concept of Positive Psychotherapy suggests that psychiatry and the care of mentally ill patients (which is in 322 very bad shape) should be restructured so that psychiatric hospitals, which in part function only as custodial institutions, would be transformed into counseling places, therapy centers, and day clinics, in which the patient's relatives would be prepared for their therapeutic functions and the patients themselves for cooperation with them. Positive Psychotherapy, which rests upon differentiation analysis, does not seek to provide everything with a positive prognosis, but rather presupposes a differentiation of the critical behavior: it allows relatively conflict-free or positive behavioral components to be separated from the symptom itself, this providing the patient and his milieu with a basis for dealing better with his problems. Positive Psychotherapy does not see itself as just one theory among many. The essential difficulty of many patients is less a question of inadequate motivation to seek out a psychotherapy that of uncertainty about which psychotherapist is competent to deal with which kind of disturbance. This question can only be answered on the basis of a more comprehensive system which can bring together the multitude of existing psychotherapeutic orientations and assign them weights in accordance with their strong points. We present such a system in Positive Psychotherapy, which is not only a psychotherapeutic method but also a metatheory. In its origin and nature, Positive Psychotherapy is more practice than theory. I am mainly trying to understand the patient in his subjective and objective need, without losing sight of his uniqueness. Positive Psychotherapy meets this intention, in that it does not swear by one individual technique but rather calls upon a multitude of different psychotherapeutic techniques (e. g., individual treatment, group therapy, family therapy, relaxation methods, learning-theoretical approaches, psychoanalytical procedures). It is not the patient who must adapt to a methodology he happens to be presented with, but vice versa: the methodology is selected in accordance with the 323 changing psychotherapeutic needs of the patient. This flexibility permits the handling of all psychological and, in a broader sense, psychosomatic illnesses and disturbances. II. Look through the text and find in the text sentences with word-combinations that are given below. Translate these sentences: to pursue an aim; to employ techniques; to overcome a barrier; to make a contribution to; to cope with problems; to rest upon analysis; to handle disturbances. III. Find in the text the paragraph concerning «a question of inadequate motivation to seek out a psychotherapist» and translate it in writing. IV. Make up a plan to the text. V. Characterize the basic aims of psychotherapy. Use your plan. VI. Explain what is meant by: 1. Individual treatment. 2. Group therapy. 3. Family therapy. 4. Relaxation methods. 5. Psychoanalytical procedures. VII. Role-play: 1. You are a family therapist. A young couple comes to you with their marital problems. Listen to them and give suitable advice to cope with the situation. 2. You are an industrial psychologist- You would like to organize a special relaxation room. Try to persuade the manager of its significance for his employees. 324 Text 4 I. Read the first paragraph of the text and retell the fable in your own way: Shadows on the Sundial In the East, a king once wanted to please his subjects. Since they did not know what a clock was, he brought back a sundial from one of his trips. His gift changed the lives of the people in the kingdom. They began to differentiate parts of the day and to divide up their time. Becoming more prompt, orderly, reliable, and industrious, they produced great wealth and a high standard of living. When the king died, his subjects wondered how they could pay tribute to his achievements. Because the sundial symbolized the king's generosity and was the cause of their success, they decided to build around it a splendid temple with a golden dome. But when the temple was finished and the dome soared above the sundial, the rays of the sun no longer reached the dial. The shadow, which had told the time for the citizens, had disappeared; the common point of orientation, the sundial, was covered. One citizen was no longer punctual, another no longer reliable, a third no longer industrious. Each went his own way. The kingdom collapsed. II. Read and translate the rest of the text: The fable about the sun, the sundial, and the darkened ostentatious palace can very well be applied to the child rearing situation and psychotherapy. Every person has at his disposal a large number of capacities with his environment. In terms of developmental psychology, this takes shape in the following way. Parents, as initially the 325 most important people in the environment, and also the other reference persons in the child rearing situation, can either support or inhibit a child's capacities which, at the beginning of its life, are weak, tender, undeveloped, and plastic; and precisely the latter often occurs, as in our fable. In order to make of the child a man in his own image, the educator emphasizes certain socially desired attributes. In many cases these attributes are rendered highly stylized and carried to perfect one-sidedness. To be sure, some of the child's capacities are developed and differentiated, and often even overstressed; however, other capacities are suppressed and overshadowed, just like the marvelous sundial in the splendid temple. To varying degrees, we are all confronted with conflicts and problems. There exists, therefore, a need for new approaches and methods which are effective as well as practicable. While many of the existing psychotherapeutic procedures take the disturbances and illnesses as their starting point, prophylactic and preventive medicine and psychotherapy require a different method of proceeding, starting from the person's developmental possibilities and capacities instead of the disturbances. If these capacities are inhibited, neglected, or only one-sidedly developed, predispositions to conflict arise, whether hidden or open: «From childhood on I have been drilled toward achievement… I even enjoy my profession, but I have no relationship to other people. I can't make much headway with my children either. For me, free time is a torment-..» (42-year-old attorney with depression) Conclusion: Suppressed and one-sidedly unfolded capacities are possible sources of conflicts and disturbances in the psychological and interpersonal areas. They may manifest themselves in anxiety, aggression, conspicuous behavior, depression, and that which is called psychosomatic disturbance. Since the conflicts arise in the course of a person's development in the confrontation with his environment, they are not a necessary and 326 unavoidable fate, but rather present themselves as problems and tasks which we seek to resolve. With this, an essential difference becomes clear: traditional psychiatry and psychotherapy take as their point of departure disturbances, conflicts, and illnesses. Accordingly, the goal of treatment is set: to heal illnesses and eliminate disturbances. The fact is overlooked that it is not disturbances which are primary, but rather capacities, which are indirectly or directly affected by these disturbances. III. Give Russian equivalents for: child rearing; at one's disposal; in terms of; to inhibit capacities; socially desired attributes; to be confronted with; a starting point; suppressed capacities; the goal of treatment; to heal illnesses. IV. Explain the essence of the following words: rearing; maturation; a capacity; predisposition; environment; image; an educator; disturbance. V. Answer the following questions: 1. How can the fable above be applied to the child rearing situation? 2. What is the starting point of the child's psychotherapy? 3. What is the source of conflicts and disturbances? 4. When do these conflicts arise? 5. What is the goal of treatment? VI. Ask your partner: 1. how the child's capacities are differentiated; 2. what problems he was confronted with in his childhood; 3. what is called psychosomatic disturbance; 4. in what way he understands traditional psychiatry. 327 VII. Make up your own sentences with: to be confronted with; to overlook the fact; to have at one's disposal; to seek to resolve; to be affected by. VIII. Make up the summary of the text. Text 5 I. Read the text and find the answers to the following questions: 1. What are the basic questions concerning the theory of positive psychotherapy? 2. What is the foundation of human development? 3. Can the environment influence human capacities? 4. What helps us to see inadequate differentiation of behaviour? Theory of Positive Psychotherapy (1) In view of the varied kinds of upbringing, the differing economic conditions, the multitude of life histories, the individuality of each person, and the specificity of each person's needs, in view of all these factors, is it possible to establish any rules whatsoever for rearing and psychotherapy? There are also an immense number of interests, communities, nations, races, and people in this world, who differ in customs, tastes, temperaments, and normal conceptions, as do the thoughts, views, and opinions of individual human beings. Is it not then the case that an education and a reeducation (psychotherapy) which seek validity for all must be a task which is too difficult for anyone? On the other hand, the multitude of societal and individual circumstances is fodder for social conflict of unheard-of dimensions. This brings us to the basic questions: 1. What do all people have in common? 328 2. How are all people different? (2) Man is, at his birth, no tabula rasa, but rather, to stick with this image, an as yet illegible or unread paper. His capacities - the foundation of human development require maturation and the beneficial help of the environment. However, the concept of the capacities has its own problematic. So long as they are not manifested in achievement, one does not notice them - just as one doesn't see a black ant sitting on a black stone on a dark night. It does, however, exist, and it may crawl into one's field of vision at any moment, when the appropriate conditions have been created. Every person possesses such capacities. Whether or not they take shape in the course of development depends on the conducive or inhibitive conditions of the body, of the environment, and of the times. In relation to the drives, capacities are more plastic and more strongly subjected to the resonance of the environment. In this sense, the conventional societal form of order reflects the human capacity to create order in one way or another. Without the capacity for orderliness, order is inconceivable. (3) When we take as our point of departure the study of interpersonal conflict, observe the value standards for the judgment of self and others, investigate the criteria of rearing and psychotherapy, and research the conditions which lead to the known psychological and psychosomatic disturbances, we see behind these disturbances - to a certain degree as deep structure - inadequate differentiation with regard to the patterns of behavior of oneself and others. In the portrayal of psychological and psychosomatic disturbances, this is described through expression like overdemanding, overworking, or burdening. The saying that behind disturbances lay burdens does not, however, specify the nature of this burdening. For the most part we tend to see only professional overloading. Actually, however, there exists a whole spectrum of attitudes and behavior patterns which have become conflict potentials, thus foreordaining 329 psychological and psychosomatic disturbance. These attitudinal and behavior patterns may be described using an inventory of psychosocial norms, which are distinguished by the fact that they produce effects equally as developmental dimensions and as conflict potentials. (4) The norms in question are: punctuality, cleanliness, orderliness, obedience, courtesy, honesty, faithfulness, justice, diligence/achievement, thrift, reliability, precision, and conscientiousness, as well as love, modeling, patience, time, contact, sexuality, trust, confidence, hope, faith, doubt, certitude, and unity. We call these modes of behavior actual capacities. II. Translate paragraph (3) in writing. III. Make up an outline of the text. IV. Look through paragraph (4) and copy out those modes of behaviour that you consider to be of primary importance for you. Give your arguments. V. Make up a list of actual capacities which are necessary in: 1. the professional field; 2. making stable and lasting friendships; 3. the family relations. VI. Give a short summary of the text. Text 6 I. Read and translate the text: Actual Capacities Contents-wise, the psychologically real norms may be 330 divided into two basic categories, which we call secondary and primary capacities. The secondary capacities are an expression of the capacity to know, and rest upon the transmission of knowledge. In them are mirrored the achievement norms of the individual's social group. They include punctuality, cleanliness, orderliness, obedience, courtesy, honesty, faithfulness, justice, diligence/achievement, thrift, reliability, precision, and conscientiousness. In everyday descriptions and evaluations, and in partners’ judgments of one another, the secondary capacities play a decisive role. He who finds another person to be nice and likeable bases his attitude on these capacities: «Не is decent and orderly, one can rely upon him..» Or, on the other hand, one makes a deprecating judgment: «I don't like him, because he's slovenly, unpunctual, unjust, discourteous, and miserly, and shows too little effort.» The pronounced affective response in cases of disturbance of the secondary capacities can only be understood in the light of emotional ties. These are expressed in the primary capacities. The primary capacities concern the capacity to love. They have to do with the predominantly emotional domain, and develop, just as the secondary capacities, mainly in interpersonal relationships, in which the relation to reference persons, especially the mother and father, plays an important role. The primary capacities encompass categories like love (emotionality), modeling, patience, time, contact, sexuality, trust, confidence, hope, faith, doubt, certitude, and unity. We call them primary capacities not because they are more important than the secondary ones. Rather, the expression «primary» is meant to remind us that these capacities concern the emotional domain, which is close to the self. They constitute the foundation upon which the secondary capacities rest: 331 In terms of contents, the primary capacities are oriented toward experiences which one has had with regard to the secondary capacities. The Inventory of Secondary and Primary Capacities (Actual Capacities) Secondary Capacities Punctuality Cleanliness Orderliness Obedience Courtesy Honesty/candor Faithfulness Justice Diligence/achievement Thrift Reliability Precision Conscientiousness Primary Capacities Love (emotionality) Modeling Patience Time Contact Sexuality Trust Confidence Hope Faith/religion Doubt Certitude Unity Some of the expressions are, in conventional language, rarely included among the «capacities» in the narrower sense: modeling, doubt, certitude, and unity. They are in part psychological processes within which specific capacities are manifested, and they appear in part as the results of these processes. As such typical manifestations, they can be included in the group of capacities. These 332 capacities are not «pure, isolated factors»; rather, they are inwardly closely interrelated. The actual capacities are socialization norms which are developed and learned in the course of one's lifetime. In the process they acquire their individual significance, which, like a corona of meaning, surrounds the conventional understanding of the actual capacities. Although, for example, everybody knows what «orderliness» is, in the last analysis everyone's understanding of this expression differs in relation to varied nuances and in different situations: pedantic or romantic orderliness. On the other hand, structural commonalities are found again and again, especially with regard to the psychological significance. «Courtesy,» for example, can be understood as inhibition of aggression and suppression of one's own wishes to the benefit of the wishes of others. In this way it becomes the social instrument with which the affect and recognition of others are to be assured and «friendly looks» are to be gotten. «Honesty,» on the other hand, functions in this sense as accomplishment of one's own wishes, toward which one adopts an «honest» stance. The psychological significance of the actual capacities is modified throughout a person's life history, each acquiring a specific meaning. While for one reference person diligence/achievement is especially significant, another holds orderliness, punctuality, courtesy, honesty, thrift, etc. to be especially important. The actual capacities are, however, not just psychological dimensions which are restricted to the individual. Rather, they affect both the psychosomatic and the social domains. From a socialpsychological point of view, they are the rules of the game of a society, as well as the rules of the game of interpersonal relations. The approach presented led to the idea of questioning patients concerning their disposition to conflict with regard to the actual capacities. For example, in cases of depression we ask not only about the depressive symptomatology or about key conflicts defined as such a 333 priori, but rather about the corresponding conflict-laden behavioral domains. For example, we focus first not on the anxiety, but rather on a series of conditions which have the effect of releasing anxiety. Let us assume that a patient always develops anxieties when she has to wait for her husband in the evening. In such as a case, the anxiety is centered in the psychosocial norm «punctuality». Is it not then clear that precisely this domain should be dealt with? Conclusion: The actual capacities represent the content relations of psychodynamic reactions and of psychotherapeutic modelling. In this sense, differentiation analysis is not restricted to general findings, such as an authoritarian parental home, strong parental ties, tyranny, deification, and a tough, tender, or double-bind type of rearing. It speaks not only of self-worth conflicts, feelings of inferiority, phobias, depressions, or a largely undefined superego. Rather, it analyses the concrete contents (actual capacities) of inner psychological and interpersonal processes. II. Answer the following questions: 1. What basic categories may the psychologically real norms be divided into? 2. What capacities play a decisive role, primary or secondary? 3. What are the basic differences between the primary and secondary capacities? 4. How is the psychological significance of the actual capacities modified? III. Complete the following sentences: 1. By the secondary capacities we understand... 2. The primary capacities have to do with... 334 3. In terms of contents the primary capacities are oriented toward... 4. The actual capacities are developed and learned in... 5. The actual capacities affect... 6. From a social-psychological point of view, they are the rules of... 335 IV. Look through characterize: the text and be ready to 1. The secondary capacities and their decisive role in the human life. 2. The primary capacities. 3. The development of the actual capacities in the course of one's lifetime. 4. The psychological significance of the actual capacities. V. Look at the Inventory of Secondary and Primary Capacities and choose the most suitable ones to be implied in the following situations: 1. «I don't trust my husband any more, because he is always untrustworthy, he's not punctual...» 2. «I am depressed. I have anxieties and can't get to sleep all night. I'm sick of life itself...» 3. «When I think about my boss's unfairness, I start to shiver and feel nervous...» 4. «When I hear that an arithmetic assignment has been given at school, I feel nervous until my daughter brings her grade home.» 5. «I don't like my husband. He doesn't wash himself properly and he leaves everything lying about.» VI. In what way would you treat the following statement: «It is on the basis of the primary capacities that the secondary capacities experience their emotional resonance.» VII. Look at the picture illustrating Сараcities» and comment on it. «Actual 336 Text 7 I. Read the text and render its contents in Russian: Is the Inventory of the Actual Capacities Complete? Just as a seed possesses a multitude of capacities which are unfolded through the influence of the environment, e.g., the earth, the rain, the gardener, etc., man too develops his capacities in close connection with his environment. Underlying the concept of Positive Psychotherapy is the conception that every person has two basic capacities, the capacity to know and the capacity to love (emotionality). These two basic capacities stand as comprehensive categories behind the primary and secondary capacities. They are, however, not just formally higher levels of abstraction of the actual capacities; rather, they represent the totality of human capacities in an as yet undifferentiated stage, «even as the flame is hidden within the candle and the rays of light are potentially present in the lamp». In the course of the lifetime of the individual, the basic capacities differentiate into the configurations of the actual capacities, which we then observe as personal and unmistakable attributes. In spite of successful differentiation into actual capacities, we have an inestimable mass of developmental possibilities which are latent in the basic capacities. The actual capacities depend on the historical, social, and individual circumstances. The capacities to know and to love, on the other hand, belong to the essence of every man. This means no less than that man is essentially good. This is true independently of the race a person belongs to, whether he is black, yellow, red, or white; independently of the social class to which, because of economic conditions, he belongs; and independently of the psychological type into which he is classified, whether he 337 is intelligent, extroverted, introverted, schizothymic, cyclothymic, or culpable. Not only the healthy have basic capacities, but also the ill, whose physical, psychological, and spiritual functions are disturbed. This is true even of the mentally and emotionally ill, whose personalities are severely limited. Their situation is similar to that of sufferers of aphasic speech disturbances, who are well able to understand a language and to think verbally, but whose necessary organic functions are disturbed, and who are therefore unable to outwardly realize their speech potential. Autistic persons, who renounce nearly all social contact and live in seclusion within themselves, possess the capacity to love and to know, just as do the catatonic, transfixed, and expressionless schipzophrenic and the socalled heartless psychopath. The basic development capacities and their conditions (or II. Read the text again and give it the other heading. III. Give some examples of: 1. historical consequences determining the actual capacities; 2. social consequences related to the actual capacities; 3. individual consequences linked with the actual capacities. 338 IV. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. Explain in your own way the following notions: the capacity to know; the capacity to love; personal attributes; an extraverted type; an introverted type; an autistic person. V. Look at the diagram and describe it. VI. Speak on the following: 1. Every person has two basic capacities. 2. The actual capacities depend on historical, social and individual consequences. Text 8 I. Look through the item and explain: 1. why we find someone repulsive; 2. why we probably dislike a person; 3. why some people seem impolite to us; 4. why the level of civilization has nothing to do with the essence of man. Disturbances Have Nothing to Do with the Basic Capacities There are no bad people. If we саn’t stand someone, it may be due to the fact that he has a different skin color, different facial expressions, and certain physical characteristics which we do not wish to accept. If we find someone repulsive, keep our distance from him, and get angry about him, it may be because he holds a different opinion, is not polite enough to us, keeps us waiting, is 339 untrustworthy, and makes behavioral demands on us which are inconvenient and unwonted. If we do not like a person, the reason may be that he once disappointed us, others have had bad experiences with him, and we no longer trust him. However, we cannot hate the hateful person because he is hateful, nor the discourteous person because he is discourteous, nor the unreliable person because of his unreliability. Many people who are hateful in our eyes seem beautiful in the eyes of others. Many people who seem impolite to us have simply not yet learned the kind of politeness which we insist upon; or we can't understand their particular kind of courtesy. Many who have lost our confidence earn our trust in other areas and at another time. The level of civilization attained also has nothing to do with the essence of man. Our ancestors didn't wear clothing, used their hands instead of silverware, had never seen a bathroom, and attended neither school nor universities, yet they were human beings, and, in spite of all the historical differences, of equal worth, just like those people of our day who are at a different level of development and abide by different norms. Even we have, for example, only recently learned cleanliness and punctuality, which we now defend, together with the susceptibility to conflict that they bring in their wake. II. Translate in writing: By reason of various circumstances, whether physical injury or impinging environmental circumstances, many people cannot find suitable access to their capacities. There certainly may be cases in which the organic functions which enable the basic capacities to find expression are so blocked that in spite of the most painstaking treatment the difficulty cannot be removed. It is, however, neither logical nor permissible to conclude from the disturbance of organic functions and the 340 seemingly hopeless prognosis that the capacities to love and to know are completely missing. The hopelessness is a function not only of the disturbance, but also of historically conditioned remedies which are available. A decision in the sense of a diagnostic judgment therefore often requires the courage on the part of the therapist to come down off the podium of «objectivity» and to admit: «I can't help him yet,» instead of saying, «He can't be helped.» With this, we leave behind the sphere of the directly observable and enter the sphere of constructs, which, while not themselves observable, are nevertheless accessible. When we see the light of an incandescent lamp, we see only that, and not its cause, the electric current. To this we have access only via its effects. III. Answer: 1. Why is the therapist sometimes helpless? 2. What are the circumstances under which he becomes helpless? IV. Read the conclusion and give the definition of the capacities in the new light: Conclusion: In this sense, we understand the capacities to know and to love as psychological dispositions which are possessed by every human being, without exception, and which require actualization and differentiation. All other capacities can be derived from these two basic capacities or understood as expressions of various combinations of basic capacities, and applied in any number of life situations. The two basic capacities are functionally interrelated. The appropriate development of one capacity supports and facilitates the development of the other. Every person has at his disposal basic capacities which, open up to him a broad range of possibilities. In 341 accordance with the conditions of his body, of his environment, and of the time in which he lives, these basic capacities are differentiated and lead to an unmistakable structure of essential traits. V. to to to to to Make up sentences with the following wordcombinations: keep one's distance from; get angry about; trust no longer; lose confidence; have nothing to do with. VI. What feelings do unreliable people evoke in you? And what about impolite people (unpleasant, dishonest)? Give your arguments. Use wordcombinations of exercise 5 to develop your idea. Text 9 I. Read and render the contents in Russian: Basic Capacities in the Literature The principle of the capacities is found in the literature in many forms. All the concepts of the human sciences contain, directly or indirectly, fundamental dimensions or basic capacities, from which behavior or perception can be derived. In some lines of thought these are the drives, in others the ability to learn, and in still others emotional dimensions such as the «endothymic base.» In each case, the nature and the evaluation of the respective «basic capacities» correspond to the underlying view of man. S. Freud, who sees the sexual and aggressive drives as the predominant «basic capacities,» formulates his view of man in the following way: «The development of man to date seems to me to require no other explication than that related to the animals.» 342 In hindsight, it seems strange that in the history of psychology, the reflexologist Pavlov puts forward a similar view of man: «After everything that I have presented in the previous lessons, it is hardly possible to dispute the fact that the quite general bases of higher nervous activity are the same in the higher animals and in man.» These conclusions are not just the value-neutral conclusions or the detached opinions of scientists. They are based, strictly speaking, not on facts, but rather on a view of man originating in the mechanistic era. The question of whether the same regularities hold for men as for animals has rather less theoretical and philosophical than eminently practical significance. Here, the question is raised as to what man is to be regarded as; how, consequently, he can and must be treated; and which developmental possibilities are granted or denied him. The view of man thus has profound consequences for rearing, for relations with human beings in general, for interpersonal relations, and for psychotherapy. Both basic capacities of Positive Psychotherapy can be inferred from human behavior, largely comprehensible in terms of the actual capacities. Here, observable behavior functions as an indicator of universal dispositions or essential traits . W. Stern speaks here of «lasting potential causalities,» which, in their actualization and differentiation, have need of «convergence with the world.» D. C. Jordan and D. У. Streets state that «knowing and loving are the two basic capacities. From the blending and differentiation of these two capacities all human potentialities are derived.» With their pedagogic conception as a point of departure, they associate the following developmental categories with the two basic powers of knowing arid loving: psychomotor development, perceptual development, cognitive development, affective and emotional development, moral development, development of volition, development of creativity and of aesthetic sensitivity, spiritual development, and language development. Based on these 343 discriminations, the authors formulate a comprehensive pedagogic program, the Anisa Model. II. Whose formulation of basic capacities do you consider to be the most significant? III. Read the paragraph below and give it a heading: Conclusion: Classical psychology had already employed the fundamental distinction between cognition, involving perception and thinking, and emotion, involving feelings and affective resonance. Together with behavior, cognition and emotion are held by social psychology to be the essential aspects of attitudes. In the history of psychology, this trichotomy is found again in the triad: thinking, feeling, and willing. A number of theories, while not differentiating between the capacities to know and to love, employ a concept which is in many ways similar to that of the basic capacity. A. P. Weil speaks in this sense of an «original psychological nucleus,» Charlotte Buhler of a «spiritual nucleus» which is present from birth on. H. Ey differentiates, in a way analogous to the relationship between basic and actual capacities, between the «trajectory of the personality» and the «superficial field of consciousness»; however, he does not employ these expressions in a general sense, restricting them instead to pathological disturbances. Similarly, Weitbracht sees the «substratum» as one of the factors which conditions neuroses. In his theory, S. Freud reverts to a basic dualism, one component of which he locates in the dynamic domain of the personality, the other being seen in the obligations confronting the individual and in societal demands. He differentiates between the pleasure principle and the reality principle. When E. H. Erikson speaks of a gradation of basic virtues and conceives of them as «inward strength» or «active quality», these virtues, as 344 certain kinds of human energy, stand, content-wise, closer to the actual capacities than to the basic capacities in our sense. IV. Ask your friend 10 questions on the text. V. Agree or disagree with the following statements: 1. The sexual and aggressive drives are the predominant basic capacities. 2. The general bases of higher nervous activity are the same in higher animals and in man. 3. Knowing and loving are the two basic capacities. 4. Cognition and emotion are the essential aspects of attitudes. VI. Speak on: 1. S. Freud's treatment of basic capacities. 2. The Anisa Model. 3. The triad: thinking, feeling, and willing. Text 10 I. Read the item and answer the questions: 1. What does every human being seek to discover? 2. What is the capacity to know linked to? What Is the Capacity to Know? The capacity to know means the ability to learn and to teach. Every human being seeks to discover the relationships in reality. He asks why an apple falls to the ground, why a tree grows, why the sun shines, why a car goes, why there exist sickness and suffering. He takes an interest in who he really is, where he comes from, and where he will go. These are not only the questions of philosophy, but also questions that reflect a basic human 345 need. The nature of man, to ask such questions and to seek the answers to them, is the expression of the capacity to know. Educationally, it is built upon the transmission of knowledge. The capacity to know branches out into the mutually complementary capacities to learn and to teach, i.e., the capacities to have experiences and to impart them. The disparity between learning and teaching produces a special source of conflicts: if we want to operate a complicated technical apparatus, we must first learn how it works. If we want to pass this tool on to another person, we have a duty to instruct him, to teach him. If we don't do that, we shouldn't be surprised if he destroys the expensive instrument through misuse. The disparity between learning and teaching leads to a tension which is widespread in child rearing, marriage, and relations between generations. Out of the capacity to know develop the secondary capacities, such as punctuality, orderliness, cleanliness, courtesy, honesty, and thrift. II. Make up a list of capacities to learn and those to teach. II. Read the text below and make up a summary: Modes of the Capacity to Know Let us ask ourselves which modes are available for the development of the capacity to know. We distinguish four modes of knowing. They are latent in every person as capacities, the kind and degree of unfolding of which is conditioned by the environment: 1. The senses 2. Reason 3. Tradition 4. Intuition 346 The functioning of all four modes is more or less codetermined by the «unconscious.» Model functions in the development of the four modes of the capacity to know Carried over to the partnership situation: many of our partners, and certainly all patients, are at least as sensitive as every old feudalistic ruler. Our partners can repay our honesty with withdrawal of love, vengeance (justice), or in such a way that we regret ever having honestly and frankly expressed our opinion. The myths are available as a help: they hit home to the degree one wants them and at oneself. They are especially relevant in that they address a mode of knowledge which for adults, and often for children, is unrecognized and only just manages to stay alive: intuition. In modern industrial society intuition is seen as unimportant and, to the degree that it is recognized at all, is subordinated to reason. It is just this capacity which the stories address. They promote that playful, unforced imagination and fantasy which is not directly controlled by reality, but rather through the fantasy reality of the story. With intuition a capacity is stimulated which in many people leads a shadow existence; in addition an entry is made into fantasy, over which many patients have lost control. IV. Do you agree with the list of four modes of knowing? Give your arguments- 347 V. Characterize each mode of knowing separately. VI. Read the conclusion drawn and express your opinion: Conclusion: Mythological stories can serve as a therapeutic vehicle to reflect problematic attitudes and areas of behavior, to stimulate associations, and to provoke a conversation about conflict areas which otherwise remain closed to verbalization. The stories are pedagogic aids in psychotherapy, and sometimes even for the therapist himself. VII.Write an essay on «Psychotherapy and its Basic Tools». VIII. Read the text and speak on importance of psychotherapy in human life: Psychotherapy covers the psychological treatment of a wide range of mental and physical illnesses by a number of different methods, each developed in terms of its own theoretical framework. Such treatment is carried out with individual patients or clients, with groups of patients and with children as well as adults. Methods vary from a long series of intimate discussions extending over two or three years, to only one or two intense interviews. Group treatment may consist of acting out problems or the encouragement of expression of inhibited emotions within the therapeutic group. Psychotherapy, as well as the use of hypnosis with psychotherapy, is most appropriately regarded as a postqualification specialization for members of one of the primary professional groups such as medical practitioners, applied psychologists or social workers. Such people are more likely to interact in the development of psychological problems and to have a sufficient range of professional experience and skills to judge when a potential client might be more appropriately helped by other methods. 348 IX. Read about some relatively new occupations in the field of psychology and say what profession of those mentioned in the text appeals to you more: Counselling psychologists aim to help people improve their sense of well-being, alleviate their distress, resolve their crises and increase their ability to solve problems and make decisions for themselves. They do this through the application of psychological theories, research and techniques to help individuals and groups deal with some of the inevitable difficulties of normal life. Counselling psychologists work with individuals, couples, families and groups. They work in diverse settings: some work privately, some in primary health care, others in counselling organizations and academic settings, whilst others are employed within business organizations. Educational psychologists tackle the problems encountered by young people in education, which may involve learning difficulties and social and emotional problems. Their work normally takes place in schools, colleges, nurseries, and special units, and involves working closely with teachers and parents. Most of the time is spent in assessing children's progress, their academic and emotional needs and providing help and advice. Reports have to be written about children for allocation of special educational places or as part of court proceedings. Increasingly, educational psychologists work with teachers to improve the school environment. Forensic psychologists deal with the application of psychology within the judicial and penal systems. They are concerned with the training and treatment of prisoners, carrying out clinical interviews and behavioural and psychometric tests. Increasingly, they also help prison officers, deal with inmates and with assessing prison governors with management issues, stress and hostage situations. Prison psychologists are employed through out 349 the prison service, including youth custody centers, remand centers and adult prisons. Health psychologists work in a relatively new field of applied psychology. They are represented in a number of settings, such hospitals, academic health research units, health authorities and university departments. Psychological principles are used to promote changes in people's attitudes, behaviour and thinking about health. Health psychologists also work with other professionals, advising in areas such as patient communication, assessing and evaluating services to patients and how people's beliefs may affect treatment. Occupational psychology is concerned with the world of work and training, and as such can have many guises. It may be labelled organizational psychology, ergonomics (human factors, engineering applications of psychology), applied psychology, industrial psychology, personnel management, time management or management consultancy. Occupational psychologists are involved with issues such as the selection and training of staff. Psychometric tests, communication, the working environment and effective management. Major changes brought about by technology, privatisation and recession have led to an increasing demand for their services. Occupational psychologists often work for large companies (in both the private and public sectors), in government and public services, in management training centres and for private consultancies. They usually work alongside other professionals such as managers, trade union representatives, training officers and specialist staff from the firm or industry concerned. Research psychologists work in universities, government agencies or private companies. Their work varies enormously: in universities it may be pure research which aims simply at a better understanding of human behaviour, while research psychologists working in commercial organizations may be researching topics of direct relevance to their employers. 350 WHATS YOUR OPINION? This quiz is designed to test your social attitudes. Work through it with a partner. For each statement mark ++ if you strongly agree, + if you tend to agree, 0 if you have no particular opinion, - if you tend to disagree and - - if you strongly disagree. 1. People should not be able to obtain a better education or better medical care for their families by paying for them. 2. Blood sports, like fox-hunting, should be made illegal. 3. Homosexuality should never be treated as a crime. 4. All young men and women should undergo a period of military training, even in peacetime. 5. Capital punishment is a deterrent to would-be murderers. 6. Soft drugs like marijuana should be made legal. 7. People who live in a welfare state tend to lose all sense of initiative. 8. There is nothing wrong with people living together before they are married. 9. In certain circumstances, censorship of the press, literature, films, etc. is justifiable. 10. Trade unions are a hindrance to industrial progress. 11. A person should be entitled to take his or her own life without society interfering, if he or she wishes to do so. 12. Royalty and nobility are incompatible with democracy. 13. It is unfair that some people inherit vast incomes while other people have to work for a living. 14. Most strikes are the result of bad management. 15. It is normal that the police should tap telephones when investigating a crime. 16. Young people with beards and long hair are unpleasant to look at. 351 17. Human nature being what it is, war is unavoidable. 18. There is nothing wrong with fare-dodging on a bus or train if you can get away with it. 19. All kinds of discrimination against coloured races, Jews, etc., should be illegal and severely punished. 20. Men are not created equal. Therefore social inequality is inevitable. 21. Public execution is a good measure as a tradition in some cultures. 22. You are in favour of death penalty. 23. There is nothing wrong in having a baby out of wedlock. 24. You support the idea of cohabiting families. 25. Social Welfare Agencies must take care of old people. 26. Taboos are necessary in our lives. 27. You should apply for a psychoanalyst in solving personal problems. 28. You believe in existence of life on other planets. A note: fare-dodging means avoiding the payment of the fare. 352 SOCIOLOGY UNIT I I. Read and translate the text: Sociology The name sociology was first suggested in the 1830s by the French philosopher Auguste Comte, but for many years it remained only a suggestion. Comte urged others to study sociology. It was not until late in the 19th century that we can identify people who called themselves sociologists and whose work contributed to the development of the field. Among these were Herbert Spencer in England who published the first of his three-volume «Principles of Sociology» in 1876 and Ferdinand Tonnies in Germany. A decade later, Emile Durkheim published «Suicide.» The first sociologists studied moral statistics. Their work proved so popular that it led to the rapid expansion of census questions. However, sociology as an academic speciality was imported from Germany. The progressive uncovering of social causes of individual behaviour — in response to the questions raised by moral statistics produced the field called sociology. Sociology is one of the related fields known as the social sciences. They share the same subject matter: human behaviour. But sociology is the study of social relations, and its primary subject matter is the group, not the individual. There is a close connection between sociology and other disciplines such as psychology, economy, anthropology, criminology, political science, and history. But sociologists differ from psychologists because they are not concerned exclusively with the individual, they are interested in what goes on between people. They differ from economists by 353 being less interested in commercial exchanges; they are interested in the exchange of intangibles such as love and affection. Sociologists differ from anthropologists primarily because the latter specialize in the study of preliterate and primitive human groups, while sociologists are interested in modern industrial societies. Criminologists specialize in illegal behaviour, while sociologists are concerned with the whole range of human behaviour. Similarly, political scientists focus on political organization and activity, while sociologists survey all social organizations. Finally, sociologists share with historians an interest in the past but are equally interested in the present and the future. Sociology is a broader discipline than the other social sciences. In a sense, the purpose of sociologists is, in general, to find the connections that unite various social sciences into a comprehensive, integrated science of society. Sociology consists of two major fields of knowledge: micro sociology and macro sociology. Micro sociologists study the patterns and processes of face-to-face interaction between humans. Macro sociologists attempt to explain the fundamental patterns and processes of largescale social relations. They concentrate on larger groups, even on whole societies. Sociologists attempt to use research to discover if certain statements about social life are correct. The basic tools of their research are tests, questionnaires, interviews, surveys, and public opinion polls. II. Answer the following questions: 1. Who was the first to suggest the name sociology? 2. Who were the first sociologists? 3. What were they mainly interested in? 4. What country was sociology as an academic discipline imported from? 5. What is the subject matter of sociology? 354 6. What other disciplines is sociology closely connected with ? 7. What differs sociology from psychology and anthropology? 8. What is the goal of sociologists? 9. What fields of knowledge does sociology consist of? 10. What are the basic tools of sociological research? III. Explain the difference concerning the subject matter between: a) sociology and economy; b) sociology and criminology; c) sociology and history. IV. Prove by the facts that: 1. Sociology is a social science. 2. Sociology is a broader discipline than the other social sciences. 3. Sociology is made up of micro sociology and macro sociology. V. Speak on: 1. The origin of sociology. 2. Its subject matter. 3. Differences and similarities of sociology and other social sciences. 4. Major fields of sociology. 5. Basic sociological research methods. VI. Discuss in the group the following: 1. What do you think: sociology is a field of the arts or the sciences? 2. Can there be a civilization without the social sciences? Will it be a rational and healthy society? 3. Your parents don't want you to study sociology. How would you persuade them that this is your real vocation? 355 VII.Read the text and say what part of the text characterizes the guiding principles of sociology. Sociology, as a science, takes its point of departure from the materialist world outlook in its application to the solution of social problems. In this application sociology demonstrates its scientific character as it employs some guiding principles in the understanding of social affairs. They are: 1) The society in its development is regulated by objective laws discovered by science. 2) Views and institutions, political, ideological and cultural developments arise on the basis of the development of the material life of society. 3) Ideas and institutions, which thus arise on the basis of conditions of material life play an active role in the development of material life. So, sociology studies regularities in social processes, connections between social events, which are independent of our consciousness and will, social relations and social institutions. Sociology is concerned, as well, with circumstances which give rise to the formation of aims and intentions in people's minds. Different people have different aims. This does not mean that individual psychologies differ, but it expresses the fact that people find themselves in different circumstances, with different interests arising from those circumstances. VIII. Answer: What are the sociologists concerned with? Use the words in brackets. The sociologists are concerned with (social institutions, social relations, social groups, group classification, group properties, group types). IX. Translate the following sentences into Russian: 1. He was greatly concerned with the latest sociological research. 356 2. In their conversation they concerned a great number of vital problems. 3. His main concern was sociology. 4. They talked much concerning the main points of his report. 5. She was concerned with the problem of social relations at the high level of the society's development. 357 UNIT II I. Read and translate the text: Social Barometer A great part of sociological research consists of quantitative experimenting. The system of techniques used for that purpose is that of statistical methods. These methods are necessary to examine the data, analyse them and draw certain conclusions. The results of the sociological survey are published then. Sociological research is usually conducted by a working group under the supervision of the leading sociologists of the Аll-Russian Centre for the Study of Public Opinion. The public opinion poll is a criterion of the current social life within the society. It is the so-called social barometer of the country. In fact our fast-moving life makes it necessary to analyse things. So it is useful to examine the results of sociological surveys. The public opinion poll is carried out nationwide or in some definite regions, cities, establishments. It may be verbal in the form of an interview. But more often the opinion poll is conducted by means of tests or questionnaires. The questionnaires contain some items to be chosen by the subjects. In other cases the questionnaires present a set of questions to be answered by the respondents in their individual way. The polled may express their own opinions verbally or in writing. The assessments may be optimistic, pessimistic, dramatic, positive, negative. They expose and reassess our ideals and values. The polls are very popular nowadays throughout the country. In general, they are directed to assess current social and political situation, political figures, the most important events, economic perspectives, our losses and gains and so on. All data are given in percentages. II. Answer the following questions: 358 1. What methods are the basic tools in sociological research? 2. Who conducts sociological research? 3. What is considered to be a social barometer? 4. Where is the public opinion poll carried out? 5. In what form may it be conducted? 6. What are the questionnaires like? 7. How do the polled express their opinions? 8. What do assessments expose? 9. What is the aim of the polls? 10. How are all data given? every III. Ask your groupmate: - why the statistical methods are used for the sociological survey; - under whose supervision sociological research is conducted; - why it is useful to conduct a public opinion poll; - by what means the poll is carried out; - who the respondents are; - if the polls are popular in this country. IV. Find in the text the facts to prove that: 1. Statistical methods are a useful tool in sociological research. 2. Public opinion poll is a social barometer. 3. It is carried out in different forms. 4. The respondents may react differently. V. Divide the text into four logical parts. VI. Speak on the main points of the text. VII.Discuss in the group the following problems: 1. Opinion polls are useful and necessary. 2. They reflect the true picture of the situation. 3. You would like to carry out such a poll. 4. You would like to act as a respondent. 359 VII. Try to make up your own questionnaire and offer it to your groupmates. VIII. Look through the fresh newspapers and find there some information on the latest polls. Be ready to comment on it. WORD STUDY I. Memorize the following words and wordcombinations: Sociological research the polled Sociological survey respondent Public opinion to assess Public opinion poll to reassess To conduct a poll assessment To carry out a poll II. Use them in your description of some sociological survey. III. Fill in the blanks with the necessary words: To conduct, conclusions, to examine, poll, to assess, assessments 1. Statistical methods are used to analyse the data and draw ... . 2. The opinion ... is carried out nationwide. 3. Leading sociologists ... a poll all over the country. 4. The polls are directed to ... social and political situation. 5. The respondents give their ... verbally and in writing. 6. Sociologists carefully ... the obtained data. IV. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. Complete the following sentences: The public opinion poll is a criterion of ... . It is the so-called ... . The poll is carried out … . It may be verbal in the form of ... . The opinion poll is conducted by means of ... . The polls are directed to ... . The poll data are given in ... . 360 UNIT III I. Read and translate the text: The Origins of Sociology Sociology is one the youngest academic disciplines - far younger than history, physics, or economics, for example. It was only about one hundred and fifty years ago that many new ideas about society began coming together to form a systematic discipline that studies society. Auguste Comte, a French social thinker, gave the discipline its name in 1838; he is widely regarded as «the father of sociology». People have had a deep interest in society since the beginning of human history, but the sociological perspective is a recent development, as is the scientific approach to knowledge on which sociological research is based. Science and the Development of Sociology. The nature of society was an issue of major importance in the writings of brilliant thinkers of the ancient world, including the Greek philosophers Plato (427-347 В. C.) and Aristotle (384-322 В. C). Similarly, during the medieval era in Europe between about 1100 and 1700 - theologians such as St. Thomas Aquinas (1225-1274 ) were deeply concerned with social life. Yet, as Emile Durkheim noted toward the end of the last century such social thinkers used a perspective somewhat different from that of sociology. In other words, prior to the birth of sociology, philosophers and theologians were primarily concerned with imagining the «ideal» society as a standard to guide social life. They were less interested in understanding society as it was. Pioneering sociologists such as Auguste Comte and Emile Durkheim reversed these priorities. Although they were certainly concerned with philosophical and moral questions about how human society could be 361 improved, their major goal was to understand how society actually operates. The key to distinguishing between understanding what society ought to be and what society is lies in the development of a scientific approach to knowing. During the medieval period in Europe, people's view of humanity was heavily shaped by religion. Society was widely held to be an expression of God's will - at least insofar as human beings, under the guidance of the church, were capable of fulfilling a divine plan. Gradually, however, science - based on identifying facts through systematic observation was growing in importance. Through the efforts of early scientists such as the Polish astronomer Copernicus (1473-1543), the Italian astronomer and physicist Galileo (1564—1642), and the English physicist and mathematician Sir Isaac Newton (1642—1727) a scientific understanding of the natural world emerged. More than a century after Newton, sociology was established as the scientific approach to the study of society. Reflecting on the origins of scientific sociology, Auguste Comte (1851-1854) suggested that organized efforts to understand the world tend to become increasingly scientific as they move through three stages of development. Comte's «law of the three stages» includes approaches he described as theological, metaphysical, and scientific. In the study of society, the earliest, theological stage is based on understanding society as a reflection of supernatural forces such as the will of God. The belief in a divine plan for human society dominated the ancient world and most of the feudal period of European history. During the final centuries of the feudal era in Europe, the theological approach to society gradually gave way to what Comte termed the metaphysical stage, in which abstract forces (such as «nature») were believed to confer basic characteristics on society. A metaphysical approach to understanding society is found in the writings of the English philosopher Thomas Hobbes (1588-1679), who suggested that society was a reflection of an innately 362 selfish human nature. Notice that both the theological and the metaphysical approaches did not focus attention on society itself, but on other factors social thinkers believed shaped society — God's will in the theological view and human nature in the metaphysical. The last few centuries have seen the dawning of what Comte characterized as the final, scientific stage in the humanity's long quest to understand society. Comte believed that a scientific approach focuses attention directly on society instead of external forces that, in earlier eras, were believed to be the cause of social patterns. The scientific approach is based on the assertion that society, like the physical world, operates according to its own internal forces and patterns. To Comte the goal was nothing less than a gradual understanding of all the laws of social life. This approach is often called positivism, which may be defined as the assertion that science, rather than any other type of human understanding, is the path to knowledge. As sociology became established as an academic discipline in the United States at the beginning of this century, early sociologists such as Lester Ward (18411913) were strongly influenced by Comte's ideas. Today as well, many sociologists share Comte's belief that science is a crucial element of sociology. But other sociologists do not agree that science can be applied to the social world in the same way it is applied to the physical world. These sociologists point out that the causes of human behaviour are often more complex than the causes of events in the natural world. In other words, human beings are more than physical objects; they are creatures with considerable imagination and spontaneity whose behaviour can never be fully explained in terms of any scientific «laws of society». 363 II. Answer the following questions: 1. Who is regarded a father of sociology? 2. What scholars were deeply concerned with social life? 3. What hindered the development of science? 4. What is the essence of Comte's law? 5. What is the basis of theological stage? 6. What is the essence of metaphysical stage? 7. Where is this approach mainly found? 8- What is the scientific approach based on? 9. How may positivism be defined? 10. When did sociology become established as an academic discipline? 11. Is there complete agreement among sociologists on treating science? 12. Whose viewpoint would you support? III. Complete the following sentences: 1. Auguste Comte is widely regarded as ... . 2. Prior to the birth of sociology, philosophers and theologians were primarily concerned with ... . 3. The major goal of the pioneering sociologists Comte and Durkheim was to ... . 4. In the medieval period people's view of humanity was shaped by ... . 5. Scientific understanding of the natural world is connected with such names as ... . 6. Comte's «law of the three stages» includes ... . 7. Theological stage is based on ... . 8. At the metaphysical stage abstract forces were believed to ... . 9. Scientific approach focuses attention on ... . 10. Today many sociologists share Comte's belief that... 364 IV. V. 1) 2) 3) VI. Divide the text into logical parts and make up an outline of the text. Speak on: Auguste Comte as «the father of sociology». His law of the three stages of development. Further development of sociology. Read the text and entitle it: Auguste Comte was born in southern France, grew up in a conservative family in the wake of the French Revolution, and spent most of the life in Paris. The dramatic social changes that were taking place around him stimulated his interest in society. From the Greek and Latin words meaning «the study of society», he derived the word sociology. The foundation of Comte's work was an attempt to apply scientific methods to the study of society and to the practical task of social reform. In his own lifetime, scientific thinking was becoming more sophisticated and influential than ever before, increasing human knowledge about the physical world. Why not, Comte reasoned, apply the same scientific methods to understanding the social world? In Comte's view, sociology should attempt to determine the laws that govern human social behaviour, in much the same way that natural laws govern the operation of the physical world. Comte's sociological study was concerned with what he called social statics — how society maintains itself as a cohesive system of many interrelated parts — and social dynamics — how society changes in an orderly way according to specific social laws. Few sociologists today would agree that society operates according to absolute and invariable laws; yet most sociologists accept the idea that the study should be concerned with both social stability and social change. Most sociologists also agree that sociology should be based, as much as possible, on scientific methods. 365 VII. Read the text once more and find the answers to the following questions: 1. What 2. What 3. What 4. What VIII. sentences. does the word «sociology» mean? was the foundation of Comte's work? was his sociological study concerned with? should sociology be based on? Summarize the contents of the text in 6 WORD STUDY I. Find in the text «The Origins of Sociology» English equivalents for: намного моложе; точно так же; глубоко интересоваться; другими словами; главным образом; по крайней мере; постепенно; однако; благодаря усилиям; научный подход; отражение; древний мир; непосредственно; вместо; согласно; находиться под сильным влия¬нием; посредством. II. Find in the text synonyms for: sources, for instance, to comprise, to call, to be considered as, latest, to be founded on, question, main, significance, works, in the same way, middle age, to be interested in, before, pattern, of course, chief objective, really, people, thanks to the efforts, to appear, to offer, to involve, reason, purpose, to determine, road, also. III. Find in the text sentences with the wordcombinations - «to be concerned with, to be interested in, to be influenced by» — and translate them into Russian. IV. Make up your own sentences with: 366 to be concerned with to be interested in to be influenced by V. Answer the following questions: 1. What are you mainly interested in? 2. What are you deeply concerned with in your sociological research? 3. What is your friend greatly interested in? 4. What sociological ideas are you influenced by? VI. Ask your partner similar questions in order to ascertain his interests and ideas. VII.Look through the text on A. Comte and say what he was particularly concerned with. VIII. Complete the following sentences: 1. The Greek philosophers and theologians were deeply concerned with ... . 2. Emile Durkheim was greatly interested in ... . 3. Pioneering sociologists were much influenced by ... . 4. Natural scientists of the medieval era were greatly influenced by ... . 5. Thomas Hobbes was particularly concerned with ... . 6. Modern sociologists are deeply interested in ... . 367 UNIT IV I. Read and translate the text: Sociological Theory The discipline of sociology involves more than a distinctive point of view. The sociological perspective illuminates new facts in countless familiar situations; but linking specific observations together in a meaningful way involves another element of the discipline, theory. In the simplest terms, a theory is an explanation of the relationship between two or more specific facts. To illustrate the use of theory in sociology, recall Emile Durkheim's study of suicide. Durkheim attempted to explain why some categories of people (males, Protestants, the wealthy, and the unmarried) have higher suicide rates that do others (females, Catholics, the poor, and the married). To do so, he linked one set of facts - suicide rates — to another set of facts — the level of social integration characteristic of these various categories of people. Through systematic comparisons, Durkheim was able to develop a theory of suicide, namely, that people with low social integration are more prone to take their own lives. To provide another illustration, how might we explain the sociological observation that college science courses in the United States typically contain more men than women? One theoretical approach would suggest that the sciences are more attractive to males than to females; perhaps males simply have a greater innate interest in science. Another possibility is that American society encourages males to develop an interest in science while simultaneously discouraging this interest in females. A third theoretical approach might suggest that the educational system has some formal or informal policy that limits the enrollment of women in science courses. 368 As this example suggests, there may be more than one theoretical explanation for any particular issue. Therefore, the ability to link facts together into a meaningful theory does not in itself mean that theory is correct. In order to evaluate contrasting theories, sociologists make use of various methods of scientific research. As sociologists use these scientific methods to gather more and more information, they are able to confirm some theories while rejecting or modifying others. In the early decades of this century, several sociologists interested in the rapid growth of cities developed theories that linked city living to distinctive patterns of human behaviour such as pronounced impersonality and even mental illness. However, research completed during subsequent decades has found that living in a large city does not necessarily result in social isolation, nor does it diminish mental health. Within any discipline therefore, theory is never static, because sociologists are continually carrying out research, sociological theory is always being refined. II. Answer the following questions: 1. What is meant by theory? 2. What did E. Durkheim base his research on? 3. What is the essence of his suicide theory? 4. What sociological observation was made among college science students? 5. What do sociologists make use of to evaluate contrasting theories? 6. Is a theory static or changeable within any discipline? 7. Do you agree with the point that men are more prone to science study? III. Agree or disagree with the following: 1. The sociological perspective illuminates new facts in unfamiliar situations. 2. A theory is the explanation of the relationship between two or more specific facts. 369 3. It is possible to develop a rational theory through systematic observations and comparisons. 4. The ability to link facts together into a meaningful theory means that the theory is correct. 5. To evaluate contrasting theories sociologists make use of various methods of research. 6. Within any discipline theory is never static. V. Divide the text into logical parts and make up a plan of the text. VI. Speak on the text. VII. Contradict the following statements: 1. People with low social integration are less prone to suicides. 2. Sciences are more attractive to males than to females. 3. Living in a large city results in social isolation. VII.Translate the text in writing: Social Change and the Development of Sociology The gradual development of scientific thought in Europe was one important foundation of sociology. But something more was involved: revolutionary change in European society itself. The increasing importance of science is but one dimension of the modernization of Europe. Social change, of course, is continuous but European societies experienced particularly rapid transformations during the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries. In the midst of intense social change that often reached crisis proportions, people were less likely to take society for granted. Indeed, as the social ground shook under their feet, they focused more and more on society, which stimulated the 370 emergence of the sociological perspective. Three dimensions of social change occurred in that era, each truly revolutionary in its own right. First, various technological innovations in eighteenth-century Europe led to the appearance of factories, initially in England. This new way of producing material goods soon gave rise to an industrial economy. Second, factories located within cities drew millions of people from the countryside, where agriculture had been the traditional livelihood. As a result, the growth of industry was accompanied by the explosive growth of cities. Third, the development of the economy and the growth of cities were linked to changes in political ideas. While sociology is thus European in its origins, the new discipline did not take hold everywhere in Europe during the nineteenth century. On the contrary, the development of sociology was stimulated by most in precisely those societies that had experienced the greatest social changes during the preceding centuries. In France, Germany, and England - where social transformations had been truly revolutionary - sociology was flowering by the end of the nineteenth century. Conversely, in societies touched less by these momentous events — including Portugal, Spain, Italy and Eastern Europe - there was little development of sociological awareness. Many of the crucial ideas within the discipline of sociology also owed their development to rapid social change, largely because many, if not most, early sociologists found the drastic social changes deeply disturbing. Auguste Comte, a social conservative, feared that people were being overpowered by change and were losing the support of traditional social institutions, including the family and religion, as well as the local community. Strongly disagreeing with «modernists», who claimed that society was simply an expression of individual self-interest Comte believed that traditional social bonds were basic units of society. In sum, the birth of sociology, its scientific method of 371 study, and its emphasis on social patterns rather than on the individual are all related to the historical changes. WORD STUDY I. Find in the text «Sociological Theory» English equivalents for: точка зрения; бесчисленный; набор фактов; а именно; более склонны; одновременно; любой частный вопрос; следовательно; для того чтобы; извлекать пользу; внутри; проводить исследование. II. Find in the text antonyms for: indefinite, unfamiliar, meaningless, complex, to forget, similar, to be unable, repulsive, learned, to discourage, wrong, to accept a theory, late, slow, personality, to start. III. Fill in the blanks with the words given below in the brackets: 1. People ... greatly ………….society since the beginning of human history. 2. Systematic studies of the society carried out by the social thinkers …. ….. ….. appearing a new science sociology. 3. They are planning …. ….. ….. …. on the basis of a new scientific approach. 4. The scholars ... primarily …. .... the investigation of the sociological perspective. 5. Early sociologists ... strongly …. . ... Comte's ideas. 6. The scholars ... constant …. …. his ways of interpreting and analyzing new phenomena. 7. They always .... scientific methods of investigation in any particular observation. 8. He …. …. …. take part in the discussion concerning the operation of social laws within the society. 372 (to be influenced by, to encourage, to be interested in, to be concerned with, to make use of, to give rise to, to be prone to, to carry out research). VI. Read and translate the following sentences taking into account different meanings of the word «experience»: 1. He experienced great hardships in the life, but in spite of that he continued his work in the field of sociological research. 2. They considered him to be a very experienced scholar as far the sociological perspective was concerned. 3. His experience was great and he readily encouraged such innovative strivings. 4. They experienced_true feelings of friendship to each other and this devotion lasted all their life. 5. The situation was out of being ordinary and he understood her experiences quite well. 6. Recent decades of our century experienced tremendous transformations in all spheres of the life. 7. He described the situation in such a way as if he experienced it himself. 8. His experience in this field was quite evident and nobody doubted it. V. Role-play. You are being asked to make a report at the coming conference. You are prone to refuse, because you have never participated in such meetings. That is your first experience and you hesitate. But your friend is more optimistic and assures you there is nothing to be afraid of. Use in your dialogue the following word-combinations: «to be interested in, to encourage, to carry out research, to make use of, to give rise to». 373 UNIT V I. Read the text and answer the following questions: 1. Who gave the definition of a theoretical paradigm? 2. How do sociologists understand the image of society? 3. Can we say that sociological theory is utter chaos? Theoretical Paradigms In attempting to develop theories about human society, sociologists face a wide range of choices. What issues should they choose to study? What facts should they link together to form theories? Question such as this is not answered in a haphazard fashion; rather, theory building is guided by a general framework that sociologists call a theoretical paradigm. Following the ideas of George Ritzer (1983) a theoretical paradigm is a fundamental image of society that suggests what Questions should be asked and how answers produced by research should be interpreted. Although all sociologists make use of one general perspective, they do not all base their work on the same image of society. Some sociologists emphasize the fact that societies often remain remarkably stable over time; others focus on social change. Similarly, while some direct attention to ways in which people are united through their common membership in a single society, others emphasize how society divides people according to sex, race, or social class. Moreover, while some sociologists define their goal as explaining the operation of society as it exists, others attempt to encourage what they consider to be desirable social change. Finally, while some sociologists attempt to address the operation of society as a whole, others find the most interesting questions in the patterns of individual interaction within specific situations. In short all sociologists do not agree about what the most interesting or useful questions are. Even when they do agree on the questions, they often disagree on the 374 answers. This does not mean, however, that sociological theory is utter chaos, because sociologists tend to organize their work by using one or more of three major theoretical paradigms. II. 1) 2) 3) Be ready to speak on: The structural-functional paradigm. The social-conflict paradigm. The symbolic-interaction paradigm. III. You have just heard three reports. What paper do you think to be the best one? Give your arguments. Use the following: I'd like to say that... First of all, I want to say that... I think it's important to consider the question of ... What I think is ... I'm convinced that ... That's an interesting point of view but ... I'd like to support the point of view about... IV. Read and translate the text: The Methods of Sociological Research Four research methods are widely employed in sociological investigation. A method is a strategy for carrying out research in a systematic way - comparable to a blueprint used in building or a recipe in cooking. The four methods discussed here are all expressions of the logic of science. They differ, however, in the specific ways in which observations are made and in the kinds of questions they help us answer. No method is in an absolute sense better or worse than any other; each has characteristic strengths and weaknesses so that any method is particularly suited for certain kinds of research. Experiments. The logic of science is clearly expressed in the experiment — a method that seeks to specify a cause- 375 and-effect relationship among variables. Experimental research, in other words, is explanatory in character, attempting to show what factors in the social world cause change to occur in other factors. Experiments are typically based on the text of a specific hypothesis — a theoretical statement of a relationship between independent and dependent variables. The goal of an experiment is to find out whether or not the hypothesis is supported by empirical evidence. Thus an experiment involves three steps: (1) the dependent variable is measured; (2) the dependent variable is exposed to the effects of the independent variable; (3) the dependent variable is measured again to see what (if any) change has taken place. Survey Research A survey is a method of contacting individuals in order to obtain responses to a series of items or questions; it is the most widely used of all research methods in sociology. Surveys are particularly useful when we are seeking answers to specific questions, especially when what we want to know cannot be observed directly, such as the political preferences and religious beliefs of individuals, patterns of sexual attraction, or the private lives of married couples. Because surveys typically involve the number of different variables, they (like experiments) are appropriate for conducting explanatory research, in which we attempt to specify the relationship among several variables, seeking correlations or even causal links among them. Surveys are also commonly used in descriptive research, in which a sociologist attempts to describe some category of people with regard to one or more variables of interest. 376 Questionnaires and Interviews Selecting the subjects who will be contacted is only the first step in carrying out a survey. Also required is a specific way to ask questions and record answers. Two commonly used techniques are questionnaires and interviews. A questionnaire is a series of questions or items to which all subjects are asked to respond. In most cases, the respondent is provided with possible responses to each item, so that the process of answering only involves selecting the best response (the format is similar to multiple-choice examination questions). Analyzing the results of the survey is easy because the possible responses have been limited by the researcher. A questionnaire that provides a set of responses to the subject has a closed-ended format. In some cases, however, a researcher might want to let a subject respond in an entirely free way. In an open-ended format the subjects are able to express their responses however they wish, which allows subtle shades of opinion to come through. Of course, the researcher later has to make sense out of what can be a bewildering array of answers. How to present the questions to subjects is a major decision for every study that uses a questionnaire. Most often, a questionnaire is mailed to respondents who are asked to complete the form and then return it to the researcher, usually also by mail. This technique is called a self-administered survey. When subjects respond to such questionnaires, no researcher is present, of course; so the questionnaire must be prepared in an attractive way, with clear instructions and questions that are easy to understand. In self-administered surveys, it is especially important to pretest the questionnaire with a small group of people before sending it to all subjects in the study. The small investment of time and money involved can help prevent the costly problem of finding out too late - that 377 instructions or questions were not clear to respondents. Researchers may also use the interview (sometimes called an interview-survey), which is a questionnaire administered personally to the subject by the researcher. Interviews are especially useful if the items have an openended format because the researcher can ask follow-up questions, both to probe a bit more deeply and to clarify the subject's responses. The researcher must be careful not to influence a subject's responses, however; sometimes even raising an eyebrow as someone begins to answer a question can be enough to change a response. The advantage of an interview is that a subject is more likely to complete a questionnaire in the presence of a researcher. One disadvantage is that tracking people down is often a difficult job, and more than one attempt may be necessary. Another is that if all subjects do not live in the same area, the costs of conducting research in this way can become extremely high. V. Enumerate all methods of sociological research. What method do you consider to be the most productive? Give your reasons. VI. Answer the following questions: 1. What is defined by a method? 2. What kind of method is an experiment? 3. What are experiments based on? 4. How would you define a hypothesis? 5. What is the goal of an experiment? 6. What steps does an experiment involve? 7. Where is it better to conduct an experiment? 8. In what way would you characterize a survey? 9. What research may be conducted by means of a survey? 10. What is a questionnaire? 378 11. What kinds of questionnaires may there be? 12. What is the difference between these two types? 13. How may a questionnaire be presented? 14. What is meant by a self-administered survey? 15. What are the advantages and disadvantages of an interview? VII.Characterize research. each method of sociological VIII. Make up a questionnaire on the topic «Who is the leading personality in the country?» IX. Conduct an interview with: 1) One of the leading sociologists. 2) A criminal who killed a man in the heat of rage. 3) A researcher from the All- Russia Public Opinion Poll Centre. WORD STUDY I. Find in the text English equivalents for: проводить исследования; в абсолютном смысле; лучше или хуже; сильные стороны и слабые; переменная; с учетом; испытуемые; во многих случаях; набор ответов; совершенно свободно; ставящий в тупик; по почте; слишком поздно; преимущество; недостаток. II. Arrange the following words into the pairs of synonyms: research method to conduct to vary definite to carry out especially typically to select technique 379 particularly cause to occur generally aim result to choose important certain to take place effect investigation to differ reason goal significant III. Translate the following sentences into Russian with: in relation to with regard to with respect to 1. He treated this phenomenon in relation to the extreme environmental conditions. 2. They decided to change the experimental procedure with regard to the new circumstances. 3. They examined the given problem with respect to a new approach. 4. He didn't know anything at all in relation to her point of view. 5. He was very attentive with regard to her position. 6. With respect to his theory of cognition the issue was of certain interest. 7. He was quite right in relation to his treatment of their methods of inquiry. 8. They investigated human attitudes with regard to nonverbal communication. 9. The problem arose only with respect to his way of observation. 10. She made an interesting report in relation to the new data. IV. Make up sentences with: To carry out a research 380 an experiment a public opinion poll an investigation a survey an inquiry V. Develop the following situations: 1. One day you were preparing for an experiment with a group of subjects- But suddenly you find out that your questionnaires disappeared. What is your reaction? In what way would you conduct an inquiry? 2. You are asked to carry out a public opinion poll. What would you start with? 3. What would you recommend to the beginners in carrying out an interview? 381 UNIT VI I. Read and translate the text: The Structure of Social Interaction Because society is an organized system, it is not surprising that social interaction is patterned. Society is, after all, built on countless interactions among individual human beings, and human beings have the capacity to act with almost infinite variety. In the absence of social patterns, people would indeed find social life confusing. Culture provides guidelines for human behaviour in the form of values and norms. To illustrate, consider the familiar setting of an American college classroom. Entering the classroom, students could do almost anything - begin to sing or throw a football around the room-but, guided by the social norms that apply to that setting, they routinely take their seats, perhaps talking quietly among themselves, and await the arrival of the professor. Even though professors are defined as being in charge of the class, they too are bound by cultural norms, so they begin to teach from a position at the front of the room while facing the class. Certainly, the behaviour of each student and teacher is partly unique; yet social behaviour in one American classroom is remarkably like that in any other. In spite of personal differences, individuals who enter the classroom behave like «professors» or «students». This fact is clearly evident to people who return, after many years, to a school they once attended. The school is now filled with unfamiliar faces, but the social patterns remain much the same. In other words, even though different people come and go from this setting, the social structure of classroom behaviour persists over time. In the same way, although every family is composed of different individuals, the behaviour of «mothers», «fathers», «brothers», and «sisters» is also largely patterned according to cultural norms. 382 Social Structure and Individuality The assertion that human behaviour is socially patterned often provokes some initial resistance. Few human beings readily admit to being part of any kind of system, especially those who live in a culture that prizes individual autonomy. Americans, for instance, tend to emphasize individual responsibility for behaviour and highlight the unique elements of their personalities. Behaving in patterned ways, however, does not threaten our individuality. On the contrary, individuality is encouraged by social structure. First, and more generally, our humanity involves much more than physical existence. The great potential of human beings develops only thorough interaction with others. Within social life, distinct personalities emerge as people blend their unique qualities with the values and norms of the large culture from freely expressing ourselvs. The social world can be disorienting, even frightening, to people who do not know the behaviour guidelines. Without this knowledge, people feel too uncomfortable to express their unique personalities with confidence. To illustrate, you may recall going alone to a party given by people you did not know well. Entering such a setting — and not knowing quite what to expect — is likely to cause some anxiety. At such times you generally feel selfconscious, try to make a favorable impression, and look to others for clues about what sort of behaviour is expected of you. Once you understand the behavioral standards that apply to the setting, you are likely to feel comfortable enough to «act like yourself». Of course, social structure also places some constraints on human behaviour. By guiding behaviour within culturally approved bounds, established social patterns discourage behaviour that is culturally defined as unconventional. Traditional values and norms in the 383 United States and Canada, for example, still reflect the expectation that males will be «masculine» (physically strong, self-assertive, and rational) and the females will be «feminine» (physically weak, self-effacing, and emotional). The structure of society exerts pressure on individuals to fit into one or the other of these categories, ignoring the fact that most people have both «masculine» and «feminine» qualities. In this and many other ways, social structure can limit any individual's freedom to think and act in ways that may be personally preferred. In addition, the failure to conform to established social patterns may lead to being defined by others as deviant. II. Answer the following questions: 1. Why do we say that social interaction is patterned? 2. What does culture provide? 3. So, according to what is our behaviour patterned? 4. What may this assertion provoke? 5. Does behaving in patterned ways threaten our individuality in any way? 6. Through what does the potential of human beings develop? 7. In what case do people feel uncomfortable? 8. What do you feel in an unfamiliar situation? 9. What does social structure place on human behaviour? 10. What is understood by unconventional behaviour? 11. What pressure does the structure of society exert on individuals? 12. What can social structure limit? III. Prove the following statements: 1. Social interaction is patterned. 2. Culture provides guidelines for human behaviour. 3. The human behaviour is patterned according to 384 cultural norms. 4. Behaving in patterned ways does not threaten our individuality. 5. A great potential of human beings develops through interaction. IV. State the general idea of each paragraph of the text. V. Express your opinion of the text. Use the following words for the characteristic: important - inconclusive essential — trivial well-presented - muddle interesting - dull valid - inaccurate, wrong ( conclusions ) VI. Summarize the contents of the text in 10 sentences. VII.Translate dictionary: the text in writing without a Summary 1. Sociology is more than a perspective; it is also a form of investigation that uses the logic of science to learn about the social world. 2. The logic of science is an important foundation of all sociological research and, more broadly, a valuable means of evaluating information we encounter every day. 3. There are three basic requirements of sociological investigation: (1) being aware of the larger social world; (2) using the sociological perspective; and (3) being curious and asking questions about society. 385 4. There are many different ways of knowing, including personal experience, faith, acceptance of information provided by experts, and social agreement. Scientific knowledge is based on empirical evidence, and as such, may contradict to our common sense. 5. The logic of science makes use of concepts and variables. Concepts are abstract ideas that represent elements of society; concepts that vary in value are called variables. Measurement is the process of determining the value of a variable in any specific case. Sound measurement has the qualities of reliability and validity. 6. The logic of science seeks to specify the relationship among variables. Ideally, researchers seek relationships of cause and effect in which one factor (the independent variable) is shown to cause change in another factor (the dependent variable). In many cases, however, sociological investigation can only demonstrate that two variables vary together - a relationship called correlation. 7. The logic of science demands objectivity on the part of a researcher. While issues chosen for investigation may reflect personal interests, personal values and biases must be suspended in conducting the research. 8. The logic of science was developed primarily through studying the natural world. Although science can be used to study social behaviour, it has important limitations for doing so. 9. Curiosity and imagination, necessary for all successful research, spring from the human mind and not from the logic of science. Moreover, all human reality is based on patterns of meaning. The process of interpretation is therefore part of all sociological investigation. 10. All sociological research has ethical implications. 386 Word study I. Find in the text “The structure of social interaction” English equivalents for: В конце концов; социальные модели; нормы поведения; в обществе; во главе; конечно; отчасти; несмотря на; во многом такие же; другими словами; окружение (среда); с готовностью; например; напротив; ограничить свободу; кроме того. II. Arrange the following words into the pairs of antonyms: Disorganized Chaos Infinite In the presence Lose Unfamiliar Leave Finish Noisily Departure Ordinary Similarity In the same way Seldom Disappear Comfortable Strong Limited Familiar Quietly Difference Emerge Organized In the absence Enter Arrival In other words Uncomfortable System Find Begin Unique Often Weak III. Make up sentences choosing an appropriate variant from the second column: l.The scientist was guided by ... 2.The room was filled with ... 3.His theory is built on ... 387 4.Human behaviour is defined by ... 5.Social interaction is patterned ... 6.His activity is encouraged by ... 7.He is in charge of ... 1) Cultural values and norms. 2) The working team. 3) The latest scientific discoveries. 4) The Sociology Research Institute. 5) Unfamiliar faces. 6) Empirical investigation. 7) As society is an organized system. IV. Make up dialogues according to the following situations: 1) An odd person comes to you. He says you were friends years ago. You have never met him before and you suspect his motives. 2) Your friend is acting very strangely. You feel he has a secret worry. Find out what is wrong with him. 3) Ask your friend to prove that the quality of personality is not inborn. It is a social phenomenon. Ask him whether we can predict a man's behaviour in a certain situation and what measurements of personality exist, what they are called. 4) You are an introvert by nature, you are unable to overcome uncertainty in taking decisions and often experience troubles in life. You are asked to organize a conference, but you are afraid to accept such an offer. Your friend tries to persuade you to agree. Note: The following word-combinations may be helpful: To be concerned with, to be interested in, to be guided by, to be encouraged by, to be in charge of, to be filled with, to be prone to, to make use of. 388 UNIT VII I. Look through the text and find the definitions of: 1. Role; 2. Role set; 3. Role strain; 4. Role conflict. II. Read and translate the text; Role A second major component of social interaction is_role. which refers to patterns of behaviour corresponding to a particular status. Ralph Linton described a role as the dynamic expression of a status. A student has a role that involves patterned interaction with professors and other students, and responding to academic demands made by the college. As Linton explained, while individuals occupy a status, they perform a role. Cultural norms suggest how a person who holds a particular status ought to act, which is often called a role expectation. However, real culture only approximates ideal culture; therefore, actual role performance usually varies from role expectation. Like status, a role is relational by directing social behaviour toward some other person. The role that corresponds to the status of parent, for example, is ideally defined in terms of responsibilities toward a child. Correspondingly, the role of son or daughter is ideally defined in terms of obligations toward a parent. There are countless other examples of roles paired in this way: the behaviour of wives and husbands is performed in;; relation to each other, as is the behaviour of physicians and patients, and of professors and students. Because individuals occupy many statuses at one time a status set - they perform multiple roles. Yet a person has even more roles than statuses because any one status involves performing several roles in relation to various other people. Robert Merton (1968) introduced the term 389 role set to identify a number of roles attached to a single status. Figure 1. Status Set and Role Set Figure 1 illustrates the status set and corresponding role sets of one individual. Four statuses are presented, each linked to a different role set. First this woman occupies the status of «wife». Corresponding to this status is a role set that includes her behaviour towards her husband (the «conjugal role») and her responsibilities in maintaining the household (the «domestic role»). Second, she also holds the status of «mother». Part of this role set is the care of children (the «maternal role») and her activities in various organizations (the «civic role»). Third, as a teacher, she interacts with students (the «teaching role») and other professors (the «colleague role»). Fourth, as a researcher, she gathers (the «laboratory role») that is the basis for her publications (the «author role»). Figure 1 is, of course, only a partial listing of this individual's status set 390 and role sets; a person generally occupies dozens of statuses at one time, each linked to a role set. Strain and Conflict The several roles that are linked to any particular status are not always easily integrated, so an individual can feel pulled in several directions at once. Role strain is defined as incompatibility among the roles corresponding to a single status. When several roles linked to a single status make competing demands a person may not always be able to live up to social expectations. A parent, for example, may have difficulty with simultaneous responsibilities to discipline a child and to be the child's trusted confidant. In addition, roles attached to different statuses often demand incompatible patterns of behaviour. The concept of role conflict refers to incompatibility among the roles corresponding to two or more statuses. Single parents often experience role conflict in their attempt to be both parents and bread winners - each status demands considerable time and energy. Consequently, the individual may find that both roles cannot be fully performed simultaneously. III. Answer the following questions: l.When do the individuals perform roles? 2.What is called a role expectation? З.Аrе role performance and role expectation the same or different notions? 4.Does a person have more roles or statuses? 5.What is the difference between role strain and role conflict? 391 IV. Make up disjunctive questions: 1. A role is described as the dynamic expression of a status. 2. Actual role performance usually varies from role expectation. 3. Individuals occupy many statuses at one time. 4. People perform multiple roles. 5. A person has more roles than statuses. 6. Roles attached to different statuses often demand incompatible patterns of behaviour. V. 1. 2. 3. Explain: the difference between «role» and «status»; the cause of «role strain»; the reason of «role conflict». VI. Summarize the contents of the text in 10 sentences. VII. Identify a number of roles played by: 1) your parents; 2) your close friend; 3) your neighbour; 4) you personally. VIII. Russian: Read the text and give its general idea in Dramaturgical Analysis: «The Presentation of Self» Dramaturgical analysis is the analysis of social interaction as if it were a theatrical performance. This approach to the study of social interaction is closely associated with the work of Erving Goffman (1922-1980). Goffman agreed that people socially construct reality, but emphasized that in doing so, they make use of various 392 elements of social structure. Thus, like a director carefully scrutinizing actors on a stage, Goffman sought to identify social structures that are used over and over again. Dramaturgical analysis provides a fresh look at two now familiar concepts. A status is very much like a part in a play, and a role can be compared to a script that supplies dialogue and action to each of the characters. Roles are performed in countless settings that are like a stage in a theatre, and are observed by various audiences. The heart of Goffman's analysis is the process he called the presentation of self, which means the ways in which individuals, in various settings, attempt to create specific impressions in the minds of others. This process is also called impression management, and contains a number of common elements. IX. Answer the questions: 1. 2. 3. 4. What What What What problem does the text deal with? kind of analysis is dramaturgical analysis? does «the presentation of self» mean? is the other name for it? X. Play these roles, please: 1. You are the young mother and leader of the Ecology Committee. You want your children to grow up in a clean, traffic-free environment. You are trying to explain your position to a social worker who has come for the permission of a new traffic route in your residential area. 2. You are a sociologist. You are interviewing a married couple that decided to take a child from a foundling home. Find out about their background, and what they can offer a child. Find out why they want to adopt him, and if they are aware of the problems that may arise. Remember, this is a difficult situation for all involved, so your questions should be less direct and more tactful than usual. 393 3. You are interviewing a newly-married couple. Try to find out tactfully about their likes and dislikes. Give them some advice if necessary. WORD STUDY I. Find in the texts English equivalents for: соответствующий; приближаться; посредством; одновременно; ряд ролей; вести хозяйство; частичный перечень; несовместимость; следовательно; тесно связан; снова и снова; суть анализа. II. Read and translate the following words and their derivatives: interact - interaction - interactant - interacting correspond — correspondence — corresponding — correspondingly respond - response - respondent perform — performance expect - expectation - expectancy relate — relation — relational — relative — relatively introduce - introduction - introductory incompatible - incompatibility analyze - analysis - analyst III. Read and translate the following sentences: 1. The problem must be explained in terms of dialectical materialism. 2. By means of this definition lie managed to explicate the issue. 3. They pointed to the drawbacks of his theory by means of a new hypothesis. 4. In ..terms of his viewpoint the scholar solved this complicated problem. 5. He analyzed the phenomenon of creativity in terms of the new approach. 394 6. By means of his analysis they made a correct conclusion. 7. In terms of his interpretation the issue was properly examined. IV. Make up questions and ask your friend on: What is ... associated with? What are ... associated with? . V. Complete the following sentences: 1. Single parents experience role conflict in ... 2. I experienced hardships while ... . 3. He experiences true feelings toward ... . 4. Recent years experienced great transformations in ... 5. I experience joy when ... . 6. They experience troubles in ... . VI. Answer: l. What do you experience when you receive a letter from your girl - (boy-) friend? 2. « if you are telling a lie? 3. « when you cannot get tickets for a concert? 4. « when your friend deceives you? 5. « if you fail at an examination? 6 « when you meet your favourite actor (actress )? 395 UNIT VIII I. Read the text and do exercises that follow it: Kinds of Groups We have already found out that sociology, as one of its main objects, studies social institutions and social relations, social bodies and social groups. Sociologists were early concerned with the problem of classifying groups as well. They have proposed many different classificatory schemes for the specific groups. They make up their classifications on the basis of selecting a few properties and define 'types' of groups on the principle whether these properties are present or absent. Among the properties most often employed are size (number of members), amount of physical interaction among members, degree of intimacy, level of solidarity, focus of control of group activities and tendency of members to react on one another as individual persons. On the basis of these properties the following kinds of groups have been identified: formal - informal, primary secondary, small - large, autonomous - dependent, temporary — permanent. Sometimes sociologists make up their classifications of the groups according to their objectives or social settings. These are such groups as work groups, therapy groups, social groups, committees, clubs, gangs, teams, religious groups, and the like. II. Answer the following questions: 1. What does sociology study as one of its main objects? 2. What were sociologists early concerned with? 3. They have proposed many different classificatory schemes, haven't they? 4. What is the basis of their classification? 5. What properties are most often employed? 396 6. What kinds of groups are identified on the basis of these properties? 7. What other principle do sociologists employ in their classifications? 8. Give examples of formal groups, informal groups, primary groups, secondary groups. III. Agree or disagree with the following: Use: You are right. Sorry, but you are wrong. 1. One of the main objects of the sociologists is to study social bodies and social groups. 2. Sociologists have begun classifying groups quite recently. 3. They make up their group classifications on the basis of a few properties. 4. But sociologists failed to identify these groups. 5. Sometimes they classify groups according to their objectives and social settings. 6. There is no clear-cut difference between primary and secondary groups. 7. Work groups are formal groups. IV. Find the facts to prove that: 1. Sociologists have proposed many different classificatory schemes of the groups. 2. They have managed to identify some properties for their classifications. 3. They have identified different groups. 4. There are some groups according to their objectives or social settings. V. Divide the text into three logical parts. VI. Characterize in brief: 1. Properties of the groups. 2. Group classifications. 397 VII. Discuss in the group the following problems: 1. Formal - informal groups. 2. Your own group as a secondary group. VIII. Read the text and say what is meant by cohesiveness. The Nature of Group Cohesiveness The term 'group cohesiveness’ is widely discussed by sociologists. Although different sociologists attribute different properties to the term, most agree that group cohesiveness is the degree to which the members of a group desire to remain in the group. Thus, the members of a highly cohesive group, in contrast to the group with a low level of cohesiveness, are more interested in their membership, in group objectives and activities. Cohesiveness increases the significance of membership for those who belong to the group. Cohesiveness, as sociologists state, develops a general group atmosphere that determines members’ reaction to the group as a whole. Some groups are business-like, impersonal and efficient. Others are warm, relaxed and friendly. And still others are full of tension. These differences between groups are the subject of constant sociological research. IX. Answer: Do you think of your group as cohesive? Give your reasons. X. Find in the text synonyms for: To discover; chief; to be interested in; also; to offer; to choose; on the foundation; to use; to isolate; purpose; environment. 398 XI. Answer: What are the sociologists concerned with? Use the words in brackets. The sociologists are concerned with (social institutions, social relations, social groups, group classification, group properties, group types). XII. Make up your own sentences with the following word-combinations: To be concerned with On the basis of To employ something According to To react on something And the like Ask your groupmates to translate them. XIII. Russian: Translate the following sentences into 1. He was greatly concerned with the latest sociological research. 2. In their conversation they concerned a great number of vital problems. 3. His main concern was sociology. 4. They talked much concerning the main points of his report. 5. She was concerned with the problem of social relations at the high level of the society's development. XIV. Read and translate the text: Primary and Secondary Groups Several times a day, one person greets another with a smile and a simple phrase such as «Hi! How are you?» Of 399 course, an honest reply may be actually expected, but not often. Usually the other person responds with a wellscripted «Fine, and how are you?» In most cases, providing a complete account of how one really is doing would lead the other person to make a hasty and awkward exit. The extent of personal concern for others in social interaction was used by Charles Horton Cooley to draw a distinction between two general types of social groups. The primary group is a social group in which interaction is both personal and enduring. Within primary groups, people have personal and lasting ties Cooley designated as primary relationships. The members of primary groups share broad dimensions of their lives, generally come to know a great deal about one another, and display genuine concern for another's welfare. The family is perhaps the most important primary group within any society. Cooley used the term primary because social groups of this kind are among the first groups we experience in life and are important in shaping our personal attitudes and behaviour. They are also of major importance in shaping our social identity, which is reflected in the fact that the members of any primary group typically think of themselves as «we». The strength of primary relationships gives individuals a considerable sense of comfort and security, which is clearly evident in personal performances. Within the familiar social environment of family or friends, people tend to feel they can be themselves and not worry about being continually evaluated by others. At the office, for example, people are usually self-conscious about their clothing and behaviour; at home, they feel free to dress and act more or less as they wish. Members of primary groups certainly provide many personal benefits to one another, including financial as well as emotional support. But people generally perceive the primary group as an end in itself rather than as a means to other ends. Thus, for example, we expect a family member or close friend to help us without pay when 400 we move into a new apartment. At the same time, primary group members usually do expect that such help will be mutual. A person who consistently helps a friend who never returns the favour is likely to feel used and question the depth of the friendship. A contrasting type of social group is the secondary group: a social group in which interaction is impersonal and transitory. Within a secondary group, which usually contains more people than a primary group, individuals share situational ties that are called secondary relationships. For example, individuals who work together in an office, enroll in the same college course, or belong to a particular political organization usually constitute a secondary group. The opposite of the characteristics that describe primary groups apply to secondary groups. Secondary relationships involve little personal knowledge and weak emotional ties. They vary in duration, but are usually short-term, beginning and ending without particular significance. True, people may work in an office for decades with the same co-workers, but a more typical example of secondary relationships is students in a college course who never see one another after the semester ends. Since secondary groups are limited to a single specific activity or interest, their members have little chance to develop a deep concern for one another's overall welfare. Secondary groups are less significant than primary groups for personal identity. Although people in a secondary group sometimes think of themselves in terms of «we», the boundary that distinguishes members from nonmembers is usually far less clear than it is in primary groups. Secondary groups are important mostly as a means of achieving certain specific ends. If relationships within primary groups have a personal orientation, those within secondary groups have a goal orientation. This does not mean that secondary relationships are always formal and unemotional. On the contrary, social interaction with fellow students, co-workers, and business contacts can be 401 quite enjoyable. But personal pleasure is not what prompts the formation of secondary groups in the first place. In short, while members of a primary group have personal importance on the basis of who they are, members of secondary groups have significance on the basis of what they can do for us. Individuals in primary groups are likely to be sensitive to patterns of social exchange - how benefits received by one member compare to those received by another although such considerations are not of crucial importance. Within secondary groups, however, exchange is very important. In business transactions, for example, the people involved are keenly aware of what they receive for what they offer. Likewise, the secondary relationships that often characterize neighbours are based on the expectation that any neighbourly favour will be reciprocated in the future. The goal orientation of secondary groups diverts the focus of social interaction from personal matters to mutually beneficial cooperation. With the wish to maximize these benefits, members of secondary groups are likely to craft their performances carefully, and usually expect others to do the same. Therefore, the secondary relationship is one in which the question «How are you?» may be politely asked without really wanting an answer. XV. Answer the following questions: 1. What groups do sociologists distinguish? 2. Who was the first to speak on the importance of such distinction? 3. What group is called primary? 4. What is the most important primary group for a child? 5. What groups influence the child's social development? 6. How are secondary groups organized? 7. Give examples of such groups. 402 8. What group plays an important part in the formation of personality? 9. What does the child receive within the circle of his family and his playmates? 10. What else does he learn there? XVI. Contradict the following statements. Start your sentence with: «Quite on the contrary...» 1. Primary groups are organized according to special interests of one kind or another. 2. For a young child the school group constitutes the most important group. 3. Secondary groups depend on face to face association. 4. Secondary groups are more characterized with intimate co-operation than primary groups. 5. It is the secondary group that plays the main part in the early formation of personality. 6. Within the secondary group the child receives the direct training as a member of society. XVII. Ask your friend: — who drew a distinction between social groups; — what he understands by a primary group; — what group the family presents; — why the primary groups are of major importance in our lives; — what the strength of primary relationships gives individuals; — what a secondary group is characterized by; — what ties individuals share within the secondary group; — what groups are less significant - primary or secondary; — in what respect group social exchange is more important. 403 ХVIII. Find in the text the facts to prove that: 1. The family constitutes the most important primary group for a child. 2. Membership in a primary group is an important feature of a child's life. 3. Membership in a secondary group is an important feature of an adult life. XIX. Divide the text into logical parts and give a heading to each part. XX. Find a leading sentence in each paragraph of the text. XXI. Comment on the table: Primary Groups and Secondary Groups Quality of relationships Duration of relationships Breadth of relationships Subjective perception of relationships Typical example XXII. groups. XXIII. Primary group Personal orientation Usually longterm Broad; usually involving many activities As an end in itself Secondary group Goal orientation Variable; often short-term Narrow; usually involving few activities As a means to an end Families; close Co-workers; political friendships organizations Give examples of primary and secondary Characterize in brief: 404 I. Primary groups. II. Secondary groups. XXIV. Read the text and say what new information is contained in it: Networks The term social network designates social ties that link people without the intensity of social interaction and common identity of a social group. A social network resembles a social group in that it joins people in social relationships; it differs from a social group because it is not the basis for consistent social interaction and generates little sense of common identity or belonging. Social networks also have no clear boundaries, but expand outward from the individual like a vast web. Social ties within some networks may be relatively primary, as among people who attended college together and have since maintained their friendships by mail and telephone. More commonly, network ties are extremely secondary relationships that involve little personal knowledge. A social network may also contain people we know of or who know of us - but with whom we interact infrequently, if at all. As one woman with a reputation as a community organizer explains, «I get calls at home, someone says, ‘Are you Roseann Navarro? Somebody told to call you. I have this problem…” For this reason, Mark Granovetter has described social networks as clusters of weak ties. Even though social ties within networks may not be strong, these relationships represent a valuable resource that can be used to personal advantage. Perhaps the most common example of the power of networks involves finding a job. Albert Einstein, for example, sought employment for a year after completing his schooling, and only succeeded when the father of one of his classmates put him in touch with the director of an office who was able to provide a job. 405 Thus, even in the case of a person with extraordinary ability, who you know may still be just as important as what you know. Nan Lin and her associates produced evidence of the extent of such network — based opportunities. Conducting a survey of 399 men in an urban area of the United States, Lin found that almost 60 percent had used social networks in finding a job; this approach was much more common that any other. But although social networks may be widespread, Lin found that they do not provide equal advantages to everyone. In her study networks afforded the greatest advantages to men whose fathers held important occupational positions. This reflects the fact that networks tend to contain people with similar social characteristics and social rank, thereby helping to perpetuate patterns of social inequality. XXV. Answer the questions: 1. What does the term «social network» designate? 2. What are the differences and similarities between a social network and a social group? 3. Are social ties within networks strong or weak? XXVI. Give examples when: 1) social ties within networks are primary; 2) social ties are secondary; 3) social ties are weak. WORD STUDY I. Find in the text «Primary and Secondary Groups» English equivalents for: в большинстве случаев; полный отчет; личный интерес; прочные связи; благополучие; формирование установок; скорее чем; быть ограниченным; граница; достигнуть определенной цели; целевая ориентация; напротив; взаимовыгодное сотрудничество. 406 II. Make up word-combinations and translate them into Russian: To display To share - To shape - To be aware of - genuine concern sympathy self-consciousness troubles concern work duties personal attitudes social identity personality world outlook knowledge reality social respect relationships cultural norms mutually beneficial cooperation III. Translate the following sentences into Russian: 1. Such considerations are not of crucial importance. 2. Personal concern in social interaction is of certain value in drawing a distinction between primary and secondary groups. 3. The family is of major significance in shaping personal attitudes and behaviour. 4. The problem of interpersonal relationships is of great interest for the social thinkers. 5. Secondary relationships are of definite importance in the study of social groups of people. 6. Human activity in social community is of deep concern for the sociologists. 407 IV. Make up your own sentences with — «to be of importance, to be of value» — and ask your partner to translate them. V. Answer the following questions: 1. What is of great concern for the sociologists in the study of primary groups? 2. What is of chief significance for you in your subject of investigation? 8. What is of major interest for the sociologists dealing with the public opinion poll? VI. Role-play: 1) You have just come back from the international conference devoted to some problems of social interaction. You think this conference was of great importance. You give your reasons to your friend who is also deeply concerned with the given problem. 2) You see an advertisement in a newspaper which is of deep concern for you. Phone up and find out more about the flat to rent. If the flat sounds suitable, arrange to go round and see it. 408 UNIT IX I. Read and translate the text: Group Dynamics Sociologists describe the operation of social groups as group dynamics. As members of social groups, people are likely to interact according to a number of distinctive patterns. Group Leadership Social groups vary in the extent to which they designate one or more members as leaders, with responsibility to direct the activities of all members. Some friendship groups grant no one the clear status of leader, while others do. Within families, parents generally share leadership responsibilities, although husband and wife sometimes disagree about who is really in charge. In many secondary groups, such as a business office, leadership is likely to involve an established status with clearly defined roles. There are several different ways in which a person may become recognized as the leader of a social group. In the family, traditional cultural patterns confer leadership on the parents, though more often on the male as head of the household if two spouses are present. In other cases, such as friendship groups, one or more persons may gradually emerge as leaders, although there is no formal process of selection. In larger secondary groups, leaders are usually formally chosen through election or recruitment. Although leaders are often thought to be people with unusual personal ability, decades of research have failed to produce consistent evidence that there is any category of «natural leaders». It seems that there is no set of personal qualities that all leaders have in common; rather, virtually any person may be recognized as a leader depending on the particular needs of the group. 409 Furthermore, although we commonly think of social groups as having a single leader, research suggests that there are typically two different leaderships that are held by different individuals. Instrumental leadership is leadership that emphasizes the completion of tasks by a social group. Group members look at instrumental leaders to «get things done». Expressive leadership, on the other hand, is leadership that emphasizes the collective wellbeing of a social group's members. Expressive leaders are less concerned with the overall goals of the group than providing emotional support to group members and attempting to minimize tension and conflict among them. Group members expect expressive leaders to maintain stable relationships within the group and provide support to individual members. The Importance of Group Size Being the first person to arrive at a party affords the opportunity to observe a fascinating process in group dynamics. When fewer than about six people interact in one setting, a single conversation is usually maintained by everyone. But with the addition of more people, the discussion typically divides into two or more conversations. This example is a simple way of showing that size has important effects on the operation of social groups. The basis for this dynamic lies in the mathematical connection between the number of people in a social group and the number of relationships among them as shown in Figure 3. Two people are joined in a single relationship; adding a third person results in three relationships, a fourth person yields six. As additional people are added one at a time - according to what mathematicians call an arithmetic increase the number of relationships increases very rapidly - in what is called a geometric increase. By the time six people have joined one conversation, there are fifteen different relationships among them, which explains why the conversation usually divides by this point. 410 Figure 3. Group Size and Relationships Social groups with more than three members tend to be more stable because the lack of interest on the part of one or even several members does not directly threaten the group's existence. Furthermore, larger social groups tend to develop more formal social structure — with a variety of statuses and roles - which stabilize their operation. However, larger social groups inevitably lack the increase of personal relationships that are possible in the smallest groups. Is there an ideal size for a social group? The answer, of course, depends on the group's purpose. 411 II. Find in the text the definitions of: A) group dynamics; B) instrumental leadership; C) expressive leadership; D) an arithmetic increase; E) a geometric increase. III. Answer the following questions: 1. How do social groups vary? 2. What are the ways by which a person may be recognized as a leader? 3. Is there a category of people who might be considered as «natural leaders»? 4. What is the difference between instrumental and expressive leaders? 5. What do large social groups tend to develop? 6. What group do you think is regarded to be an ideal one? IV. Comment on the illustration in Figure 3. V. Characterize in brief: 1) The core of group dynamics. 2) An ideal social group. 3) The importance of group size. VI. Choose the qualities you think to be necessary for an ideal leader: emotional, aggressive, active, brave, clever, strong, intuitive, tall, handsome, good with money, mechanicallyminded, tender. You may expand the list. But give reasons of your choice. VII.Read the text and state its general idea: Ingroups and Оutgroups By the time children are in the early grades of school, 412 much of their activity takes place within social groups. They eagerly join some groups, but avoid - or are excluded from — others. Based on sex as a master status, for example, girls and boys often form distinct play groups with patterns of behaviour culturally defined as feminine and masculine. On the basis of sex, employment, family ties, personal tastes, or some other category, people often identify others positively with one social group while opposing other groups. Across the United States, for example, many high school students wear jackets with the name of their school on the back and place school decals on their car windows to symbolize their membership in the school as a social group. Students who attend another school may be the subject of derision simply because they are members of a competing group. This illustrates the general process of forming ingroups and outgroups. An ingroup is a social group with which people identify and toward which they feel a sense of loyalty. An ingroup exists in relation to an outgroup, which is a social group with which people do not identify and toward which they feel a sense of competition or opposition. Defining social groups this way is commonplace. A sports team is an ingroup to its members and an outgroup to members of other teams. The Democrats in a certain community may see themselves as an ingroup in relation to Republicans. In a broader sense, Americans share some sense of being an ingroup in relation to Russian citizens or other nationalities. All ingroups and outgroups are created by the process of believing that «we» hove valued characteristics that «they» do not. This process serves to sharpen the boundaries among social groups, giving people a clearer sense of their location in a world of many social groups. It also heightens awareness of the distinctive characteristics of various social groups, though not always in an accurate way. Research has shown, however, that the members of 413 ingroups hold unrealistically positive views of themselves and unfairly negative views of various outgroups. Ethnocentrism, for example, is the result of overvaluing one's own way of life, while simultaneously devaluing other cultures as outgroups. VIII. Read the text again and note difference between ingroups and outgroups. the IX. Prepare a report «Group Dynamics and Society». 414 UNIT X I. Read and translate the text: Deviance What is Deviance? The concept of deviance is defined as violation of cultural norms of a group or all of society. Since cultural norms affect such a wide range of human activities, the concept of deviance is correspondingly broad. The most obvious and familiar type of deviance is crime — the violation of cultural norms that have been formally enacted into criminal law. Criminal deviance is itself quite variable in content, from minor offenses such as traffic violations to serious crimes such as homicide and rape. Closely related to crime is juvenile delinquency - the violation of legal standards fry children or adolescents. Deviance is not limited to crime, however. It includes many other types of nonconformity, from the mild to the extreme, such as left-handedness, boastfulness, and Mohawk hairstyles, as well as pacifism, homosexuality, and mental illness. Industrial societies contain a wide range of subcultures that display distinctive attitudes, appearance, and behaviour. Consequently, to those who conform to society's dominant cultural standards, artists, homeless people, and members of various ethnic minorities may seem deviant. In addition, the poor - whose lack of financial resources makes conforming to many conventional middleclass patterns of life difficulty — are also subject to definition as deviant. Physical traits, too, may be the basis of deviance, as members of racial minorities in America know well. Men with many highly visible tatoos on their body may be seen as deviant, as are women with any tatoo at all. Even being unusually tall or short, or grossly fat or exceedingly thin, may be the basis of deviance. Physical disabilities are yet another reason for being seen by others as deviant. 415 Deviance, therefore, is based on any dimension of difference that is considered to be significant and provokes a negative reaction that serves to make the deviant person an outsider. In addition to the experience of social isolation, deviance is subject to social control, by which others attempt to bring deviant people back into line, like deviance itself, social control can take many forms. Socialization is a complex process of social control in which family, peer groups, and the mass media attempt to influence our attitudes and behaviour. A more formal type of social control is the criminal justice system - the formal process by which society reacts to alleged violations of the law through the use of police, courts, and punishment. Social control does not have to take the form of a negative response to conformity. Praise from parents, high grades at school, laudatory mention in newspapers and other mass media, and positive recognition from officials in the local community are all forms of social control that serve to encourage conformity to conventional patterns of thought and behaviour. II. Make up 10 questions to the text. III. Divide the text into logical parts and give a heading to each part. IV. Give the leading sentence in each paragraph. V. 1. 2. 3. Speak on: The concept of deviance. The main causes of deviance. The social control system. 416 VI. Read the text and treat its contents in Russian: Biological Explanations of Deviance Human behaviour was understood - or more correctly, misunderstood - during the nineteenth century as an expression of biological instincts. Along with other patterns of human behaviour, criminality was explained on biological grounds. Lombroso: early research In 1876, Caesare Lombroso (1835-1909), an Italian physician who worked in prisons, developed a biological theory of criminality. Lombroso described criminals as having distinctive physical characteristics - low foreheads, prominent jaws and cheekbones, protruding ears, hairiness, and unusually long arms - that resemble human beings' apelike ancestors. In other words, he viewed criminals as evolutionary throwbacks to lower forms of life. Because of their biologically based inadequacy, Lombroso reasoned, such individuals would think and act in a primitive manner likely to run afoul of society's laws. Although toward the end of his career Lombroso acknowledged that social factors play a part in criminality, his early claim that some people are literally-born criminals was widely influential in an era in which biological explanations of human behaviour were popular. Lombroso's findings were based on seriously flawed research methods. He failed to see that the physical characteristics he found in prison and linked to criminality also existed in the population as a whole. Early in the twentieth century, the British psychiatrist Charles Buckman Goring (1870-1919), who also worked in prisons, published the results of a comparison of thousands of convicts and noncriminals. There was a great deal of physical variation within both groups, but Goring's research showed there were no significant physical differences between the criminal and noncriminal 417 categories of the kind suggested by Lombroso. Delinquency and body structure After Lombroso's theory of born criminality was disproved, others continued to search for biological explanations of criminality. William Sheldon (1949) advanced the idea of body structure in terms of three general types: ectomorphs, who were tall, thin, and fragile; endomorphs, who were short, and fat; and mesomorphs, who were muscular and athletic. Sheldon noted that no one conforms exactly to any of these pure types. Rather, he thought the average person shows some combination of body types, although one type usually predominates. After comparing hundreds of young men half of whom were known to have been engaged in criminal activity and half of whom, were believed to be noncriminal — Sheldon reported an apparent association between criminality and the mesomorphic body type. In other words, he found a link between criminality and a muscular, athletic body structure. Like Lombroso, however, Sheldon was criticized for basing his work on samples that were not representative of the entire population. Further, more carefully designed research based on these basic body types was conducted by Sheldon and Eleanor Glueck (1950). The Gluecks also concluded that there is a link between criminality and a mesomorphic body structure, although they did not claim that physical characteristics are a direct cause of criminality. Rather, they concluded that the mesomorphic body type is associated with personal characteristics - such as insensitivity to frustration - that seem likely to promote criminality. The Gluecks also noted the importance of social environment in explaining criminality; they found that young men with mesomorphic builds were typically raised with little affection and understanding from family members. Although these findings indicate that there may be an association between body type and criminality, they do not 418 establish any causal connection between the two. Indeed, the association may very well have a social explanation. Young men with muscular builds have the ability to be the «bullies on the block», which some of them may become. VII.Speak on: a) b) c) d) Lombroso's theory of criminality Goring's research Sheldon's types of criminals d) the Gluecks' findings. VIII. Translate the text in writing: Deviance Is a Product of Society? We tend to believe that deviance is a result of an individual's free choice on personal failings. But, as our discussion of culture, social structure, and socialization showed, all social behaviour — deviance as well as conformity - is rooted in society. This is evident in three ways. 1. Deviance exists only in relation to cultural norms. No thought or action is inherently deviant. Rather, it becomes so only in relation to the norms of a particular culture or subculture. Norms vary considerably from one culture to another, so that conceptions of deviance vary as well. In the traditional village communities of Sicily, for example, cultural norms support the use of physical violence to avenge an insult to the honour in one's family. In this case, not to avenge an insult would be defined as deviant. Within American society, however, cultural norms do not support the use of violence in this way. Therefore, what is honourable in Sicily is likely to result in arrest and prosecution in the United States. As cultural norms change over time, so do conceptions of deviance. In the 1920s, American cultural norms linked women's lives to the home, so that a woman who wanted 419 to become a corporate executive, for instance, would certainly have been considered deviant. Today, however, there is far greater support for allowing women the opportunity to pursue a career outside of the home. Consequently, career women are no longer defined as deviant. 2. People become deviant as others define them that way. We all violate cultural norms, and even commit crimes, from time to time. For example, most of us have at some point walked around talking to ourselves, taken something that belonged to someone else, or driven another person's automobile without permission. Simply doing any of these things, however, is not sufficient to be defined as mentally ill or criminal. Whether or not a person is defined as deviant depends on the perception and definition of the situation by others - a process that is quite variable. To a large extent, of course, being defined as deviant depends not only on norm violation, but also on being caught by others. Even then, however, the activity in question may be perceived in different ways. For example, a male celebrity can dress like a woman on stage to the praise of adoring fans, while elsewhere another man doing the same thing might well provoke a quite negative response. Whether or not a person is defined as deviant, therefore, depends on the variable process of social definition. 3. Both cultural norms and defining someone as deviant are related to patterns of social power. Cultural norms — especially laws — are likely to protect the interests of the most powerful people in a society. For example, closing a factory permanently is within the legal rights of a factory owner, even though doing so may put thousands of people out of work. At the same time, a less powerful person who commits vandalism that closes a factory for a single day is likely to be defined as criminal. Powerless people may be defined as deviant for exactly the same behaviour that powerful people engage in with impunity. For example, a homeless person who stands on 420 a street corner and denounces the city government may be arrested for disturbing place. On the other hand, a candidate trying to unseat the mayor during an election campaign can do the same thing while receiving extensive police protection. In sum, while commonly understood as a quality of individuals, deviance is inseparable from the operation of society. 421 UNIT XI I. Read and translate the text: Brain Drain: a Natural Phenomenon? Nowadays we are hearing less and less about how detrimental brain drain is to Russia. Have we, like the rest of the world, begun to see it as something natural? The consolation is that these days, leaving the country does not necessarily mean saying good-bye forever. Indeed, in recent years, for every scientist who emigrates for good, there are four who are working on a contract basis. Their lifestyle is like a watchman's job - one shift returns, and another leaves. They usually receive temporary grants, and travel from country to country. Often they simply go because they can't continue their research at a contemporary level in Russia, due to the lack of equipment, reactants, or the fact that they just can't get the information they need. In the meantime, the level of this «internal scientific emigration» is at least twice as high as its «external» counterpart. According to the official emigration statistics, most of our emigre scientists and pedagogical workers ended up in Germany, although those who emigrate to Germany usually end up changing their professions. So, in fact, three quarters of the people who actively work in the field of fundamental sciences are currently employed in the United States and Canada. Others go to Israel and Australia, while recently they've also started heading out to Latin American countries like Panama, Columbia and Mexico. There are also more exotic destinations like Trinidad, Namibia and Jamaica. They comprise the Russian scientific diaspora. The term diaspora, or «dispersal», has historically been used to characterize people who are drawn to one another 422 across a distance. The ethnic-Russian scientific diaspora, which is scattered throughout the entire world, was able to become «glued together» very quickly with the help of computer communication systems. First the Russian scientists had mailing lists; now they also have Web sites. One of the most popular mailing lists is the INFO-RUSS project, which links over 1,200 subscribers. This form of correspondence is open to everybody. According to recent calculations, approximately 14,000-18,000 scientists from Russia have been working abroad in the field of fundamental sciences. Lately, the processes of intellectual migration have become more stable and have taken on more civilized forms. Today, the West is buying out Russian young programmers. Fourth-year students studying at faculties of computational mathematics and cybernetics can now receive stipends from foreign organizations. There are representatives of firms recruiting students to work abroad standing by at the famous technical schools. A big-name professor may choose the specific universities he would like to work in, but his students are willing to take any job, even one that has nothing to do with major science. They are being hired to create virtual casinos, and to develop banking services and new telecommunication technologies. But science schools can't exist without students. And Russia needs to hang on for about another 10 years, until it gets some fresh blood. The only people to count on are the kids who are currently in third and fourth grades. II. Answer the following questions: 1. What problem is the article devoted to? 2. Is brain drain a natural phenomenon? What do you think? 3. Why do Russian scientists leave their Motherland? 4. Do all of them leave forever? 5. What countries do they go to? 423 6. What does the term «diaspora» mean? 7. How do the Russian scientists contact each other? 8. How many scientists from Russia are working abroad? 9. What specialists are of high demand abroad? 10. What expects Russia in future? III. Choose the facts from the article characterize: 1. The problem of emigration as it is. 2. The Russian scientific diaspora. 3. The INFO-RUSS project. 4. Work perspectives for young specialists abroad. to IV. Express your personal opinion of brain drain problem. Is it as dismal as it seems to be? V. Translate the following word-combinations into Russian: Detrimental brain drain; the rest of the world; to emigrate for good; temporary grants; scientific diaspora; exotic destinations; the process of intellectual migration; to create new communication technologies; some fresh blood. VI. Reproduce situations combinations may be used. in which these word- VII.How would you treat the statement: «The level of «internal» scientific emigration is at least twice as high as its «external» counterpart»? VIII. What do you think why the author compares the lifestyle of emigre scientists with a watchman's job? Give your arguments. IX. Review the article. X. Develop the following situation: 424 Your close friend, a graduate of the Faculty of Computational Mathematics and Cybernetics, is leaving Russia for Germany. What possible questions can you ask him, being much surprised with his decision? XI. Read the article and say why it is headlined in this way. Burnout and How to Recover from it (After Donna Cobble) Q.: I am approaching the mid-point of my career and I am experiencing extreme dissatisfaction with the career I began so eagerly twenty years ago. I am in a consistent state of frustration, and those things about my work which once gave me such pleasure no longer seem to matter. A good friend has suggested that I am expe¬riencing career «burnout». Could this be the case, and if so, what can I do? A.: Much is being said about burnout; often in jest, and employees sometimes don't realize that burnout is very real and has distinct warning signals. There are three major symptoms of burnout, and it is important to understand that individuals are frequently unable to identify these symptoms themselves, hence requiring the guidance of a trusted family member or friend to point them out. • Physical exhaustion - There is a general feeling of tiredness for no apparent reason. Soon fatigue, nausea, muscle tension, stomach pains, and headaches will appear, and eventually there will be changes in eating and sleeping habits accompanied by a constant low energy level. • Emotional exhaustion — This is expressed through feelings of frustration, hopelessness, helplessness, depression, sadness, and apathy about work with those feelings of apathy spilling over into other activities and relationships. 425 • Mental exhaustion - A dissatisfaction with themselves, their jobs, and life in general, while feeling inadequate, incompetent, or inferior. During this phase, individuals become convinced something is wrong with them since the work that once provided so much pleasure has become boring and stale. Career burnout occurs over a period of time and cannot be instantly «cured». However, there are some steps an employee can take to move in the right direction. • Understand your personal workstyle and ways of reacting to stress, and of identifying work and behaviour patterns that no longer work for you. • Reassess your values, goals, and priorities, making certain the career goals you set early on are still realistic and appropriate in today's workplace. • Maintain a lifestyle which demonstrates a healthy balance between work, home, family, leisure, friends, spiritual, etc. • Cultivate a social support system which includes close friends from all areas of your life. If you think you may be experiencing burnout, understand that it is possible to come out of it happier, healthier, and stronger. XII. Answer the following questions: 1. Is the problem raised in the article social or psychological? 2. Can burnout be a reason for emigrating to another country? 3. What are the first symptoms of this phenomenon? 4. What is physical exhaustion characterized by? 5. How is emotional exhaustion expressed? 6. What are individuals dissatisfied with experiencing mental exhaustion? 7. Does career burnout have any social consequences? 8. What should be done to overcome this situation of self-imbalance? 426 XIII. Make up a list of word-combinations that may characterize the state of burnout and ways to cope with it. XIV. Use these word-combinations in your review of the article. XV.Answer: Have you ever experienced a similar state in your life? Could you possibly describe your sensations? What did you undertake to relieve the situation? XVI. Make up a questionnaire on the problem of career burnout. What format would you choose for this questionnaire? XVII. Read the text and render its contents in Russian: Looks: Appearance Counts with Many Managers (by Sherry Buchanan) There is something downright undemocratic about judging managers' abilities on the colour of their eyes, the size of their lips, the shape of their noses or the amount of their body fat. Yet looks matter a lot more in hiring and promotions than employers will admit to others, or even to themselves. Airlines and police forces have long had height and/ or weight requirements for their staff, arguing that being physically fit and strong - not too fat or too small - is in the interest of the public's safety. In some cases, unhappy employees are challenging the arbitrary rules, which have been used by the airlines to recruit only good-looking women; in other cases, employers are trying to be fairer to avoid lawsuits. Scotland Yard requires its male employees 427 to be at least 5 feet 8 inches (1.73 meters) tall and female employees to be at least 5 feet 4 inches. The Yard decided to accept shorter women a few years ago to conform with Britain's equal-opportunity rules. Air France still requires its female cabin crew to be between 1.58 meters and 1.78 meters, and men to be between 1.70 meters and 1.92 meters. They must also have a «harmonious silhouette.» And British Airways grounds any member of its cabin crew — pilots excluded if they are 20 per cent over the average weight for their height. Being short or overweight may affect people's careers in other industries in more subtle ways. Being too small or overweight is only one way that looks can have an impact on someone's career. Academic research at Edinburgh University, New York University and Utah State University shows that the better-looking a person is, the more positive qualities they are thought to have and the more positive impact that has in a career. There is some evidence, however, that women who are too attractive — unless they are television commentators or have other high-visibility jobs — do not rank well as managers. There is enough research now to conclude that attractive women who aspire to managerial positions do not fare as well as women who may be less attractive. Some French employers and recruiters decide whether a manager is right for the job based upon looks. In some cases, morphopsychologists - a term coined by a French neuropsychiatrist in 1935 - attempt to determine personality traits according to a job applicant's face, eyes, mouth, nose, ears and hands. Unfortunately, morphopsychology has become a criterion for recruitment in some countries. When it is used as the sole criterion, it is a catastrophe. «Some people hire you because of the colour of your tie; why not the shape of your ears?» said Frederique Rollet, a psychotherapist in Paris who is the author of several books on morphopsychology. 428 XVIII. According to the text above, are the following statements true or false? 1. Good-looking people are often more successful than others. 2. British Airways does not allow its pilots to work if they are 20 per cent overweight. 3. Attractive women have problems reaching managerial positions. 4. Morphopsychology is sometimes used as the only criterion when selecting candidates. 5. Employers' attitudes to «unfair» recruitment practices have not changed. XIX. Discuss in the group. 1. Do you think a certain type of appearance is necessary for some jobs? Explain why. 2. In your opinion, is morphopsychology a useful recruitment technique? 3. How are employment practices monitored in your country? Give examples. XX. If you were a manager, would you employ; a) a woman with pink hair; b) a man with a beard; c) unattractive people; d) a heavy smoker; e) an overweight person. XXI. Speak on: a) requirements to be employed for airlines and police forces; b) female chances for managerial positions; c) morphopsychology, 429 XXII. You are a manager. What application form would you offer for a candidate to fill in? ХХШ. Make up a questionnaire for employment practice. Do you consider suck a questionnaire to be a useful recruitment technique? XXIV. Translate the text in writing: Female Status Attainment When the Canadian sociologists analyzed their data on female status attainment, they also found some surprising results. First of all, native-born Canadian women with fulltime jobs come from higher-status family backgrounds than do their male counterparts. On the average, their fathers have nearly a year more education and hold higher-status occupations. Second, the average nativeborn Canadian working woman has a higher-status occupation than do similar males. Finally, the correlations between women's occupational prestige and their fathers’ education and occupational prestige are much lower than for men. Moreover, these same findings have turned up in American studies; it has now become standard practice to include women in status attainment research. How can these patterns be explained? First of all, women are less likely than men to hold fulltime jobs and are especially unlikely to work the lower their job qualifications. For many married women, especially those with young children, low-paying jobs offer no real economic benefits; the costs of working (including child care) are about equal to the wages paid. In consequence, low-paying, low-status jobs are disproportionally held by males. This fact accounts for women having jobs of higher average prestige. But women are also underrepresented in the highest-prestige jobs. 430 As a result their occupational prestige is limited to a narrower range than that of men, which reduces correlations with background variables. That the average working woman's father has more education and a better job than does the father of the average employed male can be understood in the same terms. More qualified women come from more privileged homes; the daughters of the least-educated and lowest-status fathers aren't in full-time jobs. In fact, the husbands of working women have occupations with higher than average prestige. This is because of a very high correspondence between the occupational prestige of husbands and wives when both are employed full-time. People who marry tend to share very similar levels of education and similar family backgrounds. Indeed, divorce and remarriage contribute to the similarity of husbands and wives in terms of occupational prestige. These findings must not cause us to overlook the fact that women long were excluded from many occupations and are still underrepresented in elite managerial and professional careers. What they do show, however, is that within the special conditions outlined here, female status attainment does not differ much from that of men. 431 UNIT XII Text I I. Read the article and say why it is headlined in this way: Saying Good-Bye to This World Hospice is not a very common word for Russia. The modern hospice movement - the provision of homes for terminally ill patients where they spend their last days — was born in Britain. The first among them was an establishment founded in 1967 by Lady Cicely Saunders with her own money. She named it after St. Christopher. A few years ago, on the initiative of Victor Zorza, a British journalist, hospices began to appear in this country. Today there are 22, seven of them in St.Petersburg and one in Moscow. To whom does the hospice provide care? Information comes in concerning prospective patients from area outpatient clinics, or from district oncologists or general practitioners. An application must be submitted with a case report and diagnosis. Some patients need palliative institutional treatment. Patients are only admitted here in the following cases. First, those who suffer from an intractable pain syndrome, when no home medication can help. In this event, they are placed under round-the-clock observation and an effective anesthetic plan is selected. Personnel here know that relatives of these patients need temporary relief. Second, special attention is given to lonely people and those who live in communal apartments. For the majority of them this cozy home with a quiet courtyard is a heavenly place, if it is appropriate to say so about a hospice. After spending a week or two here, many do not want to leave, regarding the discharge as an act of cruelty. 432 Although the furnishings and the equipment in this home for the terminally ill show that the Moscow authorities have invested considerable funds in this project, the city budget is still limited. Just like British hospices, Russian ones count on philanthropists. One firm provides writing paper; another provides flowers and someone to look after them; a fourth donated fixtures and fittings for the bathrooms. Unlike its London counterpart, the Moscow hospice has a house call service. Doctors, nurses, a social worker, a lawyer, and a psychologist visit patients in their homes. They provide medical and social assistance, including patient care, apartment cleaning, meal preparation, buying food, assistance in executing legal documents. There are many things to do, and so the service tries to mobilize the patient's relatives, neighbors, and colleagues. II. Find in information on: the text sentences containing 1. Hospices in Britain. 2. Categories of patients admitted to hospices. 3. A house call service. III. Give definitions of the following words and word-combinations: Hospice; terminally-ill patient; round-the-clock observation; temporary relief; philanthropist; counterpart. IV. Answer the following questions: 1. Where was the modern hospice movement born? 2. When was the first hospice established? 3. How many hospices are there in the world today? 4. Whom does the hospice provide care for? 5. In what cases are the patients admitted to the hospice? 433 6. Do hospices exist on the philanthropic grounds? 7. What specialists take care of the terminally ill patients? V. Copy out all the word-combinations relating to major characteristics of hospices. VI. Review the article. Use combinations in your review. copied out word- VII. Express your own opinion of the necessity of hospices. VIII. patient. Conduct an interview with a terminally-ill Text II I. Read the article and say why everybody is sure that AIDS is becoming a major killer in the world. Fourth Dimension The World Health Organization (WHO) has released some chilling statistics: HIV infection is now the fourth largest killer in the world. AIDS accounts for more deaths than cancer, and is catching up fast with such «leaders» as cardiovascular diseases, injuries, and acute respiratory conditions among the elderly. AIDS has been rampant on the planet for more than 20 years now. During this time it has taken a heavier toll of human lives than all other infections put together: more than 11 million. The number of HIV carriers in the world defies tally. Mortality from this plague of the 20th century has been growing dramatically every year. There is no antidote against AIDS, nor- terrible though this may sound - is one forthcoming in the foreseeable future. Some purported AIDS vaccines have been developed in the world. These vaccines are, in particular, touted by the 434 United States, Thailand, Switzerland, and a number of African states. Yet, first, the majority of medical experts in the world as well as the WHO doubt the effectiveness of such drugs and, second, each vaccine is subject to tests lasting at least six to eight years. The first AIDS-related death in this country was registered in 1987. Now the situation in Russia is changing for the worse. This is evident from Health Ministry statistics. The situation is worst in Moscow and the Moscow Region; next come the Kaliningrad Region, the Krasnodar Territory, the Rostov Region, the Tver Region, and the Nizhny Novgorod Region. Yet Russia does not expect an upsurge in AIDS mortality until five to ten years from now. Civilized countries, on the contrary, believe that early next century, the death toll from this terrible disease will decline. These countries are already using unique AIDS treatment methods which, however, are only effective in the early stages of the infection. It can prolong a patient's life by 10 to 20 years, or even more. Still, the cost is prohibitive for an overwhelming majority — 90 percent, according to some estimates - of those infected: It costs as much as $ 10,000 a year to take a course of treatment. In Russia, this figure appears way beyond the means of the vast majority of patients and indeed the state itself. The health authorities do their best for research in the field of AIDS treatment and in AIDS prevention projects. II. Give Russian equivalents for: To release some chilling statistics; to take a heavy toll of human lives; the foreseeable future; AIDS-related deaths; an upsurge in mortality; to prolong a life; an overwhelming majority; prevention projects. III. Reproduce the situations in which the above word-combinations may be used. IV. Give reasons in accordance with which: 435 1. HIV infection is the fourth largest killer in the world; 2. Medical experts doubt the effectiveness of drugs against AIDS; 3. The situation in Russia is changing for the worse; 4. An overwhelming majority can't take a course of treatment. V. Divide the article into logical parts. VI. Review the article. VII.If you are to interview a HIV infection victim, what possible questions would you ask him? Text 3 I. Read and translate the text: The Golden Mean Analysts at the All-Russia Research Center for Living Standards maintain that the proportion of the middle class in the country's largest cities has reached 10 percent. Smaller towns are surveyed less frequently but even there new groups of «neither poor nor rich» people have emerged, though Russian provinces are thought to be lagging behind the center both in the pace of reform and in living standards. What kind of people in average Russian cities comprise the Russian middle class? Who fits the middle class criteria? How do people get into this «golden mean» and stay there? The sociological group Sotsium is studying the middle class in provinces - their occupation, values, and lifestyle. The general feeling in small provincial towns is one of dissatisfaction and insecurity. The following idea has 436 become the usual way of thinking in these towns: our living standards are deteriorating, we getting less while the prospects of improving the well-being of our families are bleaker. This feeling to a certain extent prevents people from understanding their new role in the structure of society. And although social mobility in the provinces is more conservative, the boundaries of the middle class are just as mobile as expansive. Sociologists believe that the core of the regional middle class consists of highly qualified professionals. They fit into two groups - blue collar workers and the technical intelligentsia. These groups' skills are valued on the high technology and computer software market. They are banking officers, specialists working for foreign firms or joint ventures, and entrepreneurs - owners of several small sales outlets, heads of small businesses, including medical, auto, advertising, leisure, and tourism. Many people questioned have suddenly discovered hidden skills and their desire to achieve something and they were happy for their «lucky chance» - a newspaper ad, a meeting with a former fellow student, an idea that suddenly occurred to them, or some unexpected job offer that in the end turned their life around. Of course, there is no universal method of getting out of the vicious circle of poverty, but the principle is just one for all - «keep moving» According to one businessman, an ability to sell yourself is also a key factor. In his opinion, any commodity, including our intellect, needs to be promoted and advertised. However, 30-40 year old specialists, who grew up in the stagnation era have never learned to treat their knowledge as commodity. This, they claim, is beneath their profession dignity. As for starting from scratch, this to many means all but a failure of their entire life. All people in the middle class that were surveyed noted that they work 12-14- hour days at a pace longer be the need for a specialist. Some of them are afraid of competition and changes in the political situation. 437 For the absolute majority, these fears are exaggerated. Today the middle class in the provinces has already proved its viability. II. Give definitions of the following words and word-combinations: The golden mean; blue collar workers; technical intelligentsia; joint venture; commodity; competition. III. Find in the text synonyms for: To appear; to conduct a poll; to worsen; welfare; border; specialist; to estimate; capacity; to reach; technique. IV. Find in the text the following expressions: Отставать; жизненный уровень; ценности; неудовлетворение; социальная мобильность; высоко квалифицированные специалисты; совместное предприятие; предприниматель; малый бизнес; реклама; скрытые навыки; порочный круг; конкуренция. V. Make up your own sentences with: The golden mean; lifestyle; to improve well-being; social mobility; to value skills; desire to achieve something; lucky chance; unexpected job offer; universal method; professional dignity; exaggerated fears. VI. Answer the following questions: l. What is the percentage of the middle class in large cities of Russia? 2. What was the aim of the survey in provinces? Text 4 I. Read the article and state its main problem: Survey Smokes Out Increasing Drug Use Among Young The Institute of Social Research at the Russian Government Academy has carried out a detailed survey to 438 determine public attitudes and experts' opinions towards drug taking and drug users. The results of this research were not encouraging - the age of drug users is falling. Experts in this field consider that the highest risk category is school and university students. Teenagers themselves also consider that it is the under-18s who suffer most from drug problems. The next group is 18-30, after which the problem disappears almost entirely. The accuracy of this assessment is confirmed by answers; to the question: «Where is it easiest to get hold of drugs?» While the experts and relatives of drug users stated: «Mainly at markets, and then discotheques and parties for the young, and finally, in the drug pushers' flats,» teenagers gave the more accurate reply that it was firstly at the drug pushers' flats, then parties, and finally, markets that drugs are most readily available. Incidentally, almost none of the teenagers mentioned the mass media as a source of information on the dangers of drug abuse. They get their information from their peers (80 percent), or from knowing adults. An absolute majority of experts believes that morals and culture, and also of the poor work of the present situation with drug abuse is the result of a decline in protection agencies and the explosion in crime (one in three respondents are convinced that the police have links with the drug mafia). Both groups say the main reasons for a partiality towards drugs is the influence of friends who are already drug users, lack of interesting work, boredom and nothing to do, and finally, too much money. About one third of teenagers are strongly negative in their attitude to drug-taking among their peers: «It is a serious illness warranting compulsory treatment.» Then about another third were completely loyal: «It is a stupid habit like smoking or alcohol. They grow up and give up.» By contrast, relatives of drug takers have already learnt from bitter experience. Almost twice as often as other' respondents they expressed the view that if a member of one's family shows signs of drug addiction, one should 439 immediately seek specialist help. The problem is that the specialised medical institutions work inadequately. The clinics and hospitals are poor and squalid; there is a shortage of doctors dealing with drug users; and those who do so are under-qualified and have only a hazy conception of the experience acquired in other countries which could be of benefit to Russia (so say 56 percent of specialists). With regard to social help for drug users, experts are even more pessimistic — 86 percent have little belief in its potential. At the same time it is social and psychological rehabilitation which almost all experts believe to be one of the most necessary and efficacious means of helping drug users. Few respondents supported the idea of creating special jobs for drug users. On the other hand, 11 percent of teenagers suggested that disposable syringes be distributed free to drug users. Of the experts, 27 percent were in favor and 47 percent against. Almost half of the respondents are anxious for tougher laws to fight the drug mafia. Sixty four percent of experts are categorically against the legalisation of drug use. But all the same, half of respondents believe that there is an obvious first preventive step: people close to someone who is involved in the cycle of depravity should try to convince them that the stake in this game is their own life. A first step, but one that might well have a positive effect in the formidable battle against drug use. II. Read the article once more and render its contents in Russian. III. Give Russian equivalents for: To determine public attitudes; to suffer from drug problems; accuracy of the assessment; mass media; to prevent situation with drug abuse; a decline in morals and culture; protection agencies; drug mafia; boredom; compulsory treatment; to give up smoking or alcohol; from bitter experience; to show signs of drug addiction; 440 disposable syringes; to be involved in the cycle of depravity. IV. Make up combinations. sentences with these word- V. Give English equivalents for; Наркоман; наибольшая категория риска; распространители наркотиков; пристрастие к наркотикам; отрицательное отношение; обращаться к помощи специалиста; социопсихологическая реабилитация; более жёсткие законы; легализация наркотиков. VI. Make up word-combinations: Drug use abuse abuser addict addiction pusher partiality VII.Reproduce situations combinations may be used. VIII. where these word- Answer the following questions: 1. What was the aim of the survey? 2. What were the results of this survey in general? 3. Who comprises the highest risk category? 4. When does the problem disappear? After what age? Why? What do you think? 5. Where is it easy to get drugs? 6. Where do teenagers get information concerning drug distribution? 7. What does an absolute majority of experts think in 441 accordance with the present situation? 8. What are the main reasons for a partiality towards drugs? 9. Is drug-taking a habit and nothing more serious? 10. How would you characterize the conditions in the specialized medical institutions? 11. How is it possible to help drug-addicts? 12. What is the first preventive step? IX. Agree or disagree with the following: 1. The highest risk category for drug-taking is the elderly population. 2. The mass media is a source of information on the dangers of drug use. 3. The present situation with drug use is the result of decline in morals and culture. 4. The police have no links with the drug mafia. 5. The main reason for a partiality towards drug is too much money. 6. It is necessary to create special jobs for drug-users. 7. Disposable syringes must be distributed free. 8. Tougher laws should be introduced to fight the drug mafia. X. There are some main reasons for increase in drug abuse. They are: 1. Insufficient mass media propaganda concerning dangers of drug-abuse. 2. Decline in morals and culture. 3. Poor work of the health protection agencies. 4. Explosion in crime. 5. The influence of friends who are drug users. 6. Lack of interesting work. 7. Boredom and nothing to do. 8. Too much money. What are the reasons that may be put at the first place, 442 at the second one, and so on? Arrange them in the order of decrease. XI. Some major steps should be taken to reduce the danger of drug problems. What would you choose out of those suggested below? 1. To seek specialist help at the sign of drug addiction. 2. To secure adequate work of the specialized medical institutions. 3. To provide social and psychological rehabilitation help for drug users. 4. To create special jobs for drug users. 5. To introduce tougher laws to fight the drug mafia. 6. To legalise drug use. XII. Speak on: 1. The aim and the results of the survey. 2. The highest risk category. 3. The main reasons for drug addiction increase. 4. Preventive steps. XIII. Review the article. XIV. Make up a special questionnaire to assess the situation with drug use in your region. XV.Conduct an interview with a drug-addict. XVI. A role-play: Suddenly you find out that your close friend acquired a habit of taking drugs. You are shocked as you understand you may lose your friend. You try to persuade him to give up this dreadful habit and offer your sincere assistance of any kind. Text 5 I. Read and translate the text: Character and Communication Communication is the most important skill in life. We 443 spend most of our waking hours communicating. But consider this: You've spent years learning how to read and write, years learning how to speak. But what about listening? What training or education have you got that enables you to listen so that you really, deeply understand another human being from the individual's own frame of reference? Comparatively few people have had any training in listening at all. And, for the most part, their training has been in the personality ethic of technique, truncated from the character base and the relationship base absolutely vital to authentic understanding of another person. If you want to interact effectively with me, to influence me — your spouse, your child, your neighbor, your boss, your coworker, your friend - you first need to understand me. And you can't do that with technique alone. If I sense you're using some technique, I sense duplicity, manipulation. I wonder why you're doing it, what your motives are. And I don't feel safe enough to open myself up to you. The real key to your influence with me is your example, your actual conduct. Your example flows naturally out of your character, or the kind of person you truly are - not what others say you are or what you may want me to think you are. It is evident in how I actually experience you. Your character is constantly radiating, communicating. From it, in the long run, I come to instinctively trust or distrust you and your efforts with me. If your life runs hot and cold, if you're both caustic and kind, and, above all, if your private performance doesn't square with your public performance, it's very hard for me to open up with you. Then, as much as I may want and even need to receive your love and influence, I don't feel safe enough to expose my opinions and experiences and my tender feelings. Who knows what will happen? But unless I open up with you, unless you understand me and my unique situation and feelings, you won't know how to advise and counsel me. What you say is good and 444 fine, but it doesn't quite pertain to me. You may say you care about and appreciate me. I desperately want to believe that. But how can you appreciate me when you don't even understand me? All I have are your words, and I can't trust words. I'm too angry and defensive - perhaps too guilty and afraid — to be influenced, even though inside I know I need what you could tell me. Unless you're influenced by my uniqueness, I'm not going to be influenced by your advice. So if you want to be really effective in the habit of interpersonal communication, you cannot do it with technique alone. You have to build the skills of empathic listening on a base of character that inspires openness and trust. And you have to build the Emotional Bank Accounts that create a commerce between hearts. (from «ТНЕ SEVEN HABITS») II. Express the meanings of the following phrases: Effective communication; personality ethic; authentic understanding; empathic listening; to inspire openness and trust; Emotional Bank Accounts. III. Choose from the text all possible words that may characterize the process of communication as it is. IV. Make up disjunctive questions: 1. Communication is the most important skill in life. 2. Comparatively few people have had any training in listening. 3. Your character is constantly communicating. 4. Unless you understand a person you can't advise or counsel him. 5. Sometimes it is not reasonable to trust words. 6. We have to build skills of empathic listening. 445 V. Answer arguments. the following questions. Give your 1. What are the basic types of communication? There are four of them, aren't there? 2. Is it possible or impossible to learn communication skills for a short period of time? 3. What training or education should you have in order to communicate properly? 4. What is meant by effective interaction? 5. How would you interact with your spouse (your neighbor, your boss, your coworker, your child)? 6. Is there direct or indirect connection between character and communication? 7. Must we trust completely the words we hear in a conversation with the other person? 8. Are you in favor of or against empathic listening? VI. Make up a list of character traits that are of help for a productive communication. VII.Speak on the main points of the text. VIII. Make up dialogues with your partner in accordance with the following scripts: 1. You are an attentive listener of an interesting episode that happened to your conversationalist last Sunday. 2. Your life runs hot and cold. You feel dissatisfaction and ask your friend to help you in overcoming these unpleasant sensations. You expect sympathy and comfort. 446 Text 6 I. Read the article and render its contents in Russian: Russia's Madmen are No Worse off Than Britain's At the Serbsky Center for Psychiatry, most patients admitted are murderers. But British insane criminals cause no fewer problems. A Russian-British conference on the problems of forensic medicine has been held at the Serbsky State Scientific Center for Social and Forensic Psychiatry, and revealed that insane criminals cause England's doctors just as many problems as Russia's. British patients are not just sick people, they are aggressive criminals. The British doctors try to cure them, but nobody cares about this. All people are only interested in the details of the crimes that they have committed and the punishments that they will receive. According to statistics from the Serbsky Center, only one third of Russia's criminals are completely mentally normal. One in every 10 is insane, and most of them suffer from some sort of mental disorders and live very much on the borderline of insanity. Unfortunately, very often it is only after a forensic psychiatric examination that the person himself and his relatives realize that he is sick. That is, after he has committed a crime. The very contingent of people accused or under investigation, who are brought to the Serbsky Center for examination, has also changed considerably of late. According to the Center's statistics, nowadays 80 percent of them are murderers, whereas 20 years ago the center received far more hooligans and vagrants. And while in the past the patients' eccentricities were largely harmless to the rest of society, now they are becoming a matter of life and death for potential victims. 447 An examination in forensic psychiatry largely determines the amount of time that the person will spend in the overcrowded detention center. Many people under investigation spend months waiting for their turn. The center's clinic is designed for only 250 beds, but, oddly, even they are sometimes empty. The detention centers have no money to conduct preliminary tests, and without this, the center cannot admit patients. Sometimes the detention center's staff simply don't have the means to deliver the prisoners to the place where the examinations are conducted. Britain's psychiatrists, with whom the Serbsky Center has kept in touch for the past seven years, also experience problems that have nothing to do with medicine. The English authorities have long been fighting to raise the age at which a person is deemed criminally responsible — currently 10 years of age. And just like Russian doctors, they are concerned about the conditions in which the mentally-disturbed patients are kept. In some cases, Britain's mad patients live in worse conditions than Russia's. Here, mad criminals are held in special clinics, whereas on the British Isles, even insane women criminals are locked in jail cells. Notes: Accused - осужденный Vagrant - бродяга Detention center центр предварительного заключения II. Give all statistical data presented in the article. III. Divide the article into logical parts. IV. Compare the situation with insane criminals in Russia and in Britain. V. What problems are similar for both countries? 448 VI. Give your arguments: whether mentallydisturbed criminals should be punished in the same way as sane ones or not. VII.If you had to conduct an interview with the British leading psychiatrist, what possible questions would you ask him? 449 TEXTS FOR WRITTEN TRANSLATION I. Translate the text in writing: MASS SOCIETY When we say that the new order of mass society is a consensual society, this does not mean, however, that it is completely consensual, a fabric of seamless harmony. The competition and conflict of corporate bodies resting on diverse class, ethnic, professional and regional identifications and attachments are vigorous and outspoken in this new order of society. So are the unorganized antagonisms of individuals and families of these diverse class, ethnic, professional, and regional sectors. Inequalities exist in mass society and they call forth at least as much resentment, if not more, as they ever did. Indeed, there is perhaps more awareness of the diversity of situation and the conflict of sectional aspirations in this society than in most societies of the past. What is specific to this modern «mass society», with all its conflicts, is the establishment of consensually legitimate institutions within which much of their conflict takes place and which impose limits on this conflict. Parliaments, the system of representation of interests through pressure groups, systems of negotiation between employers and employees, are the novel ways of permitting and confining the conflict of interests and ideals characteristic of modern mass societies. These institutions, the very constitution of the mass society, can exist because a widespread consensus, particularly a consensus of the most active members of the society, legitimates them, and, more fundamentally, because a more general and more amorphous consensus of the less active imposes restraint on the more active when they might otherwise infringe on the constitution. This consensus grows in part from an attachment to the center, to the central institutional system and value order of the society. It is also a product of a newly 450 emergent — at least on such a vast scale — feeling of unity with one's fellow men, particularly within the territorial boundaries of the modern societies. Hence, despite all internal conflicts bridging and confining them, there are, within the mass society, more of a sense of attachment to the society as a whole, more sense of affinity with one's fellows, more openness to understanding, and more reaching out of understanding among men than in any earlier society of our western history or in any of the great Oriental societies of the past. The mass society is not the most peaceful or «orderly» society that has ever existed; but it is the most consensual. The maintenance of public peace through apathy and coercion in a structure of extremely discontinuous interaction is a rather different thing from its maintenance through consensus in a structure of a more continuous interaction between center and periphery and among various peripheral sectors. The greater activity of the periphery of the society, both in conflict and in consensus — especially in the latter — is what makes this a mass society. The historical uniqueness of the modern society, notably in its latter-day phases, is the incorporation of the mass into the moral order of its society. The mass of the population is no longer merely an object which the elite takes into account as a reservoir of military and labour power or as a possible or actual source of public disorder. Nor does it any longer consist of a set of relatively discrete local societies occasionally in contact with the center under the impulsion of coercion and interest. (by EDWARD SHILS) 451 II. Translate the text in writing: STUDYING MASS COMMUNICATION The American society is constantly changing. The mass media supported by that society are also changing. In some part, the process is reciprocal. That is, the society influences its media, but the media, once in place, sometimes modify the society. These facts make the search for stable generalizations about the personal, social, and cultural influence of mass communication a difficult one. For example, as will become clear from the examination of studies of the movies of the 1950s, such films apparently had a significant impact on the children of that particular period. But the films of the 1950s, and the responses made to them by young people during the time, offer few reliable guides to relationships between media and youth of more contemporary generations. Since the media first arrived, each succeeding decade has brought a different set of economic conditions, new technology, changing political demands, and a continuously developing culture. In this dynamic milieu, the media continued to change their form, content, and distribution. This, in turn, modified the influence that they had on the people who attended to them. The process continues, and it will go on into the foreseeable future. What this means for the student of mass communication is that the question of what influence mass communication has on people is an extraordinarily complex one. These are few «eternal verities» that can adequately desribe the effects of all mass media on all people during all historical periods. Even a conclusion about the influence of a particular medium that seems inescapably true for a specific category of people during a given period may prove to be invalid at a later time. This is not 452 to say that no stable generalizations can be found through an examination of the major research studies of the past. There are also a few generalizations that appear to have wide applicability under a variety of times and circumstances. In an ideal world, science would proceed very systematically to accomplish its twin goals of innovation and accumulation. In such a world, some studies would move forward the cutting edge of theory and method whereas others would replicate and confirm earlier findings. Such an ideal science would be self-policing, and the generalizations accumulated would be both reliable and valid. Unfortunately, things seldom work out so neatly in the real world of scientific investigation. Studies in almost every field are undertaken for a bewildering variety of reasons, ranging from the trivial to the profound. Thus, the accumulation of knowledge is often frustratingly uncoordinated. The study of mass communication has been particularly unsystematic. It is not a concisely defined field, and it has had only a relatively brief history. One problem has been that those who have studied the media in the past have come from several different disciplines. Some were investigations that led researchers to conceptualize the process of mass communication in a new and important way. Others introduced innovative methodological procedures, techniques, or strategies that made a lasting contribution to the scientific study of mass communication. And still others played a particularly important part in shaping the beliefs of the non-scientific public about the nature of media influences. They all represent attempts to study the media within the framework of science. In some cases the research efforts were programs rather than single projects. Some were based on elaborate experiments; others used survey techniques. One was based on a purely clinical strategy. But above all, these appear 453 to us as the ones that have made the most difference. They have been widely cited; they have stimulated extensive further research; some have created substantial controversies; but above all, they have attracted the attention of the community of communication scholars, and in many cases the general public, to provide important perspectives on the process and influences of mass communication. III. Translate the text in writing. FROM SOCIAL PHILOSOPHY TO SOCIOLOGY (by Igor Kon) The Ideological and Theoretical Premisses of Sociological Knowledge Sociology arose in the middle of the nineteenth century as an independent science of the patterns of development and functioning of social systems, not because a new object of study had appeared, but because problems had developed in other social sciences that could not be tackled by the traditional means and within the bounds of the existing system of knowledge. The sociological vision of the world presupposes (1) a view of society as a systemic whole functioning and developing according to its own laws; (2) a conscious stance on study of actually existing social relations; (3) reliance on empirical methods of research in contrast to speculative philosophical constructs. The elements of this approach were built up gradually within the context of social philosophy and the philosophy of 454 the history of modern times, and as empirical studies and the differentiation of social and humanitarian sciences. The problem of society as a system had already been posed by seventeenth-century theories of «social physics». Insofar as society was represented as part of nature, social science became methodologically a part of natural science. While the stellar world was depicted in these theories as a mechanical interaction of celestial bodies, society was regarded as a kind of astronomical system of individuals connected by social attraction and repulsion. The thinkers of the seventeenth century, having taken mathematics (geometric method), astronomy, and mechanics, as the model of science, endeavoured to treat not only history but also social statistics (which was making its first significant advances at that time). The social philosophy of the eighteenth century, which was orientated to Newtonian physics rather than to astronomy and geometry, was already not so mechanistic and was more careful about its generalisations. Mediaeval philosophy and its ideological heirs (Romantic traditionalists) represented society as an organic whole, as a community in which socio-economic ties were inseparable from moral ones and were personified by traditions and religion. The Enlighteners counterposed to that idealised image a «mechanistic» model of society based on division of labour and rational exchange between individuals. The likening of society to a machine was naive, but it opened up a possibility of analytical clarification of the real functions of separate social institutions and subsystems (the state, law, economy, culture). The difference between society and the state was first of all clarified. The first step toward that had already been made by the theorists of «natural law» and of the contract origin of the state. 455 The English materialists of the seventeenth century (Thomas Hobbes, John Locke), the Scottish moralists (David Hume, Adam Smith, Adam Ferguson), and the French materialists of the eighteenth century (Holbach, Helvetius) were in accord in considering human behaviour as egoistic in principle, directed to attaining some personal advantage. But it was only a step from reducing the motives of the social behaviour of the individual or group to the interests of the latter to establishing the dependence of those interests on the individual's or group's real socio-economic position. The thesis of the clash of social interests led logically to a conclusion about incompatibility of the conscious motives of individual actions and their social results. The Scottish moralists stressed that people's social behaviour was governed by irrational, instinctive forces and inclinations, and that people's deeds generated results unexpected for all the parties of this interaction. From that it followed that the structure and dynamics of the social whole could be explained without their being correlated with the consciousness of the individuals comprising this whole. Clarification of the significance of economic property relations led social thought, beginning with Jean Jacques Rousseau, to the problem of class differences and the functional role of social inequality. The English classical economists deduced the social division of society from the social division of labour. This led, at the end of the eighteenth century, to the concept «class» coming into use. The «real» world of spontaneously shaped social relations came to be called civil society in contrast to the world of political and legal relations. That was linked terminologically with the traditional difference between civil (private) law and public law. But Hegel had already examined this matter more deeply, seeing civil society as simultaneously united (since no individual could 456 get along in such a society without others), and divided, torn by contradictory selfish interests. The attempt made by Vico at a conceptual delimitation of society culture, and the Enlighteners' development of the idea of progress were very important achievements of eighteenthcentury philosophy. The Enlighteners' theory of progress, which played the role of the ideological foundation of the new epoch, largely paved the way for the evolutionist schemes of the nineteenth century. But the linear conception of social development often took on a frankly teleological character: the goal postulated by the philosopher in fact played the role of the Providence. In its application to historical material the idea of «eternal» laws was very shaky. Attempts to explain both the general structure of society, and its concrete state at a certain moment of time, by one and the same formula, failed, while the identification of the concepts of social change, development, and progress created an illusion of the movement of history along a predetermined route. Parallel with the speculative philosophy of history in the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries, empirical social studies began to develop, above all social statistics. These investigations, arising from the practical needs of government, were originally local, imperfect in methods, and different in various countries. But they gradually gathered scope and force. In France the technique of mass statistical surveys and economic censuses was developed. The English «political arithmeticians» of the seventeenth century, William Petty, John Graunt, Gregory King, and Edmund Halley, laid the foundations of modern demography and worked out methods of quantitative investigation of social patterns. Looked at separately, the empirical studies of the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries seem only descriptive, without a general theoretical basis. But in default of a sociological theory these investigations were based on the conceptions of 457 natural science and general philosophy. It is characteristic that there were many outstanding natural scientists among the founders of empirical sociology (for example, Halley, Laplace. Buffon, and Lavoisier), whose study of social processes was organically linked with their scientific activity. These scientists did not simply «apply» the ready-made methods developed in the natural sciences to the study of social problems; many general scientific methods and theories were developed in fact on social material. A desire to get a rigorous mathematical formula of population growth explains the popularity of Malthus’ Essay on Population (1798). In addition to social statistics the development of ethnographic studies at the end of the eighteenth and in the early nineteenth centuries had great significance for sociology. The «savage world» discovered by the first historians, travellers, and settlers was not so much just an object of study as an object of influence. But the Enlighteners' theories about «natural man» stimulated a more and more active comparison of «civilised morals» and «savage»; the savage was now primitive man in whom Europeans could recognise features of their own history. In the middle of the eighteenth century the word «anthropology» still belonged to the lexicon of anatomy and meant «study of the human body». But Buffon was already defining it as the general science of human kind. The first attempts at a systematic description and comparison of the ways of life of various nations were made in the eighteenth century (Joseph Lafitau, Francois de Volney). The comparative historical method was being applied not only to study of «primitive» peoples but also to jurisprudence, folklore, and linguistics. In the early nineteenth century speculative social philosophy was everywhere being counterposed by the idea of scientific «positive» investigation. The differentiating of scientific disciplines itself was also accelerated. Jurisprudence and history, political economy, ethnography, statistics, and linguistics were separated off from philosophy. That was a model for the rise of new disciplines, and at the same time 458 increased the need for some new intellectual synthesis and nonphilosophical (in the sense of non-speculative) science of man and society. IV. Translate the text in writing: THE SOCIAL AND CLASS PREMISSES OF SOCIOLOGY The birth of sociology was also linked with certain social needs. Just as the social philosophy of the Enlighteners reflected the breaking-up of the feudal order and the rise of a new, capitalist society, sociology arose as a reflection of the inner antagonisms of capitalist society and the social and political struggles generated by it. The early nineteenth century was a period not only of stormy growth of capitalism, but also of the first clear display of its contradictions. The growth of industry and of towns was accompanied with mass ruin of the peasantry, handicraftsmen and artisans, and of small property owners. The extremely hard conditions of factory work and of the workers' life contrasted sharply with the growth of the bourgeoisie's wealth, provoking a sharpening of class struggle. The uprising of the Lyon weavers in France, the Luddite movement in England, and later Chartism, were evidence of the entry into the arena of a new social class, the proletariat. Disillusionment with the results of the bourgeois revolution and the «Kingdom of Reason» proclaimed by it swept broad strata of the intellectuals. The lost illusions were succeeded by bitter scepticism; the need for a realistic analysis and evaluation of existing society, and of its past, present, and future, was intensified. The mode of that analysis depended on the thinker's class position. In the first third of the nineteenth century, three main orientations, and correspondingly three groups of thinkers, became clearly outlined in the socio-political thought of Western Europe: conservative traditionalists, bourgeois liberal utilitarians, and Utopian socialists, who not only 459 embodied different intellectual traditions but also expressed the interests of different social classes. The conservative traditionalists, like Edmund Burke (1729-1797), Louis de Bonald (1754-1840), and Joseph de Maistre (1754-1821), held a frankly negative position in regard to the French Revolution of 1789 and its results. They associated the post-revolutionary development with chaos and destruction, which they counterposed to an idealised harmony and order of the feudal Middle Ages and prerevolutionary times. Hence their polemic against the ideas of the Enlightenment and the specific theory of society. In opposition to the individualism and social nominalism of the Enlightenment, which treated society as the result of interactions between individuals, the traditionalists regarded society as an organic whole with its own internal laws rooted in its remote past. Society not only preceded the individual historically, but also stood above him morally. Man's existence was impossible in principle without society, which moulded him, in the direct sense of the term, only for its own ends. Society did not consist of individuals but of relations and institutions in which each person was allotted a certain function or role. Since all parts of this whole were organically interconnected and interdependent, a change in any of them inevitably disturbed the stability of the whole social system. Satisfaction of fundamental, immutable human needs underlay the functions of social institutions. Disruption or weakening of the activity of any social institution therefore inevitably caused a disordering and disorganisation of the corresponding functions. It proved nothing that the social function of any institution or belief was harmful. Even prejudices sometimes performed a useful social role, uniting a group and strengthening its members' sense of safety and reliability. It was specially necessary for the stability of society 460 to maintain those groups and institutions by which the individual was linked with other people and with society as a whole. Urbanisation, industrialisation, and commerce, which were undermining these traditional foundations of social being, did not lead to a higher form of social organisation but to social and moral disintegration. Whereas the traditionalists regarded society as an organic whole that had to be understood in order to adapt to it better, the liberals saw in it an «artificial body», a more or less mechanical aggregate of parts that could be altered and improved by people's conscious activity. Further development of capitalism fostered a polarisation of scholars' class positions. In the theories of the English utilitarians, Jeremy Bentham (1748-1832) and James Mill (1773-1836), social interest was wholly reduced to the sum total of private interests; «the bourgeoisie is no longer presented as a special class, but as the class whose conditions of existence are those of the whole society». Society, for Bentham, was a body made up of individuals who were regarded as its constituent members. While putting forward the principle of achieving the maximum good for the greatest number as a general ethical law, he at the same time considered socially normal and morally acceptable when people strove to achieve their own private interests, even when that did harm to others. Social thinking did not develop just within the framework of bourgeois ideology. The Utopian socialism of Saint-Simon, Fourier, and Robert Owen was also based on a definite social philosophy on whose banner were the demands of scientific character, sobriety, and positiveness. The works of Saint-Simon (1760-1825) were particularly important on that plane. Utopian socialism was incompatible in principle with scientific investigation. 461 The real revolution in the science of society, which laid the foundation of scientific sociology, was made by Marx and Engels. Marx put an end to the view of society being a mechanical aggregation of individuals which allows of all sorts of modification at the will of the authorities and which emerges and changes casually, and was the first to put sociology on a scientific basis by establishing the concept of the economic formation of society as the sum-total of given production relations, by establishing the fact that the development of such formations is a process of natural history. Marx stressed that people were at once actors and authors of their world-historical drama, and that the structure of society coincided in that sense with the structure of their joint, combined activity. The understanding of society as a whole, law-governed, innerly connected system entails the principle of objective scientific investigation. V. Translate the text in writing: HERBERT SPENCERS SOCIOLOGICAL CONCEPTION 1. Spencer and His Time The birth of sociology in England is linked with the name of Herbert Spencer (1820-1903). In the middle of the nineteenth century, when his scientific activity was beginning, British capitalism was at the zenith of its prosperity. England, having completed the industrial revolution before all other countries, had far outstripped them in level of economic development. In the eyes of mid-century world opinion, she was the symbol of prosperity and liberalism. In spite of acute class contradictions, the British middle classes were proud of the progress made, and 462 looked to the future with confidence. That mood had its effect, as well, on Spencer's social philosophy. Spencer worked from 1837 to 1841 as an engineer and technician on a railway, simultaneously studying mathematics and natural sciences. Then, for several years, he contributed to the press. In 1853, having inherited a tidy legacy from an uncle, he resigned his post and began the modest life of an independent scientist and publicist. Even after he had attained fame, he refused all official honours. In the early 1860s Spencer made a tremendous effort to create a system of synthetic philosophy that would unite all the theoretical sciences of the time. This work included ten volumes, consisting of five separate titles: First Principles (1862), Principles of Biology (1864,1867), Principles of Psychology (18701872); Principles of Sociology ( 1876, 1882, 1896), which was anticipated in 1873 in an independent book The Study of Sociology, and Principles of Ethics (1892, 1893). What were the sources of his ideas? In his youth he was not interested in philosophy; later he did not read philosophical and psychological books, preferring to derive the necessary information from conversations with friends and popular editions. According to his secretary, there was not a single book by Hobbes, Locke, Hume, or Kant in his library. His knowledge of history, too, was very weak. Spencer borrowed much more from the natural sciences, especially from those parts in which the idea of development was being born or worked out. When Darwin's Origin of Species appeared in 1858, Spencer warmly welcomed it. Darwin in turn highly valued Spencer's theory of evolution, acknowledged its influence, and even placed Spencer intellectually above himself. Yet, in spite of this respect and influence. Spencer's evolutionism was more Lamarckian than Darwinian. 463 A second line of influence, perceived and acknowledged by Spencer himself, was the works of English economists of the eighteenth century, especially those of Malthus and Adam Smith. Finally, the ideas of the English Utilitarians, in particular of Bentham, whose individualism Spencer intensified even more, had quite a clear influence on him. He had already, in his first book Social Statics (1851), formulated a «law of equal freedom», according to which «every man may claim the fullest liberty to exercise his faculties compatible with the possession of like liberty by every other man». Freedom of individual actions, competition and survival of the fittest were all that were needed for the development of society. Spencer's attitude to Comte presents special interest. His own ideas had already been formed in the main when he became acquainted with Comte's works. On the whole he highly appreciated Comte, ascribing to him «the credit of having set forth with comparative definiteness, the connexion between the Science of Life and the Science of Society». Later, however, there began to be serious disagreements. Spencer was, first of all, much more naturalistic than Comte. Spencer rejected the idea of uniform, linear progress, in the light of which the different forms of society presented by savage and civilised races all over the globe, are but different stages in the evolution of one form. In his view the truth was that social types, like types of individual organisms, do not form a series, but are classifiable only in divergent groups. Finally, Spencer posed the question of the relation of the individual and the social whole quite differently to Comte. 464 VI. Translate the text in writing: THE SUBJECT-MATTER OF SOCIOLOGY Spencer did not provide a developed, formal definition of sociology or of its relation to other social sciences. But in The Study of Sociology he paid much attention to demonstrating the possibility of its existence as a science. This possibility depended on the existence (1) of a universal law of «natural causality» which operated in society to the same extent as in nature, and (2) of a regular connection of the elements and structure of any phenomenon. By examining in detail the objective and subjective difficulties (including class prejudices) of shaping sociology as a science. Spencer anticipated a number of the theses of the future sociology of knowledge. The most complicated methodological task for him was to demarcate sociology from history. When studying the laws of the development of society, sociology is, in spirit, a historical science. But in Spencer's opinion, it was related to traditional, narrative, descriptive history in the same way as anthropology to biography. While biography recorded all the chance circumstances in a human life, anthropology studied the state and conditions of the development of the organism. In the same way sociology, even though it rested on historical facts, was closer methodologically to biology. In contrast to Comte, Spencer not only set out his understanding of the subject-matter and tasks of sociology but also, in fact, realised the principles he proclaimed. His Principles of Sociology was essentially the first attempt to construct an integral sociological system on ethnographic material. Under the heading «The Data of Sociology» he tried to reconstruct theoretically the physical, emotional, intellectual, and especially the religious life of primitive man, and to bring 465 out the origin of his main ideas and notions. Later, as «the inductions of sociology», which consisted in a kind of general theory of society, he analysed the concepts of society, social growth, social structure, social functions, various systems and organs of social life. In the second volume of Principles of Sociology he examined the evolution of domestic relations (primitive sexual relations, forms of the family, the position of women and children), ritual institutions (including customs), political institutions. His sociology was thus an all-embracing science that included anthropology, ethnography, and a general theory of historical development. VII. Translate the text in writing: PHILOSOPHICAL SOCIOLOGY. THE THEORY OF UNDERSTANDING Simmel demonstrated the idea of pure sociology most fully and consistently in his analysis of free sociability. But in it he also exhausted this idea by demonstrating its limits. Pure sociology, he considered, was only possible along with a philosophical sociology that set theoretical-cognitive and socio-philosophical guideposts for pure sociology, endowing it with terms and conditions, fundamental ideas, and premisses unrelated to experience and the direct object of knowledge, and having no place within them. Simmel posed the problems of the connection of sociology and philosophy, and of its philosophical foundation, as problems (a) of the development of a sociological theory of knowledge and (b) the creation of a historical sociology or, as he himself put it, a social metaphysics. He considered the theory of historical understanding a specific theory of knowledge of social phenomena. He 466 regarded this theory, which he had already developed in Problems of the Philosophy of History, as a philosophical methodology of cognition that served as a guide for applying general scientific methods during sociological analysis. In addition, understanding served as the connecting link between pure or formal sociology and social philosophy. It was a means of historical comprehension of the data and facts accessible to formal sociology. Essentially hypothetical formations that are perceived and discussed as historical truths arise, Simmel wrote, only in the mental activity of the researcher, who orders the facts in accordance with the prevailing ideas and values, puts them into combinations from which arise solutions of problems that could not even have been posed if the researcher had relied only and exclusively on the initial series of experience, and only in such activity. This «mental activity» was essentially an activity of understanding and its directing and organising-andregulating-principle was the «whole image» of the social world that figured in the image of historical sociology. VIII. Translate the text in writing: THE PHILOSOPHICAL AND SOCIOLOGICAL CONCEPTION OF MORALITY Since Durkheim considered society a moral unity of individuals, he clung to the conceptual scheme of «sociologism» in his treatment of the nature, origin, and functions of morals, deducing morality from social conditions, the social milieu, and the social structure in his specific understanding. He originally regarded morality as a system of objective rules of behaviour, the distinguishing feature of which was their compulsory character to which the individual could not help submitting. He considered duty to be the main attribute 467 of morality. Doing one's duty made a person's behaviour moral. Subsequently his interest was held by the voluntary aspect of morality, and such features of it as desirability, acceptability, and the individual's personal interest in moral values (objective goods, social in their nature). In trying to give a sociological explanation of both the origin and functioning of moral phenomena, Durkheim reinterpreted the modes of social determination of morals. In The Division of Labor he had affirmed the principle of the historical development of moral beliefs in accordance with morphological or structural factors. Later he stressed the significance of periods of mental uplift, «movement of enthusiasm», and creative and innovating periods, which left their memory in the form of ideas, ideals, and values. These ideas, were upheld and reproduced again and again through the organisation of festivals, public, religious and lay ceremonies, through preaching of all sort and dramatic productions in which people could come together and share in the same intellectual and moral life. In any case Durkheim affirmed the social essence of morality. When stressing the sacred character of morality, he explained it by both religion and morality having society as their source and object, society which transcended the individual by its force and authority. Society demanded personal unselfishness and self-sacrifice— which were obligatory components of morality. Kant, he said, postulated God because morality was unintelligible without that hypothesis. He (Durkheim) postulated a society specifically distinct from individuals, because morality was otherwise without object and duty, without foundation. When linking morality with the social conditions giving rise to it, Durkheim did not consider it possible to bring out and substantiate a social ideal of a revolutionary character requiring a radical breaking up of the social structure. Whenever morality lagged behind the real conditions of 468 society, it was only necessary, he considered, to bring it into accord with the changed structure, and no more. The idea of the determination of morality by a stable social structure led Durkheim to moral relativism. If all the forms of morality were conditioned identically by the existing structure, they were identically legitimate and there were no objective criteria for recognising the superiority of any one of them. Underlying a social crisis, which (he considered) was mainly of a moral nature, was a change in the character and content of the collective consciousness. A rapid change of standards and values entailed a loss of past discipline and order in society. The morality of individualism was not yet established as the main social value and content of the collective conscience. The organic solidarity of modern society did not exclude a lack of rules of behaviour, and lack of standards. Modern society was therefore put into moral disorder and experienced social strife. The way out of the crisis was to strengthen moral regulation. In Durkheim's conception the state, which thinks and acts for all the rest of society, was the main agency fulfilling the function of «collective mind» and defender of collective interests. He treated the role of the state in the spirit of liberalism, but foresaw the possibility of an excessive strengthening and hypertrophy of its functions at the expense of the individual's interests. The individual should be defended against extreme state control by «secondary» or intermediate social groups (religious, production, etc.). In line with that Durkheim put forward the idea of special, particular moral codes regulating the behaviour of individuals as members of corresponding social groups, argued the need for historical study of these codes, and developed the idea of the relativity of the moral requirements accepted in various professional circles. At the same time he called for the establishing of a rigid hierarchy of moral rules according to their social importance. Family, professional, 469 and civil morality shaped the hierarchical structure, at whose pinnacle were the universal values and ideas embodied in the state. Durkheim reproduced the Comtean idea of the state as an agency of universal reconciliation and moral regulation of the interests of all the members of society, irrespective of the social and class content of those interests. The conception of an unconditional hierarchy of moral standards had a formal character and was aimed at maintaining stability of the social order. In Durkheim's view a person's moral behaviour had three main, inherent features: a sense of discipline, membership of a group, and autonomy. He ascribed rather more significance to moral discipline and control, in essence equating discipline and morality. Only a human being was capable of consciously following discipline and only through that did freedom become possible. The social essence of morality was embodied in the feature of «group membership», and the idea of conscious, voluntary observance of social prescriptions in «autonomy». Durkheim connected his interpretation of the social functions of morality directly with the theory of education. The aim of education and upbringing was to mould a social being, to develop those qualities and properties of a child's personality that society needed. It was the business of education to transform the egoistic, unsocial creature that a child was initially, by the most effective means, into another being, capable of leading a moral and social life. His treatment of the moral problems of modern times was based on his anthropological theory, and the conception of the duality of human nature, the conception of Homo duplex. Man's social nature, created through education (standards, values, ideals) was contradicted by his biological nature (capabilities, biological functions, impulses, and passions). That made for incessant inner disquiet, and a sense of tension and alarm. Only society's controlling activity 470 restrained man's biological nature and his passions and appetites, and put them into a certain context. When society relaxed its control over the individual, rose a state of the disintegration of society and the individual. In that social state there was no firm moral control of individual behaviour, and a kind of moral vacuum was created in which the old standards and values no longer played their role, and new ones had not yet been confirmed. This state opposed the moral order, regulation, and control that characterised the normal, «healthy» state of society. In his The Division of Labor Durkheim considered anomy from the aspect of social structure, explaining it by lack of co-ordination of social functions from the growth and development of society. In Suicide he treated anomy as a moral crisis in which the system of normative control of individual needs and passions was disrupted through social upheavals, which led to loss of person balance, and the feeling of belonging to a group, and loss of discipline and social solidarity. Deviant behaviour was also a consequence of that. Durkheim believed, in Utopian fashion, that individual and social needs could be consciously regulated, and kept within the context of limitations dictated by the re social possibilities, while preserving capitalist social relations. That would prevent the rise of tension, spiritual crisis, feelings of disappointment and distress, and consequently of deviant behaviour. In developing the problem of the social essence morality, Durkheim expressed many true ideas. His recognition of social conditions as decisive for the genesis of morality was positive; so, too, was his analysis of the functional consequences of moral rules for society, and his recognition of their socio-cultural inconstancy, on the one hand, and universality, on the other. The sociological interpretation of morality was very fruitful in principle, but Durkheim's conception was too 471 abstract and one-sided. His arguments for society as the sole worthy moral goal were unsubstantiated and weak. One can hardly deny, for example, the moral value of the personality and of its harmonious development. And although Durkheim recognised and actively defended the rights and dignity of the individual, his theory did not allow him to examine the interaction of the individual and society dialectically in concrete historical conditions. The principle of the unconditional superiority of society over the individual was unsound. Abstract unhistorical collectivism was just as unjustified as the abstract individualism that he constantly criticised. The relation of the individual and society, considered from the moral aspect, cannot be reduced to a relation of subordination. The relation between them is one of dialectical interaction. IX. Translate the text in writing: THE PHILOSOPHICAL AND SOCIOLOGICAL CONCEPTION OF RELIGION The conception of religion crowned the development of Durkheim's idea of collective consciousness as «the highest form of the psychic life» or «the consciousness of the consciousnesses». The attitude to religion traditional for positivism, as the supreme social institution that ensured the integration of society, acquired the form, with Durkheim, of quests for ways and means of a sociological explanation of religion under the influence of English and American anthropologists, in particular Sir James Frazer and Robertson Smith. Durkheim drew on anthropological material since he considered, in the spirit of early evolutionism, that «all the essential elements of religious 472 thought and life ought to be found, at least in germ, among the most primitive religions». He hoped, by studying totemism as the most primitive form of religion, to understand the essence and functions of religion in «complex» societies which he considered to be «only varieties of the same species». When approaching the matter of defining religion from study of its primitive forms, Durkheim claimed that the idea of the supernatural and the idea of God were not necessary attributes of religion. He considered the division of all objects into two opposing classes, sanctified by religion, an inherent feature of all religious beliefs without exception. The sacred had a taboo character, a separateness from earthly phenomena, and was an object of aspiration, love, and respect. The sacred was thus simultaneously a source of constraint (taboo) and respect (authority), in Durkheim's view, that indicated the social nature of the sacred, since only society had such qualities: it was at once a source of authority, love, and adoration, and a source of constraint. The sacred embodied the collective force, and inculcated the idea of the common in individual consciousness, and connected it with something that transcended it. The earthly was linked with man's everyday life, and his everyday individual occupations, private interests, and egoistic passions. The dichotomy of the sacred and earthly thus went back, in Durkheim, to the dichotomy of the social and the individual. He defined religion as follows: A religion is a unified system of beliefs and practices relative to sacred things, that is to say, things set apart and forbidden beliefs and practices which unite into one single moral community called the Church, all those who adhere to them. By «Church» he meant an organisation that organised a group's religious life. Even among primitive peoples there were 473 «churches», i.e., people who looked after the timely and proper holding of religious rites and ceremonies. His main example of lay, «vulgar» activity, was labour, the source of grief and sorrow; an example of sacred activity was collective religious ceremonies and rituals, the source of joy and a heightened state of the spirit. He repeatedly declared that his definition was far from acceptable to everyone. Its main sign was the performance of rituals directed to sacred objects, from manipulation of which the solidarity of the group gathered force, and the common, collective consciousness was reinforced, which kept up the spirits of the individuals and gave them the confidence necessary for life. As the theorist of «sociologism» Durkheim considered that neither physical nor biological causes could explain religion and its origin and essence. He therefore rejected animism, which deduced religion from notions about an immortal soul (Edward Taylor), and «naturism», which deduced religion from involuntary adoration of physical natural forces (Max Muller, and others). These theories were based on an idea that «man has superimposed on the reality available to observation an unreal world built almost completely from the fanstastic images that trouble his spirit in dreams». The researcher's task was to find the objectively existing reality that was the cause, object, and goal of religious beliefs and ceremonies. That reality was society. 474 GRAMMAR DRILL EXERCISES PRESENT SIMPLE I. Change the following sentences according to the model: I study social psychology. He studies social psychology. 1. I want to achieve good results. 2. I deny his point of view. 3. I consider his theory to be true. 4. I investigate the problem of perception. 5. I make conclusions after each experiment. 6. I apply new methods of research. 7. I make testing at the laboratory. 8. I give instructions to the subject. 9. I compare the results of the experiment. 10. I reject this hypothesis. II. Change the following sentences into general questions: Pattern: He makes testing at the laboratory. Does he make testing at the laboratory? 1. He applies the new method for his investigation. 2. The subject compares the cards. 3. The psychologist rejects this idea. 4. She often works at the psychological laboratory. 5. The scientist applies new devices. 6. The investigator uses testing in his research. 7. He considers them to be right. 8. She gives instructions to the students. 9. He gradually achieves good progress in his studies. 10. She denies such hasty conclusions. III. Make the following sentences negative: Pattern: I consider him to be right. I don't consider him to be right. 1. I reject his position. 2. I make proper conclusions. 475 3. I apply his method for my experiments. 4. I specialize in engineering psychology. 5. I study the problem of group dynamics. 6. I compare the experimental data. 7. I use the latest data in my research. 8. I deny their approach. 9. I give instructions to the subjects. 10. I achieve good results on the basis of his method. IV. Ask your partner: 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. 10. where he makes experiments; what problem he investigates; where he applies his method of research; when he gives instructions to the subjects; what latest data he uses; whose position he considers to be right; whose approach he denies; what results he wants to achieve; when he goes to the psychological laboratory; what subject he likes most of all. PRESENT PROGRESSIVE I. Answer the question: «What are you doing now?» Pattern: I am answering the questions. 1. measure weight 2. observe a phenomenon of perception 3. perform a task 4. solve a problem 5. make testing 6. compare experimental results 7. study the subjects' behaviour 8. make an inquiry 9. investigate the effects of environment 10. watch the conduct of the subjects II. Complete the following sentences: Pattern: He is . . (measure the length). He is measuring the length now. 476 1. She is ... (make an experiment). 2. He is ... (interview the subjects). 3. She is ... (watch the testing process). 4. He is ... (solve a problem). 5. She is ... (register the students' answers). 6. The student is ... (copy the experimental data). 7. The subject is ... (perform a task). 8. The scientist is ... (compare the data). 9. He is ... (investigate sense-data). III. Change the following sentences into general questions: Pattern: They are working in the laboratory now. Are they working in the laboratory now? 1. We are listening to the subject's report. 2. They are reading the data of the device. 3. You are making an inquiry. 4. They are testing the students. 5. We are solving a complex problem. 6. You are watching their behaviour. 7. They are interviewing the subjects. 8. We are recording the data. 9. You are making an experiment. 10. They are comparing the data. IV. Change the following sentences by using the model «to be going to»: Pattern: We intend to make an experiment. We are going to make an experiment. 1. I plan to watch his behaviour. 2. He intends to interview a group of students. 3. She wants to solve this problem by all means. 4. We intend to take part in his investigation. 5. They plan to apply a new method. 6. I want to use his analysis. 7. He intends to compare the new data. 8. She plans to finish the experiment soon. 9. We want to interview the subjects. 10. They intend to study this phenomenon. 477 V. Answer the following questions: Pattern: What are you going to do tonight? (to work at the library) I am going to work at the library. 1. What are you going to do tomorrow? (to test the children) 2. What is he going to do today? (to perform a task) 3. What is she going to do next week? (to make an experiment) 4. What are they going to do now? (to observe this phenomenon) 5. What are you going to do in the laboratory? (to measure the distance) 6. What is he going to do tonight? (to finish his work) 7. What is she going to do next year? (to continue her investigation) 8. What are they going to do in a day? (to watch the process of accomodation) 9. What are they going to do tomorrow? (to copy experimental data) 10. What is he going to do next week? (to conduct testing) PAST SIMPLE I. Change the following sentences by using the verb in Past Simple instead of the model «used to»: Pattern: I used to make inquiry in the laboratory. I made inquiry in the laboratory. 1. He used to behave quite well. 2. She used to discriminate these phenomena. 3. We used to obtain good results. 4. They used to present the data in due time. 5. I used to settle such questions easily. 6. He used to pose interesting problems. 7. She used to apply various methods. 478 8. 9. 10. We used to introduce new factors. They used to display good knowledge. I used to introduce new conditions while experimenting. II. Change the following sentences into a negative form: Pattern: He displayed good knowledge of this subject. He didn't display good knowledge of this subject. 1. Last time he behaved well. 2. They obtained interesting data. 3. She applied a new approach. 4. We introduced new subjects. 5. I settled this question easily. 6. He made a great contribution to developing science. 7. She differentiated these factors by a new scheme. 8. They presented interesting conclusions. 9. We analyzed his behaviour. 10. I accepted their point of view. III. Change the following sentences into an interrogative form: Pattern: He rejected her point of view. Did he reject her point of view? 1. I obtained certain conclusions. 2. Ho applied a new way of thinking. 3. She accepted his approach. 4. We presented our position. 5. They interviewed a series of the subjects. 6. She made a great contribution to this research. 7. He achieved new results. 8. They displayed good knowledge of this problem. 9. We described a new method in detail. 10. She introduced new elements into her experiment. IV. Ask questions starting with «when». Pattern: He described this phenomenon last year. When did he describe this phenomenon? 1. They applied the new approach last Monday. 2. He came to this conclusion yesterday. 479 3. She obtained interesting results after her investigation. 4. I settled this question in the evening. 5. He observed her behaviour after testing. 6. They interviewed a group of students before the classes. 7. She achieved a certain step in her observation last week. 8. We studied their behaviour in the process of the experiment. 9. He worked out a new approach last month. 10. They investigated the sense-data last year. V. Ask questions starting with «where». Pattern: She introduced new elements into the experiment. Where did she introduce new elements? 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. 10. They achieved good knowledge in psychology. He obtained new data in the laboratory. We got various results in the investigation. She applied his approach to this problem in her inquiry. I used the method of discrimination in my report. They presented the new material in their paper. He introduced new testing at the plant. We asked a lot of questions at the office. She made a great contribution to psychology. He carried out a survey in this region. PRESENT PERFECT I. Change the predicates in the sentences from Present Progressive into Present Perfect: Pattern: I am not writing a report now. I have written it already. 1. We are not analyzing the data now. 2. I am not making an experiment now. 3. We are not interviewing the subjects now. 4. I am not comparing the data now. 5. We are not recording the results now. 6. I am not observing his behaviour now. 7. We are not solving a problem now. 8. I am not copying the experimental data now. 9. We are not discussing his approach now. 480 10. I am not reporting on my conclusions now. II. Change the sentences from Present Progressive into Present Perfect negative: Pattern: He is solving a problem now. He hasn't solved the problem yet. 1. She is considering this hypothesis now. 2. He is making analyses now. 3. She is measuring the length of this object now. 4. He is thinking the matter over now. 5. She is watching this phenomenon now. 6. He is describing his pictures now. 7. She is demonstrating some experiments now. 8. He is introducing a new device now. 9. She is performing a task now. 10. He is working out a new method now. III. Change the following sentences into an interrogative form: Pattern: We have finished this experiment. Have you finished this experiment? 1. I have applied the new approach lately. 2. He has achieved good knowledge. 3. She has obtained productive results. 4. We have considered the issue already. 5. They have just spoken to the leading sociologist. 6. I have accepted his point of view. 7. He has rejected his hypothesis. 8. We have used a new device already. 9. They have demonstrated their method recently. 10. I have made certain conclusions. IV. Change the following indirect questions into direct ones: Pattern: Ask your friend why he has finished his experiment. Why have you finished your experiment? 1. Ask your friend where they have been this week. 2. Ask your friend where she has made measurements. 481 3. Ask your 4. Ask your 5. Ask your 6. Ask your conditions. 7. Ask your 8. Ask your 9. Ask your 10. Ask your friend friend friend friend why he hasn't taken part in the interview. what conclusion he has made. what results they have achieved. what she has obtained under new friend friend friend friend why he hasn't taken measurements. where they have applied this technique. what mark he has got for his essay. why she hasn't reported on her data. GRAMMAR EXERCISES FOR DEVELOPING TRANSLATION SKILLS I. Translate the following sentences with PASSIVE VOICE: 1. In ancient times science was treated simply as a system of statements. 2. This simple rule is followed by the majority of authors. 3. This problem has been approached by many scholars on various grounds in different countries. 4. The method I have been describing in the text is, of course, one that is followed by all of us. 5. Men are distinguished from other forms of life on earth by their social production of the material means of life. 6. Sensations are not merely passively received, but are obtained in the course of human activity. 7. Two answers have been given to this question, neither of them satisfactory. 8. The investigations of living organisms showed how all forms of life are developed from cells. 9. Most of the studies have been based primarily on subjective opinion regarding the relationship of attitudes to the job. 10. Special attention is being given to this phenomenon. 11. Careful consideration has been given to this area of research communications. 482 12. The problem cannot be finally solved. 13. Hypotheses have to be tested by all means. 14. All knowledge must be based on sense-impressions, on the evidence of the senses, on observation. 15. A person's roles are to be understood in the light of his own pattern of hereditary and environmental influences. 16. There are circumstances which cannot be avoided. 17. Certain acts are labelled criminal and are punished; certain others though not punished by law are labelled wicked. 18. The individual has to be identified in the situation, before any situation can be referred - as in psychology - to the individual. 19. Nearly all people in the world are being used, with or without their knowledge, in the struggle between ideologies. 20. There are books which are still being reprinted, read and enjoyed, but it may be doubted that many of them will survive the century. 21. It is never known whether the subject is being given the control or experimental conditions. 22. Specialized clinics for the children suffering from mental disorders were being founded in this country. 23. Ideas from medical sciences, especially from physiology and neuroanatomy, are continually being used by psychologists. 24. The subjects were told to write as many answers as possible. 25. Individual case histories of children and grown-ups who are being medically treated by psychiatrists show that environment affects the development of personality characteristics. II. Analyze and translate the sentences with PARTICIPLES: 1. The public opinion poll conducted on the basis of the latest methods gave positive results. 2. The discovery made and the data obtained were published in « SCIENCE NEWS». 3. The new achievement made in this field of science is of certain value. 483 4. The statement made concerned a new way of investigating. 5. The given interaction is a result of close communication. 6. He spoke of the results obtained, conclusions made and future plans taken. 7. The realized plans were connected with the experiments carried out in the experimental laboratory. 8. The analysis of the poll conducted at the plant seemed rather fruitful. 9. His conclusion founded on the latest statistical data was quite right. 10. They couldn't agree with his point of view expressed so illogically. 11. The developing science raises more and more important questions for the further discussion. 12. To watch the changing world is rather interesting. 13. Polls being defined as the basic tool of sociology help sociologists in their research. 14. Observations being made with the help of special techniques gave different results. 15. When being studied from all the aspects, the event becomes understandable. 16. While criticizing the previous theories, he tries to understand their relationships. 17. Conducting this research he came across some interesting phenomenon. 18. The recent poll held in the given region revealed a lot of problematic questions. 19. The data being discussed at the seminar are of particular importance. 20. The sociologists dealing with the problem of migration made up a number of special questionnaires. 21. Any problem can be attacked in a scientific way leading either to a right answer or to an explanation of why an answer cannot be found. 22. Being thoroughly studied the phenomenon was resolved at last. 23. Leaving the experimental laboratory he felt rather tired. 484 III. Translate into Russian, find participles and analyze their forms: 1. Having achieved certain success in his life he decided to get married. 2. Having been recognized as the leading principle the statement was included into his theory. 3. Having finished one experiment he started another with the children as the subjects. 4. Having analyzed all in detail she understood the real picture of the phenomenon. 5. Having made observations on the subject of his investigation he summarized the new data. 6. Having been published the new data produced much polemic and a great number of discussions. 7. Having been conducted in the southern regions the poll was transferred to the north regions. 8. Having discussed the statistical data they came to the conclusion of their importance. 9. Having taken at last a decision she left for the railway station. 10. Having been dismissed from his work he couldn't find himself for a long time. 11. Having been asked the respondents expressed their viewpoints quite frankly. 12. Having come to the city late at night she decided to wait for the sunrise at the airport. 13. Having been invited to the scientific conference he bought a ticket for the plane at once. 14. Having looked through all the necessary material he started writing a report on the given problem. 15. Having seen him unexpectedly she crossed the street to be lost in the crowd. IV. Translate the following sentences with ABSOLUTE PARTICIPLE CONSTRUCTION: 1. He having felt lonely, feelings of depression and anxiety overcame him. 485 2. They suffering from fatigue and depression, the doctor advised to take cognitive-behaviour therapy. 3. The art of talking being a universal means of conversation, it is necessary to learn it. 4. There are many people throughout the country experiencing loneliness, teenagers and young adults comprising a larger group among them. 5. This problem should be solved immediately, specific techniques being applied. 6. To cope with loneliness you should contact different people, a circle of friends being of particular importance. 7. There are many ways of expressing our emotions, the body language being one of them. 8. The definite decision having been taken, they started discussing the details. 9. They discussed a lot of interesting issues, the problem of nonverbal communication being one of them. 10. People's characteristics differ greatly, with positive ones prevailing over negative traits. 11. He told a lot of interesting stories, some of them being rather shocking. 12. All the items having been discussed, they sighed with relief. 13. She is considered to be rather friendly, with many people surrounding her almost all the time. 14. He is fond of making new friends and acquaintances, all these people representing different circles of society. 15. He being very sociable, it is easy for him to get along with different people. 16. She having got used to the new conditions of life, nothing could knock her down. 17. He experienced a lot of troubles in his life, all these sorrows having made him only stronger. 18. They quarrelled very often, with the topics of their disputes being senseless. 19. The question of his departure having been solved, he ordered a ticket by telephone. 486 20. She would like to be invited to the party, she relying great hopes on this invitation. 21. They having consulted a psychologist on their marital relations, new hopes awaited them. 22. The psychologist listened to them very attentively, they answering his questions rather frankly. V. Translate the following sentences with GERUND: 1.Without knowing these facts it is impossible to build up a true picture of the world. 2. She answered without hesitating. 3. Without his participating in the concert the programme will be, I'm afraid, dull. 4. He couldn't leave without receiving necessary information. 5. Without practising English every day it is impossible to have a good knowledge of the language. 6. They couldn't come to an agreement without hearing his opinion. 7.Don't go away without letting us know. 8. Without doubting he took a decision. 9. She had to leave for home immediately without visiting her friend. 10. Without consulting her parents she refused from his proposal. 11.They separated forever without telling each other some warm words. 12.Without thinking he accepted their offer. 13.He decided to leave without paying his monthly rent. 14.Without investigating this case it was difficult to find the guilty. 15.Without solving this problem he couldn't leave the laboratory. 16.They found out the reason rather easily without making any efforts. VI. Translate the sentences with GERUND: 1. I can't help sympathizing him, he lost his father. 2. She can't help admiring his starring career. 3. They couldn't help hurrying with this project. 487 4. He can't help thinking of their nearest meeting. 5. We can't help advising him to take part in the conference. 6. I can't help expressing my regret on your leaving so soon. 7. They couldn't help inviting us to their evening party. 8. She couldn't help promising to write letters regularly. 9. He couldn't help telling her all the truth. 10. They can't help punishing their children for such behaviour. 11. He couldn't help criticizing her for such strange ideas. 12. I can't help understanding their act of charity. 13. She couldn't help assisting them in moving to a new flat. 14. I couldn't help praising her for assistance in this affair. 15. She can't help bringing me up all the time. It's so boring. 16. He couldn't help boasting of his new car of a foreign mark. 17. They can't help using this favourable situation. 18. I can't help discussing the terms of the agreement with them. VII. Read, analyze and translate into Russian: 1. Children typically are very angry at their parents for having divorced and can't work it out emotionally. 2. A stepparent is often at a disadvantage in disciplining a child. He may have grown tired of being the enforcer. 3. Keeping silence has its own price: frustration, anger, even madness. 4. Some taboos cannot be transgressed without paying an awful price. 5. Their having violated this taboo may lead to tense relationships. 6. His having misinterpreted their nonverbal behaviour led to complete misunderstanding and to a quarrel. 7. He heard of her having been given a theme of freedom for writing an essay. 8. The subjects will be tested individually by being given simple problems to solve. 9. Knowing and understanding may play an important role in survival. 10. Without trying to determine the direction of the discussion we shall mention the problems touched upon in the papers presented. 488 11. He did not approve of their having been involved in this business. 12. His having been invited to participate in the international conference on the problems of violating human rights is an evident fact. 13. It's no use talking with him about it after his having been dismissed from his office. 14. Do you mind my having taken a decision of organizing a new firm? 15. She couldn't help discussing with him the terms of the agreement. 16. I don't remember having met him anywhere before. 17. They are surprised at their having obtained such unexpected results after having tried a great number of different methods. 18. There is no special need in using a trial-and-error method. 19. They succeeded in having achieved the desired conclusions. 20. His being an expert in this particular field of science is known to everybody. 21. She insisted on his having been included into the working group. 22. He is not a person who can be relied upon in holding such meetings. 23. I dislike being spoken with in such a manner. 24. He is looking forward to being introduced to her as soon as possible. 25. She is sure in his having been involved in drug business. 26. They would like being told all the details of his having received these data. 27. She suspected him of having stolen the documents. 28. I dislike being asked the questions of this or that type. 29. By making experiments in compliance with new demands you will obtain what you wish. 30. Their having been awarded a special prize for the research has quickly become known to everybody. VIII. Read, analyze and translate in writing the following sentences: 489 1. Investigating the given problem he came to rather interesting conclusions. 2. He is informed of their having taken the first prize. 3. The weather being fine, they decided to go into the country. 4. Having discussed the matter the sociologists took a definite decision. 5. He couldn't help talking about the experiment at the symposium. 6. Without contemplating he agreed with the offer. 7. His having come back from the expedition is already known to everybody. 8. He is greatly interested in collecting and analyzing the data. 9. It was a great forum, scientists of many countries participating in its work. 10. They would like being warned in time. 11. This achievement founded on empirical principles was the elaboration of a new kind. 12. Having established interaction between these phenomena they started to describe it. 13. He received interesting results, his speculation being based on logical analysis. 14. They knew of his having received a good knowledge of social sciences. 15. They couldn't help verifying his theory of theoretical paradigms. 16. Understanding his starting point is quite necessary. 17. Religion based on ignorance is an unscientific world outlook. 18. Recognizing his position true he used his method of analysis in his work. 19. His representation was true, the main idea being connected with consciousness. 20. He having referred this event to the law of cause, the method seemed to be true. 21. Having received the necessary data he published the results of his work. IX. Translate the sentences with INFINITIVE: 1. To use language is a human activity. 490 2. To do something, and to know just what you are doing, are not the same things. 3. To answer these questions requires a general theory of human life. 4. To think at all it is necessary to abstract. 5. In order to explain this we have to study the facts of the case. 6. So as to understand development we must understand the distinction between quantitative change and qualitative change. 7. To discover the truth, we must start from personal experience. 8. The use of language owes its origin to social production, since to carry on social production people must speak to one another. 9. In order to understand things so as to change them we must study them. 10. To know everything is to know nothing. 11. To think dialectically is to think concretely. 12. It is often difficult to avoid a metaphysical way of thinking. 13. The purpose of this book is to provide a clear understanding of his theory. 14. Many scholars agree nowadays that metaphysics is something to be avoided. 15. The only evidence to be accepted is that to be tested by experience. 16. That is the true conclusion to be made. 17. Research to be carried out now is of great importance. 18. The problem to be solved is under discussion now. 19. The position to be taken by this scientist is rather strange. 20. The discovery to be made will be of certain value. 21. Psychologists begin to view a man as an active creature. 22. To predict a person's behaviour one must take into consideration sociological factors as well. 23. The aim of this lecture is to determine the ties of sociology with other disciplines. 491 24. We have some right to suppose that in this case we are dealing with a specific aspect of transformation of cognitive abilities. 25. The sociologists try to find stable principles of man's behaviour. 26. To understand this method one must know something about its specific principles. 27. He proceeded to carry out careful experiments. 28. To have a good memory is a great advantage. 29. He continued to be influenced by his past experiences. 30. To know what a person thinks about himself is of great importance. 31. The function of scientific theories is to explain empirical laws and to predict new ones. 32. The aim of the research was to study the relationships of the responses of the subjects. 33. The work has not progressed far enough to give a complete survey of the poll. 34. It should be noted that his first research was on a more scientific basis. 35. For science to move forward there must be a constant interchange between observation and theory. X. Translate the following sentences with COMPLEX OBJECT: 1. He believes his subjects to have been trained under another psychoanalyst. 2. They consider psychoanalysis to be very effective in its versatility. 3. Continuous talking causes the body to release certain hormones raising blood pressure. 4. Doctors identified escapism to be a disease called as sociophobia. 5. He maintains this constant fear of social contact to be often accompanied by many other negative experiences. 6. Most men recognize the need for improved communication to be the woman's responsibility. 7. He insists on things to be changed for the better for the relationship to work. 492 8. Many couples have found active listening to spark spontaneity and increase the satisfaction of a conversation. 9. She states career burnout to occur over a period of time with everybody. 10. He suggests a social support system to be cultivated in due time including close friends. 11. They consider brain drain to be a social phenomenon as well as a psychological one. 12. They say the term diaspora to have been historically used for characterizing people who are drawn to one another across a distance. 13. Psychophysiologists say the failings of memory to run much deeper than an inability to recall your neighbor's name. 14. Some people suggest their personal recollections to be confused with outside sources of information. 15. Graphologists are sure the hidden traits of friends and business associates to be discovered by means of careful examination of their handwriting. 16. Analysts of the Russian Research Center maintain the proportion of the middle class to have reached 10 percent. 17. It is known the first hospice to have been organized with the assistance of philanthropists. 18. They expect medical and social assistance to be provided for those who are in need. 19. They know stepfamilies to deal with anger and disappointment. 20. They should appraise social disorders to be connected with emotional wounds. 21. I don't bear the children to be treated badly. 22. They would like the public opinion poll to be carried out as soon as possible. 23. Ho insisted the subjects to give answers distinctly and in writing. 24. They want the problems of juvenile delinquency to be discussed at the coming session. 25. I should like you to participate in the research in the near future. XI. Translate the following sentences with COMPLEX OBJECT: 493 1. They felt the atmosphere in the room grow tense and left. 2. She felt his words sound insincere as he avoided eye contact. 3. I have heard the professor mention about this unexplained phenomenon several times. 4. He has never made his subjects participate in the experimental procedures without their wish. 5. The unexpected circumstances made them refuse from the business trip and send a message with apologies. 6. They saw her prepare for the experiment under new conditions. 7. The scholar noticed his coworkers look exhausted and fatigued after this complicated experiment. 8. The sociologists made the polled respond to the questions spontaneously. 9. She noticed somebody attentively examine her face and looks. 10. He observed her change the subject of the conversation from time to time avoiding unpleasant topics. 11. She heard somebody call her name several times, in surprise she turned back but saw nobody familiar to her. 12. The situation made them change their plans immediately lest they should fail in the given affair. 13. They saw a shabby person come up to them with a smile on his face as if he were their old friend. 14. She has heard him occupy a leading position in the research center. 15. Nobody saw him come back after his hasty decision to migrate abroad. 16. His managerial position made him change his outlook of a number of things and values. 17. They noticed him overcome his troubles and restore his moral forces. 18. He watched at a distance her climb a career ladder and was proud of her in his heart. 19. The psychotherapist felt his patient get nervous and tense. 20. He noticed a strange look appear in her half-closed eyes. XII. Translate the following sentences with COMPLEX SUBJECT: 494 1. His theory is said to have been developed for half a century. 2. He is likely to have made a full review of the article. 3. He proves to be a leading scientist in this field of sociology. 4. The experiments are reported to have been over successfully. 5. The conference is supposed to be held at the end of June. 6. The translation of the article is certain to be published next month. 7. Many foreign delegates appeared to know Russian. 8. All the groups happen to be divided into primary and secondary. 9. His interest is believed to have increased in this joint venture. 10. Everybody is sure to know at least one foreign language. 11. His poll proved to be conducted on the basis of the latest questionnaire. 12. Less attractive personalities are likely to experience less rewards in the social situations. 13. She is said to be impressed by his manner of speaking. 14. Discovering the cause of social phenomena is said to be the task of sociology. 15. The present is known to be involved in the past and the future to be involved in the present. 16. Our knowledge of the world is believed to be limited in time and space. 17. The problem of science and religion is known to have been the subject of long discussions. 18. His ideas are considered to be truthful as they give a right explanation of the world. 19. A master status is regarded to have great importance for shaping a person's entire life. 20. A social group is said to have been defined as a group of people with common interests and duties. 21. The groups are believed to be divided into primary and secondary ones dependent of the roles they play within the society. 22. Sociology as a science is known to be concerned with social groups and institutions. 495 23. Auguste Comte is considered to be the father of the sociological studies. ХIII. Read and translate the sentences with COMPLEX SUBJECT: 1. The effects of family structure and break-up are said to be indirect and may be influenced by the quality of parenting a child. 2. A heavy diet of violent images in the media is supposed to do nothing positive for child development. 3. By taking care of the pets children are likely to grow not only into nonviolent adults, but also into positive parents in their turn. 4. Inequality in the given context is held to mean injustice. 5. He is unlikely to break with the family tradition. 6. I am in a consistent state of frustration, and those things which once gave me such pleasure no longer seem to matter. 7. All of these statistics are widely believed to underestimate the true situation by 10 percent. 8. Politicians are sure to be the greatest liars in the world. 9. The problem itself appears to be primarily a physical disorder in that certain people are predisposed to stutter. 10. Most of lies told by the average person are known to be harmless and they are called white lies. 11. Speech therapy seems to be very effective in helping people overcome the problem of stuttering. 12. Water and air pollution is recognized to have caused dramatic changes in the environment. 13. The climate is certain to be changing with each year as a result of atmospheric pollution. 14. Human activity turned out to destroy a great number of exotic animals and plants. 15. Environmentalists are likely to do their best so that to restore the ecological balance on the planet. 16. Single motherhood is known to have produced some negative effects on the formation of a personality. 17. Such children are sure to experience hardships in their childhood by being teased by their classmates. 496 18. Drug and alcohol abuse happened to lead to unemployment and isolation. 19. Stuttering proves to have been caused by both physiological and psychological factors. 20. Nobody is certain to like being called a liar. 21. Emotional losses are believed to be shared by spouses in the marital situations. 22. Middle age is considered to present a watershed: the first half of one's life is spent in moving into life, the second half — in preparing for death. XIV. Translate the following CONDITIONAL SENTENCES: 1. The problem would be very simple if that solution were possible. 2. If we had analyzed the results of the experiment in time we should have taken another course in our studies. 3. Provided we had at least two experimental groups we should start the investigation at once. 4. If the subjects were given all the necessary instructions they would respond in a right way. 5. If he had chosen a definite aim he would have succeeded in research. 6. Unless the poll were carried out on a national level the data would not be true. 7. If he had been more careful he would have received more concrete results. 8. If I were you I should never accept his offer. 9. I could have agreed with you if you had been right. 10. But for the circumstances they would not have taken such a decision. 11. They would be only glad if you participated in the work at this project. 12. In case of his success he would be invited to take that office. 13. If he had more time at his disposal he would do this job with pleasure. 14. If the ecological problems had been solved in due time we should not have spoken too much of the pollution. 497 15. If his story had been told about beforehand some urgent measures would have been taken. 16. If you came in time I should be much obliged to you. XV. Translate the following CONDITIONAL SENTENCES: 1. If your ideas did not contradict the facts, the result would be correct. 2. If these interests were protected the independence of every individual and every nation would be guaranteed. 3. If the inflation were on the same scale the economic situation would be a bit stabilized. 4. If the workers won in their fight against employers, the strike might be supported by other trade-unions. 5. If they succeeded in their joint venture affairs, they would overcome the crisis situation. 6. If he spoke in favour of market economy, they would get majority at the elections. 7. If his business were under progress, they would not become debtors. 8. Provided they received a necessary credit, their matters would be regulated. 9. If this conference had been successful, the Prime Minister would have pursued the other policy. 10. If they had applied modern technology in due time, their industry would have progressed. 11. If the circumstances had been different, the other forms of policy would have been developed. 12. They would have arrived at the knowledge of the idea, had they examined all the data about it. 13. Were their theory consistent, nobody would doubt its value. 14. Had the author concentrated upon a single aspect of his subject, his study would have been proved easier to read. 15. Were I you, I should never accept their proposal. 16. Had it been so urgent, they would have taken all the opportunities to react accordingly. 17. If he had been to the Stock Exchange on that particular day, he would not have missed his chance to earn money. 18. If he had bought the enterprise shares at that time, he would not have been ruined. 498 19. Had you known about it before, he would have taken appropriate measures. 20. Were you one hundred percent right, I should agree with you without hesitation. 21. Provided they were wrong, nobody would support their ideas. XVI. Read, analyze and translate: 1. She speaks as if she were an expert in this particular field of psychology. 2. They look as if they were working at this problem all night long. 3. His survey was so accurate and detailed as if he had been investigating this subject all his life. 4. They are discussing this matter as if they were engaged in this project for a long time. 5. The effect of this enterprise was so successful as if it had been calculated up to the slightest details. 6. His business turned out to be a success as if he had had a great experience in such affairs before. 7. She knows a lot of tricks in economic policy as if she were a graduate of the Economics Academy. 8. Their life goes on rather well as if they were progressing in their own business. 9. She loves her work so much as though she were an inborn specialist in fiscal policy. 10. He speaks English so fluently as though he had lived in England since his childhood. 11. He spoke in favour of bankers as though he had always defended their interests. 12. He was reasonable in his offer as though he had been taught to communicate effectively. 13. The situation at the labour market is so drastic as though nothing could be done to relieve it. 14. He was so pleased with his mission as though he had fulfilled the conditions of their trade treaty. 15. He hesitated a little before taking a decision as though he did not know what I was speaking about. 499 16. His arguments seem rather surprising as though he were not sure in the outcome of their joint venture. 17.1 want to conclude an agreement just now lest I should lose direct contacts. 18. They hurried with taking urgent measures lest they should miss this chance. 19. He decided to insert all the agreed appointments into his diary lest he should forget about the necessary meetings and invitations. 20. He decided to check up once more all the aspects of this important order lest it should happen to be a failure. 21. They left the town in a hurry lest they should be caught by police for this dishonest deal. 22. He tried to avoid his former friends lest he should be involved in the drug business. XVII. Read and translate the following sentences: 1. It should have been noted that the emotional reactions had varied in intensity and duration. 2. One may have guessed that his experiment was not close to the task. 3. Practically any non-language task could be adapted to the scientific study of motor learning, provided the performance of the subject could be accurately measured and recorded. 4. None of these problems could have been investigated unless the investigators had had at their disposal adequate apparatus. 5. If there were improved performance, then clearly learning would be taking place. 6. Had we analyzed this phenomenon ahead of time, the misfortune would have been prevented. 7. The Congress recommended that the research in this field should be expanded. 8. It is necessary that the instrumental responses be received in the process of experimentation. 9. The problem would be very simple if that solution were possible. 10.1 am sure that the problem would have been solved, had not only psychologists but sociologists as well investigated it. 500 11. One should suggest his conclusion be a subject of prolonged debates. 12. Were his presence necessary, he would be called out immediately. 13. The scholar proposed his hypothesis should Бе treated with care. 14. Nobody demands that this survey should be carried out on the national level. 15. The conditions would have been changed if the experimentor had insisted on it. 16. Should you ask me, I would never refuse. 17. The situation required the couple should consult a highly qualified family therapist. 18. But for his behaviour under the given circumstances the issue would not have arisen. 19. Had you wished you would have participated in the roundtable discussion. 501 VOCABULARY A ability способность abnormal аномальный abnormal personality аномальная личность absorb поглощать absorption поглощенность, погруженность в себя abuse злоупотребление abuser человек, злоупотребляющий чем-то acceptance принятие accomodate приспосабливаться accompany сопровождать accumulation накопление, аккумуляция achieve достигать achievement достижение acquire приобретать acquired приобретенный acquisition усвоение activity деятельность, активность adaptation адаптация adaptive адаптивный addicted пристрастившийся addiction пристрастие adjustment приспособление adolescent подросток adoption усыновление adult взрослый adverse effect побочное действие advertisement реклама affection привязанность affiliation принадлежность afterimage послеобраз age возраст aggression агрессия aging старение 502 agitation возбуждение agreement согласие alienation отчуждение altruistic альтруистический ambiguity двусмысленность ambition амбиция ancestor предок anthropologist антрополог anticipate ожидать с нетерпением anticipation предвидение, антиципация anxiety тревога, беспокойство anxiety-proneness склонность к тревоге anxious обеспокоенный apathy апатия appearance внешность apperception апперцепция application применение applied прикладной appointment назначение appraisal похвала, оценка apprehension опасение approach подход approachability доброжелательность approval одобрение aptitude склонность, способность argument спор, аргумент aroused возбужденный assess оценивать association ассоциация attachment привязанность attempt попытка attend слушать со вниманием attention внимание attitude установка, отношение attract привлекать attraction атракция attractive привлекательный auditory слуховой authority авторитет, власть 503 average средний avoid избегать avoidance избегание aware осознанный awareness сознание В background фон, образование behave вести себя behaviour поведение behaviourist бихевиорнст belief вера, убеждение belonging принадлежность benefit польза, выгода, преимущество body language язык тела bond связь borderline condition пограничное условие (состояние) boredom скука boundary граница brain мозг brain drain утечка мозгов brainstorming мозговой штурм breed порода С capacity способность capital punishment смертельная казнь care забота, уход career карьера career burnout прекращение горения, стремления делать карьеру carry out выполнять catharsis катарсис, очищение cause причина c ause and effect причина и следствие 504 cell клетка centenarian долгожитель character характер characteristic характеристика child abuse издевательство над ребенком childhood детство circumstance обстоятельство civil гражданский civil morality гражданская мораль closeness близость cluster группа cognition познание cognitive познавательный cohabitation сожительство cohabiting family семья, ведущая хозяйство comfort утешение, сочувствие commit совершать commit a crime совершать преступление commitment обязательство commodity товар common sense здравый смысл communication общение, связь community сообщество compatibility совместимость competence компетенция competition конкуренция comprehend усваивать concentration концентрация concept понятие onclusion вывод, заключение condition условие, состояние conduct проводить; поведение confidence доверие conflict конфликт conformity конформизм confront сталкиваться connection связь совместное 505 conscious сознательный consciousness сознание consensus согласие, консенсус consequence следствие consider считать, рассматривать consumer потребитель, покупатель contemplation размышление contract сжиматься contradict противоречить contradiction противоречие contribution вклад, взнос control population контрольная популяция conversation разговор conversationalist собеседник convey передавать cooperation сотрудничество соре with справиться с corporal punishment телесное наказание correspond соответсвовать cortex кора головного мозга counsellor консультант couple пара, супружеская пара create создавать creativity творчество creature создание crime преступление criminal преступник cross-cultural межкультурпый curb обуздать cure лечить curiosity любопытство custody опека D data данные deal with иметь дело с death смерть death rate уровень смертности 506 deceit обман decline упадок, снижение decrease уменьшение deficiency недостаток, дефект define определять dejection уныние delinquency преступность delinquent малолетний преступник delusion бред dependent иждивенец, зависимый depression депрессия deprivation депривация deprive лишать desire желание destroy разрушать destructive деструктивный detention centre центр предварительного заключения determine определять development развитие deviance отклонение, девиантность deviant девиантный device средство, метод diaspora диаспора digestive process пищеварительный процесс dignity достоинство dimension измерение disagree не соглашаться disappointment разочарование disapproval неодобрение discharge разрядка discipline дисциплина discover открывать, обнаруживать discrepancy разногласие disease болезнь disgust отвращение disinterested бескорыстный disorder нарушение display unit монитор disposition склонность 507 distinguish различать distortion искажение distress дистресс disturbance нарушение divorce развод divorce rate уровень развода dominant доминантный dream сон drive побуждение driving force побуждающая сила drug наркотик, лекарство drug use наркомания drug user наркоман drug-abuser наркоман dual personality раздвоение личности dynamics динамика Е education образование effort усилие ego Я, эго eliminate устранять embarrassment замешательство emotion эмоция emotional quale эмоциональный заряд emotionally charged situation окрашенная ситуация empathy эмпатия, сопереживание emphasis акцент emphasize подчеркивать employee служащий employment наем, занятость encourage поощрять encouragement поощрение environment окружающая среда ergonomics эргономика escapism эскапизм essence сущность эмоционально 508 establish устанавливать estimate оценивать eternal verity вечная истина evaluate оценивать event событие, явление evidence данные, доказательство evoke вызывать evolution эволюция evolve развиваться examination исследование exchange обмен exert pressure оказывать давление exhaustion истощение, усталость exhibit проявлять, показывать existence существование experience переживать, испытывать; переживание explain объяснять explanation объяснение expose выставлять на показ exposure показ express выражать expression выражение extinction угасание extrovert экстроверт eye contact контакт глазами F face сталкиваться facial лицевой faculty способность faith вера fatigue усталость fear страх feeling чувство female женщина fight-or-flight response реакция, вызывающая либо сопротивление, либо бегство finding открытие, результат forecast прогноз 509 forensic судебный forensic psychology судебная психология forget забывать forgetting забывание frame of mind умозрение friendship дружба frustration фрустрация fulfil выполнять G gap пробел generalize обобщать generation поколение geneticist генетик gerontologist геронтолог gesture жест goal orientation целевая ориентация golden mean золотая середина gregariousness общительность grief печаль, горе group группа group dynamics групповая динамика growth рост Н habit привычки habitual привычный habituation привыкание handle управлять handwriting почерк happiness счастье harmful вредный heal исцелять healer целитель health service служба здравоохранения healthy здоровый heart сердце heart attack сердечный приступ hidden скрытый 510 hierarchy иерархия hospice приют hostage заложник household семья human человеческий human being человек human factor человеческий фактор humanity человечество hypnosis гипноз hypnotic гипнотический hypothalamus гипоталамус hypothesis гипотеза id Оно, ид identity идентичность illness болезнь image образ imagination воображение immune иммунный impact воздействие, влияние impersonal безличный incompatibility несовместимость несовместимый increase увеличение indifference безразличие individual индивидуум individuality индивидуальность infancy младенчество infant младенец infantile инфантильный inferiority complex комплекс неполноценности influence влияние influx приток ingroup внутренняя группа inherited врожденный inhibition торможение injury повреждение incompatible 511 innate врожденный insane безумный insight озарение, инсайт insomnia бессонница inspiration вдохновение institution институт, учреждение intellect ум, интеллект intellectual интеллектуальный intelligence quotient (IQ) коэффициент умственного развития intelligence test тест на интеллект intensity интенсивность intent намерение interact взаимодействовать interaction взаимодействие interfere вмешиваться interpersonal межличностный interview интервью introvert интраверт invasion вторжение inventory тест investigate исследовать investigation исследование investigator исследователь involvement вовлеченность isolation изоляция issue проблема J joint venture совместное предприятие judgment суждение juvenile малолетний juvenile delinquency малолетняя преступность К kinship родство knowledge знание L 512 lag задержка lag of sensation задержка ощущения lapse of memory провал в памяти leader лидер leadership лидерство learned приобретенный learning научение left-handed левша level уровень life expectancy продолжительность жизни life span продолжительность жизни lifestyle стиль жизни living живой, жизненный living organism живой организм loneliness одиночество lonely одинокий long-term memory долговременная память м majority большинство maladjusted неприспособленный male мужчина management управление, менеджмент manifest проявлять manifestation проявление mannerism манеры поведения marital situation супружеская ситуация marriage брак married женатый marry жениться mass media средства массовой информации maternal материнский maternal drive материнское влечение maturation созревание, зрелость мужской, 513 mature personality зрелая личность meaning значение means средство measurement измерение medium средство, среда member член membership членство memory память mental deficiency умственная недостаточность mental disorder психическое расстройство mental retardation умственная отсталость, задержка mentally normal психически нормальный migrant мигрант migrate мигрировать milieu среда mindset склад ума misperccption неправильное восприятие mode of behaviour способ поведения modify изменять monitor контролировать mood настроение moody человек с быстрой сменой настроения moral development нравственное развитие morphopsychology морфопсихология mortality смертность motive мотив movement движение multiple choice выбор из множества multiple personality раздвоение личности 514 muscle мышца muscular мышечный mutual взаимный mutual relations взаимные отношения N nature натура, природа need потребность, нужда neglect пренебрегать negotiation переговоры network сеть nightmare кошмар nursery ясли О obedience послушание obligation обязательство observe наблюдать obsession навязчивая идея occupation род занятий occurrence частотность odor запах oedipus complex эдипов комплекс onlyhood одиночество onlys одиночки opinion мнение option выбор orientation ориентация orphan сирота outbreak взрыв outgroup внешняя группа outlook мировоззрение overcome преодолеть overlap наложение overwhelming majority подавляющее большинство Р paradigm парадигма parent родитель parental родительский 515 parenthood родительство participate участвовать passion страсть pathology патология patient пациент, больной pattern образец, модель peer ровесник penalty наказание percentage процентное содержание perception восприятие perform выполнять performance действие persist настаивать persistence настойчивость person человек personal ЛИЧНЫЙ personal attitudes личностные установки personal identity самоопределение personality личность phenomenon (phenomena) явление (явления) pitch высота (звука) pleasure удовольствие pleasure centre центр удовольствия (в мозгу) poll опрос population население posture положение practitioner практик predict предсказывать predisposition предрасположенность prejudice предрассудок premonition предчувствие prerequisite предпосылка presentation представление preservation сохранение pressure давление prevent предотвращать 516 primary первичный primary group первичная группа priority приоритет, полномочие problem solving решение проблемы procedure процедура process процесс processing обработка promote способствовать prone склонный propensity склонность property свойство provide обеспечить psyche психика psychiatrist психиатр psychiatry психиатрия psychic психический psychodrama психодрама psychologist психолог psychology психология psychopath психопат psychophysics психофизика psychosis психоз psychotherapy психотерапия psychosomatic психосоматичес¬кий public opinion общественное мнение punish наказывать punishment наказание pursue проводить, преследовать Q quality качество questionnaire анкета, опросник R raise воспитывать random беспорядочный, хаотичный range диапазон rapport взаимопонимание rating рейтинг 517 reaction реакция reaction time время реакции realize осознавать, понимать rearing воспитание reasoning рассуждение reassurance заверение recall воспоминание receptor рецептор recognition признание recruitment наем reduce снижать, уменьшать refer ссылаться reference ссылка reflect отражать, размышлять reflection отражение reflex рефлекс refugee беженец regression регрессия rehabilitation реабилитация reject отвергать, отрицать rejection отказ relation отношение relationship взаимоотношение relative относительный relaxation релаксация release устранение reliability надежность relief облегчение relieve stress снять стресс remember помнить reminiscence воспоминание remove устранить replace замещать representation представление repression вытеснение, подавление reproduction репродукция repulsive отталкивающий require требовать 518 requirement требование research исследование researcher исследователь resemble напоминать resistance сопротивление, резистенция resolve разрешать, решать respect уважение respond отвечать, реагировать respondent респондент response ответ, реакция responsibility ответственность responsible ответственный restraint сдерживающий механизм retain balance сохранять баланс retardation отставание reveal раскрывать reward награда role роль rolo expectation ролевое ожидание role performance ролевое исполнение role set набор ролей row ссора S safety безопасность sample образец schizophrenia шизофрения science наука secondary вторичный secondary group вторичная группа security безопасность seek искать, пытаться selection выбор self сам self-destruction саморазрушение 519 self-esteem самооценка self-expression самовыражение self-regulation саморегуляция self-suggestion самовнушение sensation ощущение sense чувство sense organs органы чувств sensibility чувствительность sensible чувственный, разумный sensitive чувствительный sensory memory сенсорная память separate отделять serenity безмятежность service служба, услуга session сеанс set установка setting среда sex пол shame стыд shaping формирование share доля short-term memory кратковременная память sibling брат или сестра sight зрение sign знак signature подпись similarity сходство single одинокий skill навык skin кожа slumber сон smell запах smile улыбка social социальный social adaptation социальная адаптация social being общественное бытие 520 social exchange социальный обмен social rules общественные правила social security социальная защищенность social worker социальный работник socialization социализация society общество sociologist социолог sociology социология sociophobia социофобия sociophobic социофоб solitary одинокий solitude уединение solve a problem решить проблему sound звук species вид, особь spiritual духовный spontaneity спонтанность spouse супруг, супруга state состояние statistics статистика status статус stepchild пасынок или падчерица stepfamily семья с детьми от прежнего брака stepparent отчим или мачеха stereotype стереотип stimulus (stimuli) стимул (стимулы) store хранить strain напряжение strength сила stress стресс strive for superiority стремление к совершенству structure структура subject субъект, испытуемый substance вещество 521 substitution замена subsystem подсистема success успех successful успешный suffer страдать suffering страдание suggestibility внушаемость suggestion внушение suicidal суицидный suicide самоубийство suicide rate уровень суицида super-ego супер-эго, сверх-Я support поддержка suppression супрессия, подавление surgeon хирург surgery хирургическая операция survey обзор, исследование survive выжить survival выживание sympathetic сочувствующий Т taste вкус team команда, группа technique метод, методика teenager подросток temperament темперамент temporary временный tension напряжение test battery набор тестов thalamus тaламус therapist терапевт therapy терапия thinking мышление thought мысль threat угроза threaten угрожать tissue ткань tolerance терпение, толерантность tolerant толерантный 522 train обучать training тренинг trait черта transfer перенос transitory переходный transplantation трансплантация trauma травма treat лечить, обращаться treatment лечение trial-and-error learning научение методом проб и ошибок trouble беспокойство trust доверие trusted confidant доверенное лицо u uncertainly неуверенность unconditional response безусловный ответ unconscious бессознательный unit единица upbringing воспитание V vagrant бродяга validity валидность, достоверность value ценность variable переменная variety разнообразно victim жертва violate нарушать violation нарушение violence насилие violent агрессивный visceral висцеральный vision зрение visual визуальный, зрительный voice голос volition воля vulnerability уязвимость W 523 welfare benefit пособие well-being благополучие will воля withdrawal уход в себя worry беспокойство Y youngster подросток